Class rr - ; &^ ■/ ..< Book-^**Ji^L PERSONAL NARRATIVE A TOUR THROUGH A PART OF THE UNITED STATE3*VND CANADA : %f t fp NOTICES OF THE HISTORY AND INSTITUTIONS OF METHODISM IN AMERICA. PUBLISHED BY LANE & SCOTT, 200 Mulberry-street. JOSEPH LONGKING, PRINTER. 1849. j« 12 190* ADVERTISEMENT TO THE AMERICAN EDITION. It has not been thought necessary, in reprinting this work, to retain all of Dr. Dixon's quotations from American authorities, in his sketch of the History and Institutions of American Methodism. These can be found much more fully set forth in works easily accessible in this country. Part V. of Dr. Dixon's work, relating to the " Measures adopted by the Me- thodist Episcopal Church on the Subject of Slavery," has been entirely omitted. It consists almost wholly of American documents. A few errors, in the use of names, dates, &c, have been silently corrected. Others, of less importance, have been suffered to remain, As a whole, it is only remarkable that Dr. Dixon should, in so short a time, have acquired so just and accurate a knowledge of the topography and geography of the country, as well as of the character and habits of our people. The work is singularly able and philosophical in its views, both of the political and religious institutions of America. J. M'Clintock. June 25, 1849. ADVERTISEMENT. This volume has been prepared for publication under the influence of one only sentiment ; namely, a desire to make the Methodist body in England acquainted with the state and progress of their system of religion in the United States. The author is not conscious to himself of any peculiar bias in his opinions ; his aim being simply to state facts as they presented themselves to his attention, and leave his readers to draw their own inferences. Not being a political agent, he has not felt himself called upon to enter — except incidentally — into questions of civil government. His general impression is, however, that the Americans possess a larger amount of social prosperity than any other people upon earth. But the vexed question of republicanism lies beyond his purpose ; and he begs to inform his reader beforehand, that whatever he may meet with is not to be construed into an expression of opinion for or against this or any other form of government, but simply as historical. One thing, however, bearing on this subject, may not be deemed out of place : it is, that the author's impressions of the true greatness of his own country were never so strong as during his visit to the States. America is the offspring of England. England has been reproduced in America. The character of the parent is seen in the athletic growth of the son. The blood, the religion, the ideas, the opinions, and, in substance, the institutions, of England exist in the United States. On this soil the Anglo-Saxon race is assert- ing its supremacy on a gigantic scale, and with a rare 6 ADVERTISEMENT. energy and vigour. It is a singular phenomenon, which every visitor must perceive at once, that his own country's type of humanity is predominant. People from all nations in Europe are seen in large numbers on the western conti- nent; but they all become Anglicised. Just as the "father of waters," the Mississippi, receives the innumerable tribu- tary streams which flow in every direction to swell and deepen its flood, and then in turn are blended with and become one with the parent current ; so, in like manner, all the races which flock to America feel the force, do homage to the superiority, and fall into the current, of Anglo-Saxon life. In two or three generations nothing of the German, the Dutchman, the Frenchman, the Celt re- mains, but his name. He has lost his foreign distinctness, much of his physiognomy, and all the peculiar character- istics of his origin ; so that the true identity existing between England and America is an identity of race. Other things are but the external adornings of the same soul and body, the same mental and material organization. England's sons, language, sentiments, freedom, enterprise, courage, religion — all live in America ; and are uniting to form the greatest empire of race on which the sun ever shone. England consequently reappears on American ground ; and it is impossible historically to separate the destinies of the same people ; the annals of the Anglo-Saxon race must ever include the American branch. The survey now presented to the public can lay claim to nothing more than an outline. It would require much more leisure and information than are in the possession of the author, to give a full, a complete, narrative of — as he conscientiously believes — the most gigantic and extraordi- nary development of religious truth which has taken place in modern times. The work, even in its present state, appears under some disadvantage, from the fact that, when in the States, the author had not the most remote idea of writing a book; ADVERTISEMENT. 7 his notes were consequently not taken with any view to such a purpose. From this circumstance his materiel was necessarily scanty ; but the scenes through which he passed, and the facts and incidents which came before his atten- tion, were very vividly impressed upon his memory. He has had consequently to draw largely on this resource. With what success, those on the spot alone can judge ; but he is persuaded that, though many things may not be so full and circumstantial as if he had entertained the intention of publication, yet he is certain that no fact is falsified ; and no scenery, whether of nature, society, or religion, has received an untrue colouring. In addition to the desire, as before stated, to give infor- mation respecting the state of the Methodist Church, as the predominating motive, the author feels himself under an imperative obligation, as a mere matter of justice, to communicate his impressions respecting his reception by the American body. If they received the messenger of the British Conference with affectionate respect as such, is it not fitting that their good-will, their fraternal regard, their unabated affection towards the parent body, their continued unhy and oneness with us in spirit and faith, should be made known ? And, moreover, as it has pleased God to bless, to prosper, to enlarge, and to render triumphant that Church which, in its ecclesiastical form, was planted by John Wesley, and nurtured by some of his most distin- guished sons in the gospel ; does it not seem proper that such an occasion as a visit to this Church should, in some way, be connected with a report of its actual state ? With these impressions, though with great reluctance, the author is impelled to publish this volume, not doubting but that the hearty good- will of the American Methodist Church will be as heartily reciprocated by the Methodist body in this country. Birmingham, March 26th, 1849. CONTENTS. PART I. PERSONAL NARRATIVE. CHAPTER I. The Voyage — Company on Board — Sunday— Reflections— Atlantic— Agitation — Steam-Power— Miracles— Banks of Newfoundland — A Snow-storm— Hali- fax — Nova-Scotia — Passengers— Morality Page 13 CHAPTER II. Boston — The Sabbath— Changes of Doctrine — Methodist Preachers' Meeting at the Book-Depot — Bunker's Hill — The Common — The State-House — Churches — The City — Daniel "Webster — Set out for New-York— Railroad Cars — The Country — New-Haven — The Sound — Scene on board the Steamer — New-York Harbour 22 CHAPTER III. New-York — Harpers' Printing and Publishing Establishment — The Methodist Book-Concern — The Exchange and Custom-House — Excitement respecting an anticipated Revolution in England — Charitable Institutions — The City — Leave for Baltimore — David Creamer, Esq. — The Journey — New-Jersey — Newark — Princeton— Trenton — The Delaware — Philadelphia — The Chesa- peake Bay 36 CHAPTER IV. Baltimore and Washington— The City and Capitol — The Senate — General Cass — Captain Fremont — Mr. Calhoun, &c. — The House of Representatives — Debate — Visit to the President — To the Vice-President — The National Insti- tution — Baltimore — The Sabbath — The aristocratic air of the place — Leave for Cumberland — Slavery — Harper's Ferry — Cumberland — The Alleghany Mountains — A Mirage on the Mountain — Brownville — The Monongahela — Scenery of the banks 52 CHAPTER V. Pittsburgh — Lodge at the St. Charles — The Conference — The Bishops — The Preachers — Bishop Soule — The Southern Ministers — Public Services — The Company at the St. Charles — The Town — Manufactures — The African Church — Preach to the Blacks — Curious Scene — Leave Pittsburgh — Take leave of Bishop Soule — His Character — The Ohio — Wheeling— Bishop Camp- bell—Mesmerism 84 CONTENTS. 9 CHAPTER VI. Cincinnati — Mr. Smith — Auburn — A Storm in the Country — Bishop M'llvaine's Country Residence — A Fire — The Sabbath — The City — Start for Sandusky — The Forest— Difficulties of clearing Land— The Railroad through the Forest — A Stage Journev — Arrival at Urbana— Arrival at Sandusky Page 101 CHAPTER VII. The Lakes— Erie — Pass down — Buffalo — Niagara River— Scenery on its Banks —The Falls of Niagara— Canada— The People— Visit the Battle-Field of Lun- dy's Lane— The Suspension-Bridge — St. Catharine's — Hamilton 109 CHAPTER VIII. Ontario— Toronto— Dr. Ryerson— Sir F. B. Head— Bishop Strachan— The City — Departure for Kingston — Mr. Robinson— Mr. Bolton— Coburg College — Kingston — Pass up the Bay of Quinti — Belleville — The Canada Conference —The Union — Return to Kingston 129 CHAPTER IX. The St. Lawrence— The Thousand Islands — The Rapids— Montreal— The City —The Cathedral— The Methodist Chapel— Storm— The Earl of Elgin— The Romanists — Passage to Quebec — The City — The Plains of Abraham — General Wolfe — Fortifications — A Rural Repast— Falls of Montmorenci — The French Habitans — Reflections on Canada 138 CHAPTER X. Return— Pass the St. Lawrence— Lake Champlain— Plattsburgh— Whitehall- Journey by Stage— Troy— Albany— The Hudson— Arrival at New-York— 111 — Doubtful respecting being able to return Home — Resolved to do so — De- part for Boston — Embark on board the "America" — Passage — Arrival at Home 159 CHAPTER XI. Reflections on America — Unfairly dealt with by Travellers — A religious people — This necessary to explain their state — The real Americans not hostile to England — Their peaceful and prosperous condition — Education, the prin- ples on which it is conducted — The force of Christianity in its simply divine authority — The American's trust in this— Public Worship and the Duties of Religion— Slavery partly removed by the influence of Christian prin- ciple 166 10 CONTENTS. PART II. HISTORICAL NOTICES OF METHODISM IN AMERICA. CHAPTER I. Introductory remarks— Mr. Wesley's great talent for government— The confi dence reposed in him— His disinterested encouragement to all who were ca- pable of rendering service to religion— Became the bond of union to the first Methodists in America Page 198 CHAPTER II. The Introduction of Methodism into New-York— Philip Embury — Begins to preach — Captain Webb — The first Society — Preaching-Houses — Robert Strawbridge commences preaching in Maryland — Freeborn Garrettson — Captain Webb's labours in Long Island and Philadelphia— Attempts to get Mr. Benson appointed to America — Reflections on these Agents — The Class- Meeting 205 CHAPTER III. Application to Mr. Wesley for Missionaries — Messrs. Boardman and Pilmoor appointed — Account of the State of Things— Messrs. Asbury and Wright — Account of the former — The Spirit of the Clergy — Mr. Jarratt — Thomas Rankin and George Shadford arrive— First Conference 218 CHAPTER IV. The Revolutionary Period — Messrs. Rankin, Shadford, and Rodda depart for England — Adventures of Shadford — Asbury determines to remain — His Exer- cises of Mind — Finds Refuge in the House of Judge White — Persecutions of Messrs. Hartley and Garrettson — Mr. Jarratt — Reflections on the Revolu- tion — John Calvin's Dogma— Originates the Revolution — Its Success . . 228 CHAPTER V. Measures preparatory to the Organization of the Methodist Episcopal Church — Application of the People to Mr. Wesley — His Advice— Dr. Bangs's Account — The Church formed — Success 242 CHAPTER VI. The new Order of Things — Mr. Asbury becomes the real Bishop of the Church — His Character and Qualifications for the Office — Dr. Coke exceeds his Powers — Certificate — The Episcopacy defined and guarded — Mr. Wesley's Offence at the Use of the Term " Bishop" — Letter to Asbury — Dr. Coke in Difficulties respecting the Address to Washington — And on Slavery — The Church takes its Standing among the Institutions of the United States . . 254 CONTENTS. 11 PART III. THE INSTITUTIONS OF THE METHODIST EPISCOPAL CHURCH. CHAPTER I. The doctrinal Basis of the Church— The Articles of Religion— This places the Church on a system of dogmatical Truth— The Difference between this and the English system Page 265 CHAPTER II. The Federal Nature of the Church— The Idea of Unity— How secured — Doctri- nal — Visible governing Power — Episcopacy 269 CHAPTER m. The Methodist Church in its Subdivisions— The Circuit and Station— The Sta- tion an innovation— The Quarterly-Meeting Conference— Its Powers . . . 274 CHAPTER IV. Subdivisions continued— The District— How constituted— The presiding Elder — Rules and Laws— The several Orders of Ministers 278 CHAPTER V. Subdivisions continued — The Episcopacy— Bishops, how appointed — Laws and Regulations — Reflections — The Division of Labour amongst the Bishops — Names of those who have received this Office — Purity of Election — Popu- larity 281 CHAPTER VI. Subdivisions continued— The Annual Conference— How constituted— Its Func- tions— Elects Delegates to the General Conference 288 CHAPTER VII. Subdivisions continued — The General Conference — Dr. Bangs's Account of its formation — Its Fundamental Powers— Principles— Reflections 289 CHAPTER VIII. Subdivisions continued — The Author's presence at the Pittsburgh General Conference — Impressions — The Bishops — The Ministers — Mode of Debate — Decorum and Order — Questions at Issue — Mode of conducting Appeal Cases — Reflections 295 12 CONTENTS. PART IV. TERRITORIAL PROGRESS OF THE AMERICAN METHODIST EPISCOPAL CHURCH. I. — THE ATLANTIC CONFERENCES. Page. Maine 310 New-Hampshire 312 New-England 313 Providence 318 New-York 319 New- Jersey 324 Philadelphia 325 Baltimore 327 Virginia 332 North Carolina 334 South Carolina 335 Georgia 337 Florida 343 II. — THE nUDSON AND LAKE LINE. Troy 357 Vermont 357 Black River 353 Oneida 303 Genesee 363 Erie 365 North Ohio 366 Michigan 367 North Indiana 367 Rock River 369 III. — THE OHIO LINE. Pittsburgh 380 Ohio 381 Louisville 388 Kentucky 388 Holston 389 Indiana 392 Tennessee 393 IV. — THE MISSISSIPPI LINE. Iowa 406 Illinois 406 Missouri 407 St. Louis 407 Arkansas 408 Memphis 409 Mississippi 409 Louisiana 410 Alabama 411 Texas 412 East Texas 412 Oregon 412 Indian Missions 413 TOUR IN AMERICA. PART I. PERSONAL NARRATIVE CHAPTER I. The Voyage — Company on Board — Sunday — Reflections — Atlantic — Agitation — Steam-Power — Miracles — Banks of Newfoundland — A Snow-storm — Hali- fax — Nova-Scotia — Passengers— Morality. We went on board the " Acadia," Captain Stone, at Liver- pool, bound for Boston, on Saturday, April 8th, 1848 ; a beautiful vessel, well fitted up with a fine and spacious saloon above deck. I found my friend, Mr* Kaye, had engaged for me one of the best berths, which I went at once to possess. I had not been there long, before a Quebec gentleman entered to share it with me, — a good- looking, open-faced man ; and, as I supposed I must necessarily have a cabin-mate, I thought myself well suited in my companion. This, however, was evidently not the impression of my friend. Whether he was alarmed at the sight of a parsonic name on my trunks, or uncomfortable on other grounds, I know not; but he instantly became fidgety, exhorted me to go to the purser, and get a berth to myself ; saying, that I should have more influence than himself. I concluded this was perfectly unnecessary on my part, feeling quite sure he would accomplish the change for himself, if I left him alone. In a few minutes he came for his luggage, having obtained a berth " forward ;" and, on seeing the purser, he told me they had agreed to leave 14 TOUR IN AMERICA. me " alone in my glory." This, to me, was joyful news, and seemed a good beginning. It is customary for passengers to choose their seats at the table, and they who are first on board have the best chance. Being in good time, I had the opportunity of selecting my own place. My friend, Mr. Willey, who went on board with me, and knew much more of such matters than myself, fixed upon a corner-seat, saying it would be out of draughts. For my part, I did not much like it, inasmuch as I thought it would place me at the lower end of the table. I had no objection to a midway place, but felt unwilling to be at the very bottom, and out of the way of everybody. However, for the reason above mentioned, T submitted, rather reluctantly, to my fate. This seat, how- ever, turned out to be on the right hand of the chair of the second table. The company one falls in with on board ship, is very important. The manners, temper, conversa- tion, disposition to accommodate, are vital points in such contiguity ; and, in the many squalls which must take place in a voyage at sea, it is possible for people, closely packed, to make themselves and others very unhappy, if so disposed. When dinner was announced, I took my place in my new locality, somewhat curious as to what the issue would be. The chair was taken by an elderly officer of the royal navy, dressed in his uniform and the insignia of his rank. We looked upon him with interest. He proved to be, as is generally the case with men in his situation, a complete gentleman, courteous, urbane, and communicative. A more beautifully placid and benevolent countenance cannot be imagined. He had been in the service forty years ; had travelled in most parts of the world ; had passed through many interesting scenes ; and willingly communicated his stores of anecdote and information. On my right hand sat an elderly person, a perfect pattern of an English country gentleman of the old school. It turned out that his home PART I. — PERSONAL NARRATIVE. 15 was Baltimore ; and, if he might be taken as a sample of the citizens of that place, they are certainly a fine race of people. Before our meeting, I had seen a gentleman on deck, whose face and bearing arrested my attention. I said to myself, " There is something in you." I did not much like him, however, at first sight, because he seemed to resemble a famous statesman of our country, once very popular, now very low. This gentleman sat exactly oppo- site me. We looked rather askance at each other. He opened out very slowly, but did so by degrees ; and I suppose it was the same with myself, This gentleman I found to be one of the most intelligent and well-informed men I ever met. I afterwards understood he was an American of the old Bostonian school ; that he lived near Plymouth, the landing-place of the " Pilgrim Fathers ;" had seen all America ; thoroughly understood the character of its institutions, civil and religious ; had travelled through Europe, and in some parts more than once ; was conversant with literary subjects ; knew all the leading politicians of his own country, and many in European nations ; and, like all such men, was extremely courteous, free from dog- matism, and, though a decided American, perfectly open to conversation respecting their institutions, and equally willing to admit the excellency of other countries, especially that of England. I found this gentleman a most interesting companion. Thus ensconced in the outset of the voyage, other things being favourable, we had the promise of an agreeable passage. On the following morning, Sunday, while at breakfast, an officer came with Captain Stone's compliments to desire me to conduct divine service. To this I cheerfully and thankfully assented. Going to the captain, I asked him if it would comport with their usages, and be agreeable, for me to preach. He consented, on the condition that the discourse was short ; stating, that it would be incon- venient for the men to be engaged for a long time. On 16 TOUR IN AMERICA. going to the desk, I found the crew and passengers in their places, — the former neat, clean, and well-behaved, and the latter perfectly orderly, and some of them appa- rently devout. There sat beneath the desk as clerk a fine young officer, dressed in his official habiliments. He re- sponded most nobly, and like a person accustomed to the employment. When the service was concluded, this young officer came to me, (he proved to be the surgeon of the ship,) and said, " Perhaps you may have some knowledge of the name of my grandfather. My name is Paley. I am the grandson of Archdeacon Paley." I assured him I was perfectly acquainted with the writings of his great and honoured relative, and, like everybody else, greatly esteemed them. This young gentleman bears a striking resemblance to the pictures of the archdeacon ; and appeared perfectly frank, open-hearted, and honourable. Sunday on board ship is a melancholy day ; at least so it proved to me. The thought of the assemblies of the saints ; the order and religion of the study, the closet, the family ; all now broken in upon, by the strife and agitation around : — this, together with great anxiety for those left behind, pressed painfully upon my mind. Wesley's Hymns were a great solace. Nothing is broad, deep, and elevated enough for the soul in her solitude, her sorrows, and her joys, but sacred poetry, connecting one with the Saviour, with the mysterious, with the eternal. The sea is calcu- lated to heighten this feeling ; for what is the ocean, but a mirror of God's infinity ? and what the roar of its mighty waters, but the voice, the poetry, the music, of that infinity ? On leaving Cape Clear, and entering the Atlantic, we were met by its surges as if in regal wrath ! The majestic ocean seemed perfectly infuriated by the invasion of his domain. I could compare this seeming anger to nothing but to that of a mighty animal taking up a diminutive one in his teeth, and furiously shaking him in his rage. Our noble vessel was no more in the jaws of the Atlantic than PART I. — PERSONAL NARRATIVE. 17 a lap-dog in those of a lion. The wind blew right a-head, and met us in the teeth, dashing the waves and spray furi- ously against our bow. We had not to encounter a storm, in the usual sense of the expression ; but our old sea-officer, of forty years' standing, declared he had never seen the sea so rough. We were, probably, encountering the effects of distant hurricanes. The agitation and swell were inde- scribable. The "fountains of the great deep" seemed as if " broken up ;" and from beneath, as well as from every point of the compass, the waters presented the appearance of universal anarchy, confusion, and agitation. This state of things continued for four or five days, the effects on the passengers being such as are usual in these cases. The ladies were entirely absent, cooped up in their cabin, or rolling in their berths, as the case might be ; no doubt amiably bearing with good temper such feelings as a bilious stomach is calculated to excite ; and, being fellows in misfortune, expending upon each other those delicate sympathies which companionship in misery always produces. The gentlemen were seen, some groaning in their beds, some lying in mummy fashion, as if deprived of the cha- racteristics of animated, talking, and thinking beings ; and others, more resolute, or a little less miserable, than their fellows, were seen staggering about deck, eagerly hastening, every now and then, to the sides of the ship for a purpose not to be named. One wo-begone French Canadian fixed himself in a camp-chair near the chimney, to keep himself warm, and, with a rare heroism of the passive sort, continued to occupy his post nearly to the end of the voyage. By this means he preserved some sort of equilibrium, and held up in the midst of the general discomfiture. For myself, I was as good a sailor as any of them ; and much better than the majority. Resolution does great things in these mat- ters. If a voyageur wishes to have a feat of sea-sickness, as an adventure, to put into his book, he may easily obtain one ; the power of sympathy will soon do its work : and, 18 TOUR IN AMERICA. in case he possess and indulge a certain fastidiousness in the sight of things not very delicate, he may pay the penalty of his sensitiveness by becoming just as loathsome as any of those which excited the disgust of his olfactory or other nerves. For my own part, I entertained no am- bition or desire to describe the sensations peculiar to these sea-adventures in my own person, resolutely braved every temptation to yield, which were sometimes forcible enough, and nearly altogether escaped. But the effects of these agitations of the sea, in other respects, were very singular. I was obliged to stuff some solid material on both sides when in my berth ; in the one case, to keep me from rolling against the hard side of the ship ; and, in the other, to prevent the more serious catastrophe of tumbling out upon the floor. Some of the passengers had the precaution to employ the carpenter to fasten a board to prevent the last disaster ; but I contented myself in the use of trunks and other appliances, and by these means preserved my balance. But this motion was not by any means the only one. The giant ocean not only shook the ship, making every timber creak as if some of her bolts and screws must every moment give way, but a similar trial of the timbers of the human frame was equally produced by the conflicting agi- tation. This to me was a matter of curiosity and observa- tion. The motion seemed to pull, jerk, toss, twist one in every possible manner. Now the action would be rolling, then longitudinal, pulling ahead and then astern, back- wards and forwards, as if an irresistible power had re- solved to make sport with one. During several days we made but slow progress. But that we made any progress at all, was a remarkable proof of the genius and the mechanical skill of man. Nothing gives so striking an illustration of the wonderful effects of steam-power, as progress made in such circumstances. The waves were constantly rolling against us ; driven by a PART I.— PERSONAL NARRATIVE. 19 mighty swell which, no doubt, was increased in strength by the accumulated impetus of storms, currents, tides, all flowing in the same direction, and meeting us in all their power. And yet we made way against this combination of adverse elements. We appeared in some sort to beat na- ture in a battle with her mightiest forces. How amazing this power! There must be something providential and divine in this. God seems to have bestowed upon man the means of surmounting the difficulties of his position, and of overcoming even the ordinary current and course of his own laws, as they are developed in tides and winds. We decry miracles; what is a steamboat crossing the Atlantic, in the midst of opposing powers, but a miracle ? Have we not here a force above nature ? What is this but a miracle, in the sense in which miracles are generally de- scribed ? Is not a miracle the mastery of natural elements by mind, whether immediately by God, or mediately by his commission to man ? Do we not in this, and in simi- lar things, perceive the God of providence intrusting to man a physical and a social power, perfectly distinct and isolated above the laws of nature, so far as this is con- cerned ? Do we not see the mighty machine, instinct with artificial life, — imparted, it is true, directly by the skill of man, but given to him by the teaching and providence of God, — majestically riding above the storm and the waves, in despite of all opposition ? If in this — may we call it humanized ? — miracle we behold nature beaten in some of her forces and forms of power, why may not miracles, on a higher scale, and for more sacred purposes, wrought by the immediate interposition of God, be true and real ? We are surrounded by mysteries and miracles, if we had eyes to see them ; and certainly one of the most remarkable which are made visible is, that man's skill and science should be able to achieve so great an exploit as to impel a ship of fifteen hundred tons across the ocean, in despite of the united forces of wind and waves. 20 TOUR IN AMERICA. Nothing more occurred in our outward voyage of any consequence, till we arrived on the banks of Newfoundland, when whales appeared, snorting and blowing above the surface of the mighty deep, and a remarkable snow-storm. The whales I was not permitted to see, being confined to my cabin ; but the snow-storm was such as I had never witnessed before. It continued for the space of fifteen hours ; during this time it descended incessantly, in quan- tities which, had they fallen on the land, must have covered the surface to a great depth. This storm gave us a notion of the miserable condition of Newfoundland and Nova-Sco- tia, from which direction it came. No iceberg, however, appeared, and we continued our course in the midst of the dismal scene around us. We made Halifax in the middle of the night, and many of the young and active spirits on board landed, and, by moonlight, perambulated the place, being much delighted to set foot again on terra-firma. I was denied this plea- sure, being still confined to my berth, and not daring to stir to encounter the climate, which, a day or two before, had sent us the present of the snow-storm. On inquiring of a lady, who was about to land at Halifax, if she knew Mr. Bennett, our long-tried and excellent missionary there, she told me she was well acquainted with him, and lived nearly opposite to his dwelling. One of my anticipated pleasures, on reaching Halifax, was to see and converse with this venerable and eminently useful man, and the other missionaries ; but, being deprived of this gratifica- tion, all I could do was to send my Christian salutations. The next day we steamed along the coast of Nova-Sco- tia, which was clearly in sight for many leagues. It had the appearance of sand-hills, and seemed most dreary and barren. No doubt a nearer approach would have given a different view ; and a sojourn in the country itself, I was told, would, in a short period, as the season advanced, have banished the illusion altogether. We lost sight of PART I. — PERSONAL NARRATIVE. 21 land again in crossing the Bay of Fundy ; but were cheered by the expectation of seeing the shores of the United States. This expectation of soon landing produces mighty changes in the appearance of everybody. Countenances which before had been bilious and gloomy, brightened up ; parties whose lips had been closed by taciturn pro- pensities were now opened, and their tongues unloosed ; those who had confined themselves very much in their cabins, spending the time as best they could, were seen stretching their necks on deck, to gain a first glimpse of land ; and many who seemed, up to this time, to take little interest in those about them, became very friendly. Be- fore parting, a sort of confraternity was established. Family interests and affections appeared to have grown up ; and a number of strangers, who never saw each other before, parted as if bidding adieu to near relatives. These were certainly my own feelings, and I have reason to be- lieve that they were shared by others ; and, moreover, the sight of one of these fellow-passengers now, or at any time, would gladden my heart in a manner very unusual with the casual knowledge of men met with on land. While mentioning passengers, justice requires me to re- cord the fact, that, through the whole of the voyage, not the least unpleasantness, in word or deed, arose in any quarter. The captain was a most courteous and kind- hearted man. But to myself favours were shown from other quarters. Perceiving that I was suffering great pain, several young gentlemen, some of whom I had reason to believe were officers in the army going to Canada, mani- fested a degree of sympathy and attention not only very agreeable, but surprising, in young men full of life and spirits. But they had just left a home endeared to them, no doubt, by the attachments of parents, sisters, brothers ; and it seemed to be no constraint, either upon their nature or their education, to manifest sympathy and regard to a stranger in suffering. I saw, in some of these young gen- 22 TOUR IN AMERICA. tlemen, signs of strong emotion when conversation recalled their thoughts and feelings to their parents and homes. Let us do justice to man in all conditions of his existence. It is a pleasure to meet with exhibitions of filial piety any- where, but especially so in such circumstances. And, so far as my observation went, the morality of our little com- munity on board the " Acadia" was unsullied by any ex- ternal vice. CHAPTER II. Boston — The Sabbath — Changes of Doctrine — Methodist Preachers' Meeting at the Book Depot — Bunker Hill — The Common — The State-House — Churches — The City— Daniel Webster — Set out for New- York — Railroad Cars — The Country — New-Haven — The Sound— Scene on board the Steamer — New- York Harbour. On Sunday, April 23d, after a passage of fifteen days, we made Boston. To an inexperienced eye, the approach to the harbour is extremely intricate ; and several points are well fortified. One channel is so narrow, and the works so completely command the entance, that it seems impossi- ble for hostile ships to enter. The view of the city from the sea is exceedingly picturesque and beautiful. The greater part, standing on rising ground, presents to the ob- server the aspect of a place finely laid out, and adorned by numerous churches and public buildings. The water was sufficiently deep to allow us to place our noble vessel along- side the wharf, and step from the ship to the shore. We reached the landing-place about five o'clock in the after- noon, and were glad to set our feet again on solid land. The business of opening our trunks for the inspection of the custom-house officers immediately commenced. Standing quietly on the outside of the crowd, I was warned by my good friend, Dr. Paley, that if I did not bestir myself, and do something to get the officers to inspect my portman- teaus, I should be the last of the batch, and should be driven far into the dark ; saying, at the same time, he PART I. — PERSONAL NARRATIVE. 23 would help me to open them, and speak to one of the offi- cers. Both these kind offices he performed ; and after the man had glanced at the contents, he went away, and Dr. Paley told me I must pay three shillings for the trouble of inspection. This business being finished, I wended my way to the Revere Hotel, recommended by Mr. Weston, the American gentleman before mentioned, and found most comfortable accommodation. Having been advised by the doctor to have my face examined by a dentist as soon as I got on shore, the preliminaries of eating and drinking being over, I sent for one of these gentlemen. He was at church, and could not be obtained for some time. It may be proper to mention that the blessed Sabbath appeared, in our passage up the city, to be strictly observed by the descendants of the pilgrim fathers. They have very much changed their creed from stem Calvinism to the liberal system of Chan- ning ; but seem to retain their church-going habits in the midst of the change. The streets were perfectly quiet, few persons were seen in motion, whilst every place of worship was filled with orderly worshippers. It is, how- ever, a painful reflection, that the churches of such men as Cotton Mather should now be occupied by a race who preach a diluted kind of Socinianism. The glory has, in this case, surely departed ; for though the rugged doctrines of the first settlers were not, in our views, exactly accord- ing to the truth, yet the bold, broad, deep faith of the pil- grims in the verities of grace, the work of the Saviour, and the sovereign providence of God, were certainly infinitely preferable to the meagre and flimsy philosophy now an- nounced in their pulpits. Is not this an instance of reac- tion ?• The bow, as in many other cases, was pulled too far ; and the consequence has been, that the perception of the error has led to a rebound on the other side. After divine service, Dr. Hitchcock made his appearance. As soon as he entered he exclaimed, " Why, I am sure I 24 TOUR IN AMERICA. have seen you before. Did not you preach missionary sermons at Jewin-street, London, on such an occasion, and at such a time ?" " Yes, I certainly did," was the reply. " Ah, then, I heard you ; I was stopping at Mr. Cave's ; and you gave out the words, * Those dark Americans con- vert :' now that was too bad." I had, of course, to ex- plain that the hymn, which was composed more than a hundred years ago, could not relate to the European popu- lation of America, but to the aboriginal inhabitants, the Indians. The effect of seeing a man who knew me was like magic. The pain left me, and I willingly took his ad- vice to put off all idea of operations until the following morning. After performing two the next day, this gentle- man generously refused the proffered fee, saying he never took a fee from a minister. On Monday morning, Dr. Hitchcock undertook to inform the Methodist ministers of the place that I had arrived. In a short time the Rev. A. Stevens, editor of " Zion's Herald," made his appearance, with a profusion of apolo- gies that none of them had met me on landing, and con- ducted me to the house of one of the friends, who had kindly engaged to find me lodgings in case I landed at Bos- ton. I found this first Methodist minister whom I had the happiness to meet in America, a very intelligent and supe- rior man, full of kind feeling, and prepared to make my short stay as agreeable and instructive as possible. He first took me to the Book-Concern, where the preachers of the city were holding their weekly meeting. They had finished their business ; but I found a dozen or more of these good men, and had much very friendly conversation with them. They put many questions respecting English Methodism, and seemed greatly interested in our affairs. In turn, I proposed some queries to them, and obtained in- formation, of which I was before ignorant, respecting the nati: e of their work, and their modes of proceeding. Whilst this conversation was going on, my good friend PART I. — PERSONAL NARRATIVE. 25 Stevens had hired a vehicle to take me through and round the city. We set off in grand style, after the American fashion, dashing away through the crowded streets, and were not long before we were neatly jammed in the narrow space betwixt the body of a cart and its wheel. The collision broke no bones, and did no damage to our vehicle, though pretty severe, and sufficiently alarming to any one but a Yankee. My companion drove me to Bunker Hill, the scene of the famous battle of that name, and one of the first fought in the war of independence. The battle-ground is now surmounted by a pillar commemorative of the event. The site on which it stands has not much the appearance of a hill, being only sixty-two feet above the level of the sea. The foundation-stone was laid by La Fayette, on June 17th, 1825, being the jubilee, or fiftieth anniversary, of the battle. Its form is that of an obelisk, thirty feet square at the base, and sixteen feet four and a half inches at the top. The height from the base is two hundred and twenty-one feet. At the summit of this pillar is an ellipti- cal chamber, seventeen feet high, and eleven feet in dia- meter, with four windows, commanding a view in the direction of the four points of the compass. Ascending the steps of this monument, we obtained a most magnifi- cent view of the city, the sea, and the surrounding coun- try. The town, or rather three or four towns, as seen from this point, are curious enough. Boston proper is built on a peninsula, three miles long and one broad ; chosen pro- bably as furnishing the means of defence against the at- tacks of the Indians ; so, at least, it struck me at the time. But the moderns have managed to add to it what is called South Boston, formerly a part of Dorchester, and East Boston, anciently Noddle's Island. The peninsula had originally an uneven surface, and the place received the name of " Trimountain," so called from its three hills. The new portions are connected with the old and principal city 26 TOUR IN AMERICA. by various bridges and ferry-boats, all of which are seen from the monument. The place may not resemble Venice in its chief features, but it is Venetian in the fact of its ap- parently standing, if not in, yet very much surrounded by, water. My friend seemed to doubt whether I should have the magnanimity to ascend this monument of American prowess and independence, and was evidently surprised when he found that it was my purpose to do so. In such circum- stances, however, I thought the wiser way was to forget past quarrels, and make the best of present opportunities of observation and pleasure. It is of little use to cherish old grudges ; and, certainly, it can indicate nothing but folly for Englishmen and Americans to entertain ill feelings on account of national differences. After descending from the monument, my kind con- ductor hastened to the Common ; a fine piece of ground, ornamented with trees, which is, in point of fact, what we should call " a park." This Common is the public prome- nade of the good citizens of Boston, who resort to it for fresh air and recreation. This place possesses, also, some Methodistic traditionary fame. Let my friend Stevens give the history: — "In the centre of the Boston Common still stands a gigantic elm, the crowning ornament of the beau- tiful scenery. On a fine summer afternoon in July, 1*790, a man of middle age, of a serene but shrewd countenance, and dressed in a style of simplicity which might have been taken for the guise of a Quaker, took his stand upon a table beneath the branches of the venerable tree. Four persons approached, and gazed upon him with surprise while he sang a hymn. It was sung by his solitary voice ; at its conclusion he knelt down upon the table, and, stretching forth his hands, prayed with a fervour and unction so un- wonted in the cool and minute petitions of the Puritan pul- pits, that it attracted the groups of promenaders who had come to spend an evening hour in the shady walks, and by PART I. — PERSONAL NARRATIVE. 27 the time he rose from his knees they were streaming in processions from the different points of the Common to- wards him. While he opened his small Bible, and preached to them without notes, but in the demonstration of the Spirit and of power, the multitude grew into a dense mass, three thousand strong, eagerly catching every utterance of the singular stranger, and some of them receiving his mes- sage into ' honest and good hearts.' That bold evangelist was Jesse Lee, — the founder, under God, of Methodism in New-England."* After exploring the Common, we visited the State- House, that is, the parliament-house of the State of Massa- chusetts, standing on elevated ground at the upper end of the Common. The House was in session, and, at the time, engaged in their legislative functions. We met, on entering, in one of the lobbies, a tall, athletic gentleman, about sixty, his face and brow being marked with intelli- gence and deep thought. He belonged to the Senate, or Upper House ; and, after shaking hands with Mr. Stevens, was introduced to me as one of our brethren, — a noble Methodist. On leaving the Senate, we entered the House, as it is called, meaning the House of Representatives. We were conducted into the body of the chamber, and took our seats amongst the members. This being the first time I had seen an American legislative assembly, I, of course, felt curious to see and hear all I could. The hall is circular, or semi-circular, the seats of the members rising gradually above each other in amphitheatrical style, each being understood to belong to the gentlemen returned for certain constituencies, and furnished with a desk for the convenience of writing. The debate going on was not very interesting, having relation to a fishery. We heard three or four speakers. There was nothing that could be desig- nated eloquence ; for who could be eloquent about catch- * Stevens's « Memorials of the Introduction of Methodism into the Eastern States," pp. 1, 2. 28 TOUR IN AMERICA. ing fish ? But we had good sense, and no more imperfec- tions of English and of style than may be heard any day in our own House of Commons. The chamber was nearly full of members ; every man seemed to be attending to his duties, and intent upon the business that was before him. We saw here portraits of all the old Puritans of former times ; such as Winthrop, Eliot, and others ; a fine group of noble heads and glorious characters. But the chief at- traction was a statue of Washington, by Chantrey. With- out pretending to any great skill in the fine arts, this statue arrested me certainly more than any work of sculpture I ever beheld. The form, the drapery, the attitude, the features, the expression, are exquisitely given. The great patriot met, in Chantrey, an artist worthy of himself. By the by, it struck me that some of the features of Washing- ton and John Wesley are much alike. Washington's fea- tures, indeed, seem to be larger and broader than Wesley's, and may not present to view so prominent and beautiful a profile ; but the lower part of the face appears very much to resemble that of Wesley, and the expression is very similar. From this central point of interest we made our way through the entire city, and beheld its churches, public buildings, shops, and private dwellings. Some parts of Boston have an air of antiquity, somewhat unusual in an American town. Faneuil Hall, erected in 1742, is much celebrated, and is, in reality, a fine building. The old State-House, at the head of State-street, is also a venerable pile. It was originally built in 1658; and, after suffering from fire, was rebuilt in 174 7. It is said there are seventy- three churches in the city, of various dimensions and archi- tectural beauty. I was most attracted, through the power of association, with those which were occupied by the Puritan fathers. The old churches bear the stamp of the plain, simple, spiritual faith of their founders ; the curious will meet little to gratify taste, but the serious Christian PART I.— PERSONAL NARRATIVE. 29 much to elicit reflection. The shops are handsome, and apparently well furnished ; and in the suburbs there are fine private houses. The city of Boston is thought to be more like an English town than any other in the Union, and this opinion is well founded ; but the resemblance is not exact in all respects. Many of the shops are stores ; the private houses are not laid out in our style, but often much better, being more spacious and airy ; the windows and ventilation are different, being framed to suit the state of the clirnate ; and the hotels, the accommodation, the attention paid, so far as I was concerned, far exceeded any- thing ordinarily to be met with in England. The Bostonians are considered the most intellectual and cultivated community in the United States. But of this my opportunities furnished no means of judging. They seemed, indeed, different from the New- York people ; the latter exhibiting a much more commercial character. But do they excel the people of Baltimore ? Not, it struck me, in gentility of bearing, though they may outvie them in intellectual strength and cultivation. At any rate, they have taken the lead in all social and political movements of any consequence. They form the true Yankee stock, among whom the name originated, and their sentiments and opinions have given law to the whole Union. I just saw the shadow of their great citizen, Daniel Webster, passing in the street ; who had returned from his senatorial duties to attend the obsequies of a beloved son, who had fallen in the Mexican war ; and, to complete the affliction, it was thought by the time the remains of the son had arrived in Boston, a daughter would have ceased to exist, and be pre- pared to share the same grave with her brother. Such are the events of every quarter of the world ! Neither talent nor station can ward off the misfortunes and sorrows of life. The people were not wanting in sympathy ; but what sym- pathy can reach such woes as these ? The day after visiting Boston, I set out in company with 30 TOUR IN AMERICA. Mr. Stevens, who, with his wife and other parties, was going to New- York, on their way to the Conference. We travelled by railroad to New-Haven. This was the first time I saw an American "railroad-car," as it is called. My reading had furnished me with a good stock of preju- dice, and I expected anything rather than an agreeable journey. Bad rails, jolting carriages, disagreeable and odious accommodation, with the likelihood of getting off the line, and being maimed or knocked on the head, were the several ideas which filled my mind. First appearances did not tend to remove these impressions. The carriages looked like great monstrous machines ; the wheels much larger, and the bodies prodigiously higher, than in our own country. These feelings were soon dissipated. I found myself hi a spacious saloon, with an aisle, or path-way, down the middle, and high enough for the tallest man to stand or walk upright. The seats appeared more promising still. They were placed across from the aisle to the win- dow, and intended to hold two passengers each, beautifully lined and cushioned with velvet. These seats were so con- structed as to turn up, and form a sort of family pew, in which the inmates might sit face to face. These compart- ments, so formed, accommodate four persons ; who might, if they chose, hold a friendly t&te-a-tHe as they journeyed on. The saloon is windowed from end to end ; and these windows draw up and down to admit the fresh air, at the discretion of the passengers. Each of these saloons is also furnished with an excellent stove, heated as the weather may require. I know not exactly how many persons one of these rooms will accommodate, but certainly not less than sixty or eighty, and they are generally full. The speed is not so rapid as our first-class trains, but equal to some of those which move at a moderate rate. Travelling on, I began to think the thing was not so very bad. Apprehension of an overthrow soon gave way to confidence, and, so far as safety was a question, the matter PART I. — PERSONAL NARRATIVE. 31 was settled. But then the great room, and the juxta- position with all these Americans ! What of this ? I soon found occasion to be satisfied with this matter also. By the spaciousness of the saloons, and the means of mode- rating the atmosphere as occasion required, we obtained good air ; much more so than in the draughts or heated carriages in our own country. Then, again, the windows being continued from end to end on each side, we were spared the mortifying disappointment always felt when a fine view is within range by one of our lines ; we could gaze for a considerable length of time, and to a great ex- tent, upon every object worth notice in the country. The landscapes obtained in this way were often very fine and picturesque. The state of the coimtry, the progress of cultivation, the buildings and towns, and, in fine, everything going on within sight of our route, might thus be pretty accurately seen. And then to be brought into contact with the people, — what can be so interesting to a traveller as this ? He is in search of living men ; he desires to wit- ness their habits, to judge of their character, to hear their conversation, and to join in it. A " railroad- car " in Ame- rica furnishes fine opportunities for all this. These con- siderations soon put an end to my disquiet of mind, and I began to think that, in this affair, the Yankee had improved on the Englishman; and that his mode of constructing carriages, and managing railroad business, did no discredit to his sagacity and business talent. The country through which we journeyed did not pre- sent many points of interest. The cultivation was on the whole good ; but the soil rocky and poor. The season, I found, was not so far advanced as in our own country when I left it ; and now, towards the end of April, but little vegetation appeared. The Americans declaim against our beautiful hedge-rows ; I suppose, on the principle of people who, not possessing an advantage themselves, are jealous in the case of others enjoying it. Be this as it 32 TOUR IN AMERICA. may, there are few, scarcely any, quick-set hedges in America ; and I was told that the English thorn would not grow in their climate. Nothing can be more odious than the fences of the country ; the landscape is perfectly de- formed by their appearance. The farmers employ long pieces of wood, no doubt cut up for the purpose. These are laid lengthwise, crossing each other at the end, and piled up one upon another a sufficient height to keep their cattle from going astray. This mode of fence causes the whole country to look like one prodigious wood-yard ; and, in the absence of this wood, stone is employed. The en- closures are of greater or lesser extent, in which cattle and sheep are seen grazing, or corn growing, as the case may be. The villages and towns on our route appeared very pretty ; the houses being chiefly built of wood, painted white, and the window-blinds green. By these means an air of great cleanliness was secured, and many of these wooden buildings rose to magnificence, having a mansion- like appearance. I found afterwards that houses thus built of wood are capable of excluding wind and weather, and securing as great an amount of comfort and warmth as the more substantial erections of brick or stone. Springfield, the seat of one of the government armories, is a beautiful place ; the whole country having a most pictu- resque appearance, well cultivated, and the soil much bet- ter than any we had passed over. Our line, for many miles, lay by the side of the Connecticut ; and, as this was the first of the great American rivers which I had seen, I felt greatly excited by its appearance. It is a magnificent stream, though vastly inferior to many which I afterwards visited. The banks are very beautiful, and rich in meadow- land, studded with farm-houses and peaceful villages. My reading furnished me with some reminiscences respecting the first occupancy of this country by European settlers. How different now to the time when Indian tribes paddled their canoes in these waters, and disputed with the white PART I.— PERSONAL NARRATIVE. 33 man, by war, by stratagem, by fire and blood, the posses- sion of the soil ! These sanguinary contests had taken place on every foot of ground we were traversing. Women and children had been cut off, and taken into a cruel cap- tivity, in the absence of the men ; and it was not till a vast amount of human life had been sacrificed, that peace and abundance were made to take the place of a ruthless con- test, which ended in the extirpation or banishment of the original lords of the soil. Peaceful flocks were now graz- ing, watched over by the children of the villages, where the war-whoop and the scalping-knife used to hold dominion. We finished our railroad journey at New-Haven, and embarked on board a steamer. Our course lay down the Sound, skirted on one side by the Connecticut shore, and on the other by Long Island. The Sound is a most mag- nificent inlet to New- York from the great Atlantic. Being now on board an American steamer for the first time, I was intent upon seeing whether the people indulged in those tobacco habits which travellers have almost uniformly attributed to them. We had been pretty free from any- thing offensive in the railroad car ; and I began to doubt whether the reports were true, or to think they were exag- gerations. I was soon undeceived. The practice in ques- tion was almost general ; and nearly the whole deck soon became coloured and almost impassable.' Among the rest of the passengers were two young people, male and female, who were evidently not man and wife, but in the probable way of becoming so. They were very respectable in their appearance and attire, — the young man having the bearing of a farmer of the first class ; and the lady, it is to be pre- sumed, a farmer's daughter, of prepossessing appearance, dressed very genteelly, and withal wearing, what seemed to be pretty generally the fashion in America, a green veil. Our young couple, of course, avoided the public, kept themselves in close quarters in one corner of the deck, and were in ardent conversation. In pacing backwards and 2* 34 TOUR IN AMERICA. forwards, my attention was attracted to this scene ; and I observed that the young gentleman, about every five mi- nutes or less, poured forth a stream of tobacco saliva at the lady's feet. This, it is to be presumed, was by way of libation to his goddess ; it was an offering of love. The thing seemed a perfect matter of course ; and neither the lady, nor anybody else, appeared in the least annoyed. It may be as well to dismiss this whole affair at once ; and I am sorry to say, that, though I saw occasion to differ in opinion with American travellers on many points, in this I was obliged to agree with them. The deck of steamers seems to be the favourite arena for this kind of exploit. I declare, I saw men, again and again, sitting under the awnings of their beautiful vessels, when it would have been quite as convenient, and often more so, to pour the con- tents of their mouths into the water as upon the deck; but they invariably preferred the latter, and rendered it next to impossible to move without treading in this liquid nuisance. Heaven is always propitious. In the midst of what was so offensive in man, nature presented great beauties and glorious scenery on every side. The entrance into New- York harbour on the side Ave took is very intricate, requir- ing great skill on the part of the pilot. We had to pass a place which English jack-tars, when New- York was a Bri- tish province, designated "Hell-gate," not a very religious, but certainly a very appropriate, name. It is a sort of whirlpool, and the waters are much agitated ; while the rocks in the river are of such a nature as to narrow up the channel, and render destruction certain if the exact course is not hit by the pilot's skill. In a bend of this intricate channel we were within an ace of running down a vessel, which, turning the point unseen, and getting into the cur- rent, was rendered perfectly helpless in herself, and was exposed to the instant rush of our steamer. With great promptitude and skill our captain turned his vessel nearly PART I. — PERSONAL NARRATIVE. 35 round, so as completely to avoid the ill-fated ship, and she passed safely down the channel. The sight for some mi- nutes was horrific. I felt perfectly certain, that nothing could save us from being brought into collision ; and, had this taken place, one or both vessels must have gone to the bottom very near the place so ominously named " Hell- gate." We were spared this fate by a gracious interposi- tion of Providence. As we advanced, we obtained a good view of the build- ings on the banks of the channel. The villas of the citizens of New- York are seen on each side ; and many of them are splendid and superb. The wealthy merchants and others seek repose from business, and invigorated health, in these princely retreats. Ship -building establishments, of great magnitude, are found in these quarters ; and there is a goodly number of hospitals, asylums, prisons, and places of a similar description in view. New- York harbour itself breaks upon the view of the voyager on turning a promontory, all at once. The sight is dazzling. Nothing can be more imposing than the harbour, the shipping, and the city, thus bursting upon the astonished beholder. It is difficult, without drawings, to convey a true idea of this magnificent port — one of the finest in the world. It is necessary to remark, that the city stands upon the fork of two great rivers ; one to the east, called East River, the other to the North, called North, or Hudson's River. Opposite this tongue of land, at a considerable distance, is the lower end of Long Island, which has the effect of land- locking the harbour, guarding it from storms, and breaking the swell of the Atlantic. By reason of this contiguity of Long Island, the harbour possesses all the qualities of a prodigious basin, with the tongue, on which New- York stands, projecting into its centre. This fine piece of water is entered by two channels ; the one from the Sound, which we passed, and the other immediately from the Atlantic. This latter entrance is so narrow, that it is capable of per- 36 TOUR IN AMERICA. feet defence ; and it seems impossible for any vessels to pass without being exposed to certain destruction from the raking fire of the batteries. The other inlet to the harbour possesses natural defences, as no ship of war can ascend the rocky and shallow channel we passed. The ships are moored around the tongue on which the city stands, which forms a sort of crescent with the out- ward circle projecting into the water. Many hundred ves- sels of all sizes, some of the largest class, lay at anchor around this point of land — if it can be called at anchor — for there is depth of water sufficient to permit them to touch the wharves without the use of the anchor. Here, in crescent form, these vessels lay, apparently all round the lower point of the city ; and many of them, ascending the two rivers, find a resting-place on the banks of these beau- tiful streams. From this it will appear, that in case Long Island was removed, New-York would be anything but a harbour ; and it would be altogether indebted to its rivers for a place of shelter for its ships. Long Island is the pa- tron saint of New- York, the guardian of its interests — indeed, the cause of its greatness. CHAPTER III. New- York — Harpers' Printing and Publishing Establishment — The Methodist Book Concern — The Exchange and Custom-House — Excitement respecting an anticipated Revolution in England — Charitable Institutions — The City — Leave for Baltimore — David Creamer, Esq. — The Journey — New-Jersey — Newark— Princeton— Trenton — The Delaware — Philadelphia— The Chesa- peake Bay. On making the landing-place we were met by Dr. Bangs, the historian of Methodism in America, Dr. Corson, au- thor of " Loiterings in various Countries in Europe," and two of the Harpers, who all welcomed our arrival with hearty greetings. I was appointed to take up my residence in the family of Mr. Fletcher Harper, who at once con- ducted me to his hospitable home. Besides Mrs. Harper, PART I. — PERSONAL NARRATIVE. 37 sen., I here found a young lady recently married to one of Mr. Harper's sons, a countrywoman, from London, the daughter of Mr. Jeremiah Smith. Of course, I was at home at once ; had it not been so, I must have possessed a most morose and misanthropic nature ; for everything was done for my comfort which friendship and affection could sug- gest. This was the first private family I had been domi- ciled with in America ; and certainly the reception I met with, and the habits of the family, tended to give me a most favourable impression of the virtues of private life in the United States. at But besides the order, decorum, and happiness, so appa- of c in this Christian family, the house itself struck me as extf of the most perfect I had ever seen. Everything in Tlmerica is executed on the most improved scale of com- ncon sense. Not that there is any want of taste, of ele- gance, of decoration ; but the basis of every arrangement seems to be that of utility and comfort. This house, so excellent of its kind, is but a sample of the rest. It stood in one of the streets, was one of a row of houses of the same size and form, and was neither greater nor better in appearance than those by which it was surrounded. This gives some insight into the style in which the higher class of merchants and tradesmen in New- York live. I had only two days to spare for visiting the lions in New-York, and therefore set about the business in good earnest. It is surprising how much may be done in a short time, when resolution and industry are brought into requi- sition. On the first day, my good friend Mr. Harper con- ducted me through the city, showing me first his own establishment, the Methodist Book-Concern, the Custom- House, the Exchange, Trinity Church, Broadway, the land- side of the harbour, visiting several magnificent ships, warehouses, and the rest. Mr. Harper's printing and publishing establishment is as remarkable as anything in the way of business can well be 38 TOUR IN AMERICA. imagined. Everything is done on the same premises. A great number of presses are at work ; and one, called the "Adams press," from the name of the inventor, is remark- able. It was partly self-acting, an instrument of the nature of pincers, or rather a hand, taking hold of the paper as a roller revolved, and placing it so as to receive the de- signed impression ; which, on coming from under the cylin- der, was received by a child, and placed in order. I understood that this machine could print, if necessary, letter-press to an indefinite length, — if the paper would admit it, of miles in extent. I saw the workmen forming- stereotype plate-models, — a curious process. Vast 13, of these plates, having done their duty in time past, ne lying in store for further orders. In these extensivehe mises, a great number of females were employed in stii- ing, and matters of that nature. These females were unc the inspection of a Roman Catholic forewoman, of gre intelligence and energy. She was from England, had liveu in London ; and, though a Romanist, had strayed into City- Road chapel, and, having heard me preach at that place, at once recognized me, and seemed well pleased to see any one from home. We had, on entering the work-room of these females, an example of American character and manners. How did Mr. Harper, one of the principals of the firm, and master of these people, accost them ? Did he rudely vociferate his orders in dictatorial and impera- tive language, after the English fashion ? No ! On entering their apartment, he took off his hat, paid them the compli- ments of the morning, inquired after their health, and addressed them by the term " young ladies." Was this affectation ? Not in the least. It had all the appearance of habit ; and certainly in their bearing, dress, the absence of all sluttishness, these females deserved respectful treat- ment. This will be sneered at by many of our countrymen, as a specimen of Yankeeism. Well, be it so ; but, let us ask, Which is the man of breeding, the gentleman ? — the PART I. — PERSONAL NARRATIVE. 39 boisterous, imperious, swearing John Bull, giving his or- ders to his servants as if they were his slaves ? — or this American, thus addressing the people who supply the hands, the sinews, the labour, (though he may furnish the genius,) which are creating his fortune ? Besides the exten- sive business transacted at this establishment, these gentle- men have branch-establishments in various parts of the country, on a large scale. This firm reprints many English books ; and, having nothing to pay for copyright and authorship, they are enabled to get out and publish our most approved works at a very cheap rate. By reason of these cheap editions of our literature, the fact is that English authors are more extensively known in America than in our own country. The light reading of the day, the leading periodicals, novels, and productions of this class, have a prodigious cir- culation. But standard works by our best writers, whether in history, philosophy, theology, or the sciences and arts, are in universal circulation. This importation of knowledge is, no doubt, a present advantage ; but it sadly militates against creative talent in the States. It is, indeed, con- sidering their youth as a nation, and the hard and material work they have to do, a matter of astonishment that the competition is so successful, and that America has furnished so many able writers. I was extremely sorry to perceive that the Americans exceed us as a novel-reading people. At every public place, the termini of the rail-road, landing-places of the steamboat, and often on board as well, numbers of lads are found vending this trash. The people in general, the ladies especially, are continually seen amusing or exciting them- selves by revelling in this world of fancy, often extremely vulgar and foolish. To give an instance : On one of my journeys by railroad, there sat before me a family, consist- ing of a husband, wife, and child, perhaps two years old. This mother and wife, a very genteel and lady-like person, 40 TOUR IN AMERICA. got hold of one of these novels, and scarcely lifted her eyes from her book the whole of the distance they travelled, which occupied the greater part of the day. The husband, in the mean time, had the entire care of the little boy. It cried, and he patted it into good-humour ; it slept on his lap, and he fanned it ; it required food, he ransacked the reticule to find cakes and sweetmeats, and, in fact, was a perfect nurse. All this time the mother was completely absorbed in her tale, and took not the least notice of either husband or boy ; and, in fact, seemed unconscious that they were present, or that she had any duties to perform towards one or the other. This pernicious habit is eating into the American mind, and will produce sad and deleterious effects on a great scale. We went next to the Methodist Book-Concern, a large and well-conducted establishment. The premises are very extensive, being designed to facilitate both the printing and publishing departments. This institution is the centre of Methodist literature in the United States. As in this coun- try, this literature is of a somewhat distinctive character ; the Methodist press being chiefly, though not exclusively, engaged in the publication of works emanating from the body, and designed for its use. The Christian Advocate and Journal, and the Methodist Quarterly Review, consti- tute the periodical literature of this establishment. But though the former of these works makes its appearance in the newspaper form, it partakes much more of the character of a magazine than a newspaper ; the latter is what its name designates, and it is conducted with considerable ability. The standard theology of the Methodist Church being the same as our own, it follows, that the works of Mr. Wesley, and the most distinguished of our English writers, constitute the staple of their trade. Vast piles of these books are seen in their warehouses, prepared for cir- culation through the country ; and it is pleasing to know that the instruction, comfort, and encouragement which PART I. — PERSONAL NARRATIVE. 41 these writings are so well calculated to afford, will alike find their way into the log-hut of the backwoodsman, to the negro in his bondage, to the Indian in his expatriation, and to the abodes of the more wealthy citizen. But though the fathers of the Methodist body on this side of the water are in general circulation, yet the Ame- ricans are not destitute of sterling and valuable writings of their own. Theology, sacred criticism, specimens of pulpit eloquence, biography, narrative, abound among them. But, as in the case of the community at large, the Method- ist body is too busy ; is too extensively engaged in the vocation of the evangelist pioneer ; has too much rough work to accomplish in clearing away rubbish and laying the foundations of their church ; is obliged to carry on operations on too extended a scale, and in the midst of populations demanding incessant pastoral and ministerial care ; to make it possible to devote themselves, in any numbers, and to any extent, to recondite studies. The Methodist press, notwithstanding these disadvantages, is effecting good service for religion, and the progress of general knowledge. As their colleges become more effi- cient, as residence and leisure are accorded to the pro- fessors, as facilities for study and learning are furnished, no doubt the religious literature of the church will become progressively much more rich and elevated. But at present this Book- Concern must be chiefly con- sidered as a centre of religious light and influence, in aid of the living ministry. In this view of the subject it will be seen as possessing immense value and importance. Its immediate and great purpose is now to promote the work of God, to incite to pious and zealous activity, to confer instruction on the privileges and duties of the religious life, and to point out the way to heaven. It deals but little in speculation. The condition of the Church will not allow of this. It is not sufficiently advanced to find leisure for either the higher or the more polished subjects of religious 42 TOUR IN AMERICA. literature. The philosophy, the poetry, the refined abstrac- tions of theology, must, in every case, rest on the founda- tions of general knowledge. To lay these foundations is, at present, the business of the Methodist Church. In this department they are making admirable progress ; and, this being the vocation of the institution, its utmost energy is devoted to this object. Its radiations of light reach through thousands of miles, to the remotest extremities of the Union ; its voice of exhortation, of admonition, of reproof, of warning, is heard in the wilderness, the village, the city, of every part of the continent ; its life, like electrical fire, is fusing itself into the masses of the population ; and its lessons of divine truth are, as we trust, laying the basis of a pure, holy, practical Christianity, as extensively as the habitations of this numerous people. In connexion with these premises is the committee-room, for the management of missionary affairs ; a plain and hum- ble place, with an elevated seat for the chairman, and wooden benches for the members. Suspended upon the walls of this room were the portraits of the bishops of the church, living and dead, plain, but intelligent and sedate men ; Bishop Asbury standing out from the rest by his ro- bust character and fine features. On the premises was a vile picture of Dr. Newton. 1 remember, at the time of the doctor's visit to the States, reading a newspaper de- scription of his person and preaching, in which the moral painter said, among other things, " with a little of the d — 1 in his eye." The author of this sketch might have been the real painter of our beloved countryman ; for he has most certainly put a sufficient quantity of the evil one in his eye. This is unreal ; there is no demon there ; nature, or grace, has done just the reverse, and given to that eye, with its intelligence and genius, the bold, direct, simple expression of truth and honesty. We visited the Exchange and Custom-House ; splendid buildings, finely laid out for business, and constructed of PART I. — PERSONAL NARRATIVE. 43 massive blocks of granite. To obtain a new view of the city and harbour, we mounted to the top of one of these edifices, and were well repaid for the trouble. The city was seen to a great extent, with its churches, public buildings, and busy streets ; and the harbour, the sea, Long Island, and the adjacent country, appeared in all their beauty and glory. Mr. Harper, who was known to the heads of these es- tablishments, introduced me as an Englishman just arrived. They were very solicitous for news, and desirous to elicit my opinions respecting our state, and the probabilities of a revolution. We had sailed from Liverpool on the Satur- day previously to the great Chartist meeting held on Ken- nington Common on the following Monday ; so that our packet carried out the announcement of the intended de- monstration, without its solution. This produced great excitement and apprehension as to the result. These gen- tlemen pressed me as to the real facts of the case, and the probabilities of revolutionary success. This they did, not in the spirit of glorying, or desire of conquest on the side of the Chartists, but, on the contrary, of a real sympathy with our country, and of anxiety for the preservation of the public peace ; but they evidently entertained strong apprehensions. I endeavoured to dissipate these alarms, and told them I was certain we should have no revolution ; that the Chartists had no hold in the country, they were mere chaff, a bubble on the surface of the waters, and that the government would gain a very easy victory. " Well," said they, " the queen is gone to the Isle of Wight ; the ministers must have some reason for dread, or they would not have advised her removal to that place." It was re- plied, that she was partial to that residence, and her cir- cumstances made it necessary for her to seek the quiet and bracing air of that retreat ; that there was nothing at all in that fact. " Well, but then there is Ireland," it was said ; " the Irish are threatening a rebellion ; and will not they 44 TOUR IN AMERICA. and the Chartists coalesce, and bring about a revolution ?" The answer was, If any other parties had employed the language which the Irish agitators had made use of, there would be reason to fear ; but the bombastic bellowing of these people, which had been heard so loud and so long, would come to very little ; and, moreover, it was question- able whether they would really make any movement at all, inasmuch as the assassin never made his purpose known ; and it was very unlikely that these men would proclaim their rebellious purposes, in case they really intended to revolt. In the course of these conversations the Chartists were called " the people." It was replied, that they were not " the people ;" and that the real people of England were a very different class ; were well satisfied with their institutions, and would certainly defend them, and have the ability to do so successfully. From these interviews and conversations I felt con- vinced, that the class of men with whom I thus casually held intercourse had no sympathy with the malcontents of either England or Ireland ; and that it was their anxious desire that we might escape the dangers which threatened us. Whether my notion be true or not, or to what extent, I know not ; but I certainly fancied, at the time of these conversations, (for in substance they were constantly oc- curring,) that some of the parties seemed somewhat re- lieved of their fears and anxieties. Be this as it may, it was a pleasure to deal fairly by one's country ; and a greater pleasure still, to find that the true, the genuine, the home-born Americans were not so inimical as to desire her overthrow. At dinner with a party of ministers, and other friends, the conversation turned on our institutions compared with the American : and some reflections being in pleasantry made on our queenty office and the aristo- cracy, this called up Mrs. Harper, jun., our countrywoman, who most heroically defended the queen and nobility, na- turalized, as I suppose she was, as an American. Her PART I. — PERSONAL NARRATIVE. 45 kind-hearted father-in-law, I perceived, delighted to put her on the defensive, which always called forth a fine burst of English feeling. How long does it take to extin- guish the love of home, of country ? In fine natures, this can never be effected ; it is an undying, an immortal passion. The next day our good friend Mr. Francis Hall, and other friends, took me to see the charitable institutions be- longing to the city. We visited a hospital, presided over by Dr. Reese, a Methodist physician ; a man of remarkable energy, and of great celebrity in his profession. We then made our way to an establishment, a Refuge, half prison and half school, for the reformation of young delinquents of both sexes. This institution we found, also, under the management of Methodists. The matron, a strong-minded and sensible woman, took us to view the female depart- ment ; and from her, as well as from the master on the other side, we were informed that their success was very considerable, that many of the boys and girls, through the influence of this institution, turned out good and virtuous citizens. The Dumb and Deaf Asylum has been so often described by such writers as Basil Hall, Charles Dickens, and others, that it cannot be necessary to enter into de- tails. The inmates, however, are the most interesting class of human beings which can well be met with. Na- ture seems, in some measure, to have compensated the loss of one sense, by giving peculiar delicacy and vividness to others. As everything is done by the eye, this organ seemed to possess extraordinary flexibility and poAver. The whole soul appeared to throw herself into this bright and beaming orb. Such expression I never saw. Let us mention one incident. I desired the principal to convey to them, by the usual means, our sincere thanks for their kindness in allowing us to put them to the trouble of go- ing through their various exercises for our gratification. The expression on their countenances, and in their gestures, but especially in the eye, when this was conveyed to them, 46 TOUR IN AMERICA. was indescribable. At how small a cost is it often in our power to excite emotions of pleasure ! Who would not do this in the case of those who are shut out, by the inscruta- ble providence of God, from so many sources of enjoyment ? But that which most interested me, in this day's excur- sion, was the African Asylum for the orphan children of people of colour. Here, again, we found Methodists en- gaged in the entire management of the institution. The master, mistress, and teachers were all of our own persua- sion. The design of the establishment is to provide a maintenance and education for the orphan children of the poor afflicted African race. The name, the wrongs, the colour of these children, I must confess, awakened all my sympathies. The building was spacious, and wears the appearance of perfect order and cleanliness ; and the do- mestic portion of the business is evidently well conducted, the children having the look of health and happiness. We were taken into the school-room to see the little orphans ; and what a sight ! They were of all imaginable colours, and nearly of all sizes ; some almost infants, and others nearly grown up. What seemed most astonishing to the ignorant in such matters, was the fact that some of them were, to our unpractised eye, perfectly white ; not exactly the white of the European, but pale, delicate, and very beautiful. The countenance had altogether lost the negro cast, — thick lips, prominent cheek-bones, woolly hair, and all the other characteristics ; and, in their place, the aqui- line nose, black, straight hair, in most cases a beautiful mouth, gave them a Circassian cast, without the florid com- plexion and vivacity of the race. Why these fine and beautiful specimens of human nature are treated as Afri- cans in the United States, and on this flimsy plea cast out of society, who can tell ? Others of these children, how- ever, had retained the perfect African physiognomy, and were as black as jet. Indeed, this interesting group va- ried from white, through every shade of colour, to perfect PART I. — PERSONAL NARRATIVE. 47 ebony. There sat one little creature at her desk, scarcely high enough to reach its edge, perfectly black, and an inimitable picture of docility and happiness. The image of this child can never be forgotten ! Poor African, it had no consciousness of misfortune or trouble, of degradation and injury ! To know that that innocent little creature must grow up in the midst of a system of proscription, and be punished as long as life shall remain, for no other ima- ginable crime than the colour of its skin, is painful to think of, but absolutely certain. These forlorn children were put through their school- exercises, and evinced no deficiency of intellect, but, on the other hand, great acuteness and aptitude to learn. They sang us some of their sweet and pathetic ditties, having relation to their circumstances ; which, with the thought of their fate, went to the bottom of one's soul, and stirred every emotion. Being presented with some little gratuity to procure them sweetmeats, their happiness seemed com- plete ; and we took our leave in the midst of their child- like farewells ; but on our own part with something more than even powerful emotions. On our return we called to see the Croton water-works, connected with a remarkable aqueduct of that name, thirty- three miles in length, thrown over gullies, rivers, valleys, ravines, and all sorts of impediments, to the point which we visited ; from whence it pours its life-giving streams by innumerable pipes through the entire city. The city of New- York, the commercial metropolis of America, bears all the marks of increasing wealth, and of a great destiny. Its mercantile establishments, its banks, its shops, its hotels, are on the most magnificent scale. Wall-street, Broadway, and other streets, are equal to any- thing which can be imagined, as thoroughfares and places of business. The public buildings, except those which are connected with trade, are not first-rate. Romanism never established itself in this place ; and Romanism alone, of all 48 TOUR IN AMERICA. religious systems, has left great ecclesiastical monuments behind it : where it has not prevailed, we look in vain for any splendid specimens of antiquarian grandeur. Here are pretty churches ; as Trinity, a very beautiful specimen of architecture ; but it is like an infant in a costly dress, com- pared with the old remains of Europe. Aristocracy, an- other element of greatness, which has left behind noble remains of feudal grandeur, never obtained here ; and is now more out of vogue than ever. We have no venerable castles, manor-houses, mansions, from this quarter. Riches will produce their accustomed results at a future day ; but not yet. At present the laws of property dissipate large fortunes, by dividing them equally among children ; and even the demi-aristocracy, such as it was at the pe- riod of the Revolution, is now very much brought down to the American level. It seemed strange, in such a city, to see no gentlemen's carriages with footmen in livery. They may, for aught I know, exist to some extent ; but as far as I recollect, I never saw one. This may be considered a good or an evil, according to the taste and notions of men ; but to people who witness these pageants so con- stantly and in such numbers in this country, the contrast is striking. The streets of New- York are very spacious ; and what adds much to their beauty and comfort, is found in their being planted with fine chestnuts and poplars, which throw their agreeable shade over the foot-passengers. I had no opportunity of attending any religious service, so that I cannot speak on such questions as pulpit elo- quence, the manner of conducting worship, the numbers and spirit of the auditors, and the fervour or decorum ob- servable in these assemblies. But the people and minis- ters whom I had the pleasure of meeting, appeared to me to be very intelligent, thoughtful, and eminent Christians. Our people, indeed, were going to regard the day I left as a day of fasting and prayer, for God's blessing on the Con- PART I. — PERSONAL NARRATIVE. 49 ference ; — a most laudable arrangement. They urged me to stay to preach, which I desired to do ; but had I done so, I must have sacrificed Washington ; and this could not be thought of. Hence, after spending two of the most interesting days of my existence, I prepared to start for Baltimore on the Friday morning. Our party consisted of the Rev. James Porter, a presid- ing elder in one of the New-England Conferences, and au- thor of a good and heart-stirring little volume, called " The True Evangelist," — and David Creamer, Esq., a merchant living at Baltimore, with others. This gentleman left an employment dear to his heart, at New- York, for the pur- pose of accompanying me to his native city. He had been employed for several years in studying the hymns and po- etry of the Wesleys ; and was, at the time, employed in bringing out a work, partly historical and partly critical, through the press, on this interesting subject. He had spared neither trouble nor expense in the pursuit of his object, employing all sorts of agents in Europe to collect every edition in existence of Charles Wesley's poetic effusions. I am not able to give an opinion of this work, as it was not published at the time I left ;* but from a portion of " copy" shown me on our route, I judged it would prove an acceptable and useful addition to the literature of the American Methodist Church. It had been submitted to the inspection of a committee of the Baltimore Conference, who reported favourably, and the Conference recommended the work to the public. This gentleman, like all fine enthusiasts, seemed to live in Wesleyan poetry. It was his ideal of everything beautiful and glorious ; his mind was fascinated and absorbed in his theme ; he discoursed not of politics, or merchandise, or material things, but of Charles Wesley, of sacred songs, of metres, sublimities, and devotional praise tyj God. It was really refreshing to see a young man, a * [The work has since been published, underthe title of Methodist Hymnolo- gy; and is now on sale at the Methodist Book Concern.] 3 50 TOUR IN AMERICA. merchant, in active life, enabled to turn his thoughts so completely from " buying, and selling, and getting gain," as to devote his time and energies to a subject so delicate and sacred. But these Americans are an amazingly ener- getic race ; and, besides, everybody has scope, room, en- couragement. To develop everything having life, soul, intellect, seems to be the American principle, whether found in poetry or prose. The public, and the churches as well, glory in any man, no matter whether lay or cleric, belonging either to the category of talent or piety. Their rule evidently is, to give everybody a chance, to foster, to prompt, to lead on, and make the best of every one's facul- ties and power. Talent is sure to meet with a market ; it is admired, applauded, honoured, and, when connected with piety and goodness of character, cannot fail to elevate its subject to an honourable position in the Church. Our route lay through a portion of New-Jersey, em- bracing Jersey City, Newark, New-Brunswick, Princeton, Trenton — famous in the history of the American war, as the scene of one of Washington's victories, and the capital of New- Jersey. Here we crossed the Delaware into Penn- sylvania, and travelled by its western bank to Bristol, and thence to Tacony. This town is six miles above Phila- delphia, where we embarked on board a steamer, and reached the city by water. The scenery was most magni- ficent ; made so by the breadth and sweep of the river ; the banks being rich, fertile, varied, and well cultivated ; and, moreover, studded with excellent houses, and beauti- ful mansions and villas. There stood the Quaker city, peering towards skies as bright as those of Italy, resting on the bosom of a country as fertile as imagination can conceive ; touching one of the finest rivers and bays in the world ; receiving and giving a rich and varied com- merce ; and presenting to view the general aspect of in- dustry, virtue, peace, and happiness. It seems impossible that William Penn, the great Quaker, could have selected PART I. — PERSONAL NARRATIVE. 51 a finer site for his city. If anything can be perfect in this world, one would say Philadelphia presents a perfect ground-plan and locale for the abode of man. This is considered by the Americans themselves as their most beautiful city. Taken as a whole, it may be so. The as- semblage of favourable circumstances seems complete. Earth and sky, land and water, all combine to produce this effect. Nature has certainly selected this spot as for the purpose of showing, in the beauties of even a ruined world, some faint outline, some faded image, of what Paradise must have been. But yet I did not like Philadelphia as a city. It is too uniform ; a beautiful landscape cannot be imagined with- out variety. Is not this principle of variety equally neces- sary in everything else having extent, space, magnitude ? A city is not like a cottage, a lodge, a little box. There may be uniformity, and yet taste may not be offended ; but place these neat boxes in a row, in a straight line, of, say a mile or two long, without anything to relieve the eye, and then it will be found that the straight line without a curve, the uniformity of buildings, unbroken by any variation in height and elevation, streets crossing each other at right angles, and at equally measured distances, produces impressions which are not in agreement with our notions of the beautiful. The houses, indeed, are not ex- actly uniform ; but the streets are perfectly so, securing ventilation and a good circulation of air, but giving the notion of a town in livery, dressed in the prim costume of the people who founded the city. The Quaker mind has left its impress on the material form of their city ; though it is to be feared the Quaker spirit has long since evapo- rated. I saw very few persons in the garb of Friends ; though some few were observed passing along in grave and sober dignity. The population is now perfectly miscella- neous, as much so as any other place, and its peculiarities are only seen in the town itself. 52 TOUR IN AMERICA. The Friends, in their own home, have been far outstrip- ped by other religious denominations. Time would not allow us to remain long. I had only an opportunity of running into one or two public buildings ; of passing down a few streets, so as to obtain a general idea of the place ; of getting a hasty dinner, and then start- ing off towards Baltimore. I promised myself the plea- sure of a second visit, which could not be accomplished ; so that my adieu to Philadelphia proved to be final. We travelled partly by railroad and partly by steam, which, by reason of the diversity both as to mode and scenery, is very pleasant. In this excursion we crossed or sailed upon the Delaware, Elk river, the Patapsco, and Chesapeake Bay. The latter, on the portion we traversed, had widened into a sea, and had a most magnificent ap- pearance. CHAPTER IV. Baltimore and Washington— The City and Capitol — The Senate— General Cass —Captain Fremont— Mr. Calhoun, &c. — The House of Representatives- Debate— Visit to the President — To the Vice-President — The National Insti- tution — Baltimore — The Sabbath — The aristocratic air of the place — Leave for Cumberland — Slavery — Harper's Ferry — Cumberland — The Alleghany Mountains — A Mirage on the Mountain — Brownville — The Monongahela — Scenery of the banks. We reached the city after dark, having travelled one hun- dred and eighty-four miles. We were met by the Rev. Thomas B. Sargent, who conducted me at once to my appointed place of abode, the residence of a widow lady of the name of Wilkins, with three or four daughters, and a great number of black servants. This lady, I found, had entertained the Rev. Richard Reece, Dr. Hannah, Dr. New- ton ; and, in fact, all our brethren who had visited the States as a deputation from England. She evidently re- tained a very pleasant recollection of these visits. Her eulogies of the venerable and Rev. Richard Reece were PART I. — PERSONAL NARRATIVE. 58 perfectly enthusiastic. His fine person, urbanity, piety, and labours, bad left a deep impression on her mind. Nor had the excellent qualities of the other brethren been less cherished. Indeed, they were recollected with great ad- miration by all. The eloquent labours of Dr. Newton will not lose their impression at Baltimore, nor indeed at any other place he visited, during the existence of the present generation. They are engraven indelibly on the hearts of many hundreds and thouands of grateful and admiring people. Dr. Hannah was a young man at the time of his visit ; but many of the preachers especially speak of his sermons as amongst the best and most finished specimens of pulpit eloquence they ever heard. I found, indeed, that the ministrations of all my predecessors had left a most happy fragrance behind. Their memory is cherished, their services affectionately appreciated, their mission honoured, the bonds of brotherhood strengthened, and the character of England, as well as English Methodism, is judged of by these specimens of the manners and spirit of the father- land. It became evident to me, that the religious public, our own people at least, are not disposed to take their cue of England from newspapers, political sources, or the disputes of diplomacy ; but from the men of their own community who may be sent over, and from the general body of Methodists. I had known Mr. Sargent in both England and Ireland, on his visit to this country, as the companion of Bishop Soule. His fine spirit had lost none of its elasticity, or depth of affection. His recollections of our country, of the men he had met with, of the conference, of any, the least, attention which had been shown him, and the plea- sures which fell in his way, all lived, most vividly, in his warm and ardent mind. It is delightful to meet with such specimens of Christianized human nature. I blush to think of the affection and kindness he manifested to me. It embraced everything. It seemed to be the entire busi- 54 TOUR IN AMERICA. ness of his life, for the time being, to make my visit as agreeable, as instructive, as profitable, as possible. The charm such a spirit throws over everything enhances its loveliness ten-fold. It puts life, vivacity, delight, and joy, as well as piety, into the most ordinary transactions ; and seems to add grace and beauty to every subject of con- versation, to every object seen. It is a kind of music in the midst of the solitudes of nature ; a joyous fragrance intermingled with her productions ; sunshine thrown upon all things on earth. To meet with such a man is worth crossing the Atlantic ; and to have made his friendship, gives a new zest to life, and increases one's hope of aug- mented happiness in immortality. This dear friend soon fell in with my desires to see Washington the next day, and made instant arrangements to accompany me there. My travelling companions, the Rev. J. Porter, and Mr. Creamer, agreed also to be of the party ; and we set out by the first train for the capital. The distance is forty miles, which we soon reached. We had six or eight hours to remain, feeling obliged to return the next day, which was Sunday, when I had engaged to preach in Baltimore. " What can be done in seeing the metropolis of a great republic in six or eight hours ?" some one will say. Let us see. But before we proceed, it may be as well to remark, that this capital is very unlike London, or any metropoli- tan city of any of the nations of Europe, indeed, of many of the older cities of the New World itself. It is a great unfinished village, laid out on a magnificent scale, but re- maining for completion. The points of attraction are, con- sequently, few, and easily reached. The following account of Washington is, in the main, so accurate, that we cannot do better than insert it : — " The city is laid out on a plan of great magnitude, and will, if the Resign of the founders be carried out, and their anticipations realized, be a magnificent memorial of the PART I. — PERSONAL NARRATIVE. 55 great man from whom it is named, and a city, the gigantic proportions of which shall harmonize with the power and extent of the mighty republic of which it is the capital. The ground on which the city is built has an elevation, for the most part, of about forty feet above the level of the river. \/ The streets cross each other at right angles, those running north and south being intersected by others run- ning east and west. The different parts of the city are connected by broad avenues. When the intersection of these avenues with each other and with the streets would form many acute angles, rectangular or circular spaces are left. The avenues and principal streets radiate from im- portant public points, and are from one hundred and thirty to one hundred and sixty feet wide. The former are named after the States of the Union ; the latter, beginning at the capitol, are ranged in the order of the letters of the alphabet ; as A North and A South, B North and B South, &c. ; and east and west, they are designated by numbers, as 1st East, 1st West, &c. Pennsylvania avenue, from the capitol to the President's house, is the most compactly built, and much the handsomest, thoroughfare in the city. Of the avenues, five radiate from the capitol, and five others from the mansion of the president ; thus affording these prominent places the readiest communication with all parts of the city. " Of the public buildings of Washington, the capitol, situated near the centre of the city-plot, on Capitol Hill, is the most splendid. This edifice, in its ample propor- tions, in the style and execution of its architecture, and in its embellishments, both exterior and interior, is believed not to be inferior to any senate-house in the world. Elevated seventy-two feet above tide-water, it affords a command- ing view of the city and the surrounding country. From its immense size, and its elevated position, it is the first ob- ject that fixes our attention on approaching the city. The building, which is of freestone, occupies an area of more 56 TOUR IN AMERICA. than an acre and a half. Including the wings, the front is three hundred and fifty -two feet in length, and the depth of the wings is one hundred and twenty-one feet. The projection on the east or main front, including the steps, is eighty-five feet wide; and that on the west, with the steps, is eighty-three feet. The projection on the east front is ornamented with a splendid portico of twenty-two lofty Corinthian columns ; and a portico of ten columns in the same style adorns the west pro- jection. In grandeur of design, and beauty of execu- tion, the portico in the eastern front has no superior. To the top of the dome, the height of the building is one hun- dred and twenty feet ; the rotunda in the middle of the building, under the dome, is ninety-five feet in diameter, and the same in height. From the cupola which crowns this apartment, there is a fine view of the city and sur- rounding country. The walls of the rotunda are adorned with magnificent paintings by Trumbull, the figures being as large as life. These fine national pictures represent in- teresting incidents in American history, — the Presentation to Congress of the Declaration of Independence ; the sur- render of Burgoyne ; surrender of Cornwallis ; and Wash- ington resigning his Commission. Congress has recently further enriched the rotunda by the addition of two fine paintings, — the Baptism of Pocahontas, by Chapman, and the Embarkation of the Pilgrims, by Weir. This room is also adorned with sculptures, in alto relievo, representing the rescue of Smith by the interposition of Pocahontas ; the landing of the Pilgrims ; Daniel Boone's conflict with Indians ; and Penn treating with the Indians at Coaquenac. To other attractions of the rotunda has lately been added, Greenough's splendid statue of Washington, a colossal figure, in a sitting posture, twice as large as life. The library-room of the west of the rotunda is ninety-two feet by thirty-four, and thirty-six feet high, and contains up- wards of twenty-eight thousand volumes. There is here PART I. — PERSONAL NARRATIVE. 5*7 also a valuable collection of historical medals, designed by Denon, the Egyptian traveller; and paintings, statuary, medallions, &c, are distributed about the room. The senate-chamber, in the northern wing, is seventy-eight feet long, and forty-five high, and of a semicircular form. The vice-president's chair has a canopy of rich crimson dra- pery, held by the talons of an eagle. In front of the vice- president's chair is a light bronze gallery, chiefly appro- priated to ladies. Above and behind the chair is a gallery, supported by fine Ionic columns of variegated marble, from the Potomac. The walls richly ornamented with stucco, the magnificent chandelier, the gorgeous lamps and furniture, &c, give the room an imposing appearance. Adjoining the senate -chamber, is the office of the secretary of the Senate. Under this room is the apartment in which the Supreme Court holds its sittings. It is nearly as large as the senate-chamber, but is much less elegant. The hall of the House of Representatives, in the south wing, is semicircular, like the senate-chamber, but larger, being ninety-six feet long and sixty feet high. The dome of the hall is supported by twenty-four beautiful columns of the Potomac marble, with capitals of Italian marble, of the Corinthian order. The seats are so arranged that the members face the Speaker, whose chair is considerably elevated above the floor, and approached by avenues that radiate from the chair as a centre. A gallery for men sur- rounds the circular wall opposite the Speaker ; and that appropriated to ladies is in the chord of the arc at the back of the Speaker's chair. The room is ornamented, like the senate-chamber, with fine statuary and paintings, and its whole appearance is imposing and elegant." Such is the capitol. Some persons look upon objects of art as connoisseurs, having some knowledge of its pro- ductions ; others judge of everything merely by such sense and feeling as nature alone supplies. There are advan- tages and disadvantages in both cases. The connoisseur 3* 58 TOUR IN AMERICA. will be able to detect flaws, blemishes, and beauties, which the other will not be able to see ; but the latter will be capable of a true impression, as a whole, which the critical taste of the former may prevent. Without any pretensions to be a connoisseur, we may be allowed to refer to such impressions as these various objects made at the time. Some of the pictures were found to be very impressive, from the grandeur of the ideal. I was struck with what seemed to me to be a very delicate design in the picture representing the surrender of Cornwallis. Washington is placed in the back-ground, on horseback, at a considerable distance, looking on with intense interest, while an inferior officer approaches the British commander, for the purpose of receiving his sword. But, when near, instead of de- manding the sword, he is seen stretching out his hand, and offering it in friendship and peace to the vanquished general : the effect is irresistible. Cornwallis is subdued ; serenity and benignity beam in his countenance, and the two ene- mies meet as brothers. The surrender of his sword, by General Burgoyne, is perfectly different. The American officer is seen approaching in an imperious and commanding attitude ; and Burgoyne is represented as giving up his sword under the influence of tumultuous passions, resent- ment, pride, and contempt, though conquered. Such is the fate of war. Here are two high-minded soldiers, the pride and glory of the British army and nation, surrender- ing themselves and their glories to men, no doubt, whom, when they took the field, they considered a despicable foe ; probably, not as soldiers at all. Great issues turned on these two events, — the independence of America, and the humiliation of England. The pictures of the embarkation and landing of the Pil- grims are exquisitely impressive. In the first, the minister of the church in Holland, the Rev. John Robinson, who could not sail with the first expedition, on account of the duty of taking care of the flock left behind, is seen in the PART I. — PERSONAL NARRATIVE. 59 attitude of prayer, bare -headed, with outstretched hands, and eyes lifted up to heaven. At a short distance there sits a venerable figure, the personification of calm, contem- plative, abstract, and believing piety, — his hand resting on the pages of an open Bible, through whose sacred teaching he appears to be looking into the invisible, the future, the divine, with unruffled composure and hope. A little in the back-ground the form of a matronly female (a real character who distinguished herself greatly by her piety and forti- tude) is exhibited in the costume of the times, attending, with profound and reverent looks and feelings, upon these devotions. Groups of children and young people hang around, with a mixture of awe, surprise, hope, and youthful joy, depicted in their countenances. I never saw religion materialized so perfectly as in this picture : it cost an effort to get away. All the graces may be said to have their type in this canvass. Wisdom, devotion, faith, meekness, love, courage, hope, all beam in those heaven-illumined countenances. They appear as if they had some fore- thought, some prescience, of their great destiny. Any looker-on would think that they were either dressed in their bridal robes for the " wedding-supper of the Lamb," or that they were under the influence of some extraordinary inspiration, preparing them for great and glorious work. The artist seems most fully to have caught and compre- hended the morale of that greatest event in American history. The picture of the Baptism of Pocahontas, an Indian princess, is very striking ; and, coupled with her marriage to an English gentleman, is an interesting historical fact. She is represented in a kneeling posture, while the venerable clergyman is performing the rite. Her figure is beautiful, her face interesting, and the whole effect is exquisitely im- pressive. Poor Indians ! Had this laudable beginning of the admixture of the races been continued, how different would have been their fate ! 60 TOUR IN AMERICA. Some of the alto relievos are very fine. One, which represents Daniel Boone's conflict with an Indian, disputing, in fact, for the dominion of Ohio, is fearful. The passions of the savage warrior are exhibited to the life, in dreadful ferocity. The two men are wrestling in personal combat ; and each is employing the weapons of their respective modes of attack and defence. The catastrophe is not given ; but, of course, the child of nature, the lord of the forest, was obliged to yield to the white man, — a distressing emblem of an historical fact. The passions, the ferocity, the undying resolution, the tenacious grasp, the courage of that Indian chief, and his fall, were only representative of the dispositions and of the doom of their race. They strug- gled, as he struggled, through the long years of their eventful story ; and as he fell beneath the blows of his antagonist, so their nations and tribes fell before the aggres- sions of a superior foe. While we were examining these works of art, it was announced that the Senate had broken up. This was occa- sioned by information just brought from the city, that one of their number, a Mr. Ashley, was dying. We hastened to the Senate-House ; and to me it seemed a great disaster, as I desired to hear some of the members in this first assembly in the United States. In some respects it was an advantage, however, inasmuch as it gave us an oppor- tunity of entering the body of the hall, and holding per- sonal intercourse with many of the members. Our friend Mr. Slicer,* who seemed perfectly at home with the senators, knew them all, and appeared to be much respected, introduced me to many ; telling them who I was, and in- forming them of the nature of my mission to the States. They all shook me cordially by the hand, welcomed me into their country, and expressed the hope that I should be pleased and gratified. Among the gentlemen to whom I was thus introduced, were General Cass, Colonel Benton, * One of the chaplains of Congress. PART I. — PERSONAL NARRATIVE. 61 General Foote, Colonel Davis, Captain Fremont, Mr. Cal- houn, and many others. Of course, I looked with some attention upon General Cass, many of whose violent and belligerent speeches against this country, in connexion with the boundary and Oregon questions, I had read ; and, moreover, who was then understood to be a candidate for the office of President. He is a stout, athletic man, about the middle size, but, for an American, rather corpulent and sanguiferous in his appearance ; and, if his physiognomy did not greatly deceive me, he is a man of strong passions, capable, one would say, of being exalted into the furioso. His keen eye turned upon me, as I imagined, with a some- what sinister glance ; and, after a few remarks of no im- portance, he seemed glad to get away. Colonel Davis had been wounded in the Mexican war ; was just recovering, but limped very much. This officer had greatly distin- guished himself, but seemed, by his modesty, to be uncon- scious of his own fame. We had considerable conversation with this gentleman about Mexico and the war ; and he showed himself to be a most amiable and well-informed man. Captain Fremont, who is the son-in-law of Colonel Benton, is a first-rate man. He conducted two or three scientific expeditions, for the purpose of exploring various portions of Oregon, California, and the Rocky Mountains, and making observations on altitudes, levels, rivers, soils, mountains, ay and food, as well as lodging,) and their numbers, may be pretty accurately judged of by this build- ing. It is, I should believe, large enough to hold a regi- PART I. — PERSONAL NARRATIVE. 145 ment of soldiers ; and, supposing Jesuits would require accommodation superior to the army, it would certainly accommodate, even in that case, not less than five or six hundred. Whether, in the progress of conciliation, — for so many years followed by the British government, — this Jesuits' college and their other possessions will ever be re- stored, it is impossible to say. The local government is, at present, resisting the claim ; and I read, when in the country, very able articles from the pen of one of the chief functionaries against conceding these claims. This is pro- bably the security of the country. Society at large, having an interest in preserving the present settlement of property, and in keeping themselves free from the dominion and yoke of the Society of Jesus, may possibly be able to resist the encroachments sought to be made ; whereas, if the matter were entirely in the hands of the home-government, nothing would be more likely than Jesuitical success, and for the world to see them again installed in the college at Quebec, as well as enjoying all other kinds of property and power, — now enhanced a thousand-fold by Protestant enterprise and labour. The steamers only pass between Montreal and Quebec by night ; and on Monday evening I embarked with Mr. Ferrier, Dr. Richey, the Rev. John Jenkins, and other friends, for the latter place. We had a pleasant night-trip, sitting up late to see Mr. Ferrier off, who had to land at Three Rivers, for the purpose of attending to business in connexion with some iron-founding operations ; the only works of the sort, as I understood, in the country. Mr. Ferrier, and a fine old gentleman, one of the owners of the steamer in which we were passing down the river, had a long debate respecting steam navigation. This latter gentleman I found, in connexion with his father, was the first to employ steam power on the St. Lawrence, and had been very successful in his vocation. I learned from this conversation many things respecting American steamers, 146 TOUR IN AMERICA. of which I had before been ignorant. I had seen that these vessels possessed amazing space, especially on deck, giving them the means of providing a splendid saloon and beautiful state-rooms by their sides for passengers, and an equally fine promenade on the outside, where I had often sat or walked, enjoying the fresh air, and looking at the surrounding country. I found now that this space was gained by projections from the sides of the vessel in the form of beams or spars, and on these projections a platform considerably wider than the vessel itself was obtained. But was there no danger of the steamer, in case of a squall arising, turning over on her beam-ends ? To obviate this, it seems, an instrument, on the principle of the cork- jacket employed by amateurs in swimming, is placed on each side ; so that, in case the vessel reels, she is righted again by this instrument. It was told me that by the use of these appliances, it is impossible for any vessel in any weather to be capsized. The argument of these two clever and experienced disputants turned on the possibility of crossing the Atlantic in one of these flat-bottomed steamers so guarded ; Mr. Ferrier taking the affirmative side, and our other friend the neo-ative. All manner of science was O brought to bear on the points in dispute ; and whether it might be more profitable to employ this species of ship, I know not ; but think, from what I heard, that it is pos- sible to cross the ocean in one of these flat-bottomed American river vessels, sufficiently guarded by the cork- jacket. Our countrymen need not be surprised if they see, some day, in the Mersey, a grand flat-bottomed steamer, with a saloon as magnificent as the drawing-room of a palace, and state-rooms as convenient and beautiful as the sleeping apartments of a first-rate hotel. We reached our destination in good time in the morning. Quebec is unique in its appearance within and without ; there is nothing equal to it in America. Like New- York and Pittsburgh, it stands on the point formed by two rivers; PART I. — PERSONAL NARRATIVE. 147 though not, like them, meeting in terminis. The majestic St. Lawrence is one of these rivers, and still rolls along its course ; and the other is the St. Charles, emptying itself into the greater stream from the north-west, and thus forming the triangular point on which the city stands. It wears, in its general aspect, an appearance of great antiquity, quite unlike any other place on the continent. The streets are narrow, irregular, and steep ; like many of the old seaports on our coast, or those of France, on the opposite side of the Channel. The ecclesiastical buildings of all sorts — cathe- drals, (for there are two, Popish and Protestant,) churches, convents, hospitals, Hdtels de Dieu, and all the rest — are seen to predominate over everything secular — like some old cathedral town in a Popish country. This feature, together with the military air of the place, causes Quebec to wear an aristocratic and feudal appearance, perfectly dissimilar to the trading and commercial aspect of all other places in America, whether belonging to the States, or to Great Britain. As soon as possible after our arrival, the friends had two or three carriages ready to convey us round the city, under the projecting rocks overhanging the road, to Wolfe's Cove — up the heights leading to the fortifications — to the Plains of Abraham — and to Cape Diamond. It must be understood that the angle referred to before, formed by the two rivers, terminates, not in a slope leading down to the waters, but abruptly, in a prodigious rock three hundred and fifty feet above the level of the river ; and seeming at a distance to overhang it, but in reality leaving space for roads and buildings. This culminating point is called Cape Diamond ; and, while standing on this elevation, on the right flows the St. Lawrence, and on the left the St. Charles, while the space immediately in the rear forms the Plains of Abraham. From this elevated region, there is no descent at all — the rock is next to perpendicular ; but farther on, both towards the St. Lawrence and the St. 148 TOUR IN AMERICA. Charles, the ground, in some places gradually, but often abruptly, descends : this descent, however, admits of roads, winding round the mountain, by which the summit is reached. I am thus particular, for a reason which must now be explained. When this city was taken by the immortal "Wolfe, he, by some miraculous means, in the night, pushed his fleet, with his army and artillery on board, from below, past this Cape Diamond, with its terrible fortifications, unobserved by the enemy, and reached a part of the hill where an ascent was possible, now called Wolfe's Cove. His troops immediately climbed up the sides of the eleva- tion ; and by prodigious exertions dragged up several pieces of ordnance. When the next day dawned, the French general found, to his astonishment, the British army, with artillery, formed, in line of battle, on the Heights of Abra- ham. I was conducted by my friends through the whole of this scene. We traced the course of the fleet up the river, its anchorage, the place where the troops disembark- ed, the track of the artillery, of the soldiers up the moun- tain ; and I, for myself, determined to climb up in the path which tradition has marked as the identical line which was trodden by the immortal hero, who added, by his genius and bravery on this occasion, an empire to his country's possessions. When at the top, we, in our smmilitary and zmprofessional way, endeavoured to trace the course of events, and believe we obtained a pretty accurate notion of the battle. The issue is known. The spot where Wolfe received the tidings, " They flee," and then expired, is marked by a mean and paltry monumental stone. I clung with intense feeling to this spot ; looking again and again to the place where the destinies of a mighty country were fixed, by the decrees of God, in the death-throes of the successful instrument. There are events in history which turn the tide of national interests ; form the epochs of time ; raise ' the monuments of great destinies ; pillars written upon by the finger of God, in the annals of the PART I. — PERSONAL NARRATIVE. 149 world, as the data of nationalities : and that little monu- mental stone on the summit of the Plains of Abraham is one of these mementos. We went from this scene to examine the fortifications. These are denominated the Gibraltar of America, and are certainly the strongest on the continent. But they are not much like Gibraltar. The celebrated batteries of the latter fortress are pretty familiar to my recollection, and greatly surpass their supposed type at Quebec. One would say, however, that these are perfectly impregnable, having been much strengthened since they came into the hands of the English. We went to the Cape Diamond rock ; and, stand- ing on its elevation, obtained a most magnificent view of the country around. The glorious St. Lawrence rolls ma- jestically at the foot of the mountain, and the ships in the harbour looked most diminutive, their masts reaching but a very short way towards the point where we stood. The country is seen to a prodigious distance by reason of the clearness of the atmosphere ; the mountains and plains alternately stretching in fine plateaux, or rearing their heads to the clouds. The scene also presents to view, what is scarcely ever seen in America, a finished picture. The land is well cultivated, and herds of cattle were grazing quietly in the meadows ; while the whole country was dotted with the whitewashed cottages of the French habitans ; and here and there through the landscape a country church reared its beautiful spire in the midst of the rural scene. The river was seen to an immense distance, meandering its course towards the sea. Altogether, the view from Cape Diamond is one of the most splendid imaginable, and far surpassed anything I had seen in America. Western Ca- nada is, with the exception of what they call " The Moun- tain," perfectly level ; but this part of the country is full of lofty ridges, often rising to the elevation and ruggedness of real mountain scenery, with bold and abrupt peaks, lost in the clouds. 150 TOUR IN AMERICA. We were taken to dine in the country, a distance of four or five miles, with a fine old Methodist friend, originally from Guernsey. The table was spread under the umbra- geous branches of a lovely tree, on a lawn near the house ; and on this spot, protected from the rays of the sun, we partook of our social repast in great harmony and joy. This was a bright oasis in the desert of life, an innocent and happy meeting of Christian friends, favoured to see each other once, never to meet again. This house possesses some traditional importance, as it was chosen by the famous American general, Arnold, for his head-quarters, and where he himself lodged, in his mad expedition against Quebec. This man afterwards turned traitor against his country ; and it was in connexion with his perfidy, in delivering up West Point to the English, that the brave and accom- plished Major Andre, employed by the British general to negotiate the surrender of that place, fell into the hands of the Americans, and lost his life. Strange things happen in the course of one's existence. I had been reading, on my voyage out, a very minute account of these transac- tions ; and now it was my lot to dine, not in the house of Arnold's head-quarters, but under a tree by its side, which he had often looked upon, and, if he had not dined under its shady branches, had probably been protected from the storm. Having to preach at night, our sojourn could not be long. We hastened back in time for the service, and had a fine congregation. Here I met with quite a pheno- menon in Canada, — a Presbyterian minister, who, in the midst of the general disruption, had adhered to the old kirk. I found him a good, moderate, and truly sensible man. One day only remained for Quebec. In good time, my kind friends and myself set out to visit the Falls of Mont- morenci, a distance of nine miles. By this journey I had an opportunity of seeing a little of the state of the French people in the country. We called at a small inn for re- PART I. — PERSONAL NARRATIVE. 151 freshment, and found it very comfortable ; but as different from the same sort of habitation in our own country as possi- ble. The farms seemed small, the cottages corresponding ; but the people were clean, tidy, and apparently very contented and happy. They are a primitive race, remaining in much the same state as they were in the time of their ancestors' coming to the country. British rule causes no innovation in their manners and habits ; they retain the use of their own language exclusively ; and are perfectly docile to the priesthood, and obedient to the Church. The difference betwixt the Anglo-Saxon race and these people of French descent, is most glaring. The one is a restless, grumbling, thrifty, and ambitious set, wherever found ; the other al- most as stationary as the nomadic tribes of the East. Even Popery fails to amalgamate the Irish and French races. They cannot agree to say mass together. The antipathy of the French to the Irish, is equal to the antipathy of poor Pat to the English. The rude, vociferous, agitating spirit of the sons of the Green Isle, cannot be endured by the quiet Canadians ; and the priests are compelled to part them. There is a sort of dual Popery in Quebec ; the Irish being obliged to keep to themselves, and perform their religious duties in their own peculiar way of roaring riot ; whilst the gentle habitans are left to walk in the foot- steps of their quiet predecessors. The Falls of Montmo- renci are very fine, and the descent of the waters is greater than at Niagara ; but after beholding that wonder of na- ture, they appear very insignificant as a whole. In this country they would be a prodigy, and attract universal at- tention ; but in the midst of the stupendous waters of America, they look like a little rill, a mountain torrent, falling from a lofty eminence. We hastened back to town in time for a hasty dinner and a cordial farewell ; and then an embarkation again. Truth obliges me to say, that I never in my existence met with a finer people than our friends in Quebec ; generous, 152 TOUR IN AMERICA. open-hearted, frank, intelligent, pious, and perfectly united amongst themselves. They occupy a very important reli- gious position ; and, it is hoped, will be the means of much good. I found they had begun a new chapel, the exact size, and intended in all things to be the counterpart, of the magnificent one at Montreal ; so that Lower Canada will, ere long, contain the most magnificent places of wor- ship in the Methodist world. It is intended to get Dr. Bangs, on his visit to the Canada Conference next summer, to open this new place of worship. This will, to all par- ties, be interesting ; as I believe this eminent minister of Christ was the first to preach our doctrines in this city. A man is often permitted, in his own life-time, to see great results from small beginnings in America. Taking a most affectionate leave of this kind people, many of whom had assembled for the purpose, we got on board the steamer in the evening ; and, ascending the St. Lawrence during the night, found ourselves again in Montreal for breakfast the next morning, at the house of Mr. Kay, a countryman, and belonging to one of the numerous families of that name in Lancashire. Before quitting Canada, a remark or two may be proper on general subjects. No one can see this country without being convinced of its great importance. Its area is that of a mighty empire ; for, though thousands of square miles are barren, and must always remain so, by reason of their northern position, yet still there will be left, for profitable cultivation, probably as large a portion as the whole of central Europe. The soil of this vast space is most pro- lific, capable of bearing abundant crops of wheat, and every other kind of grain and fruit, suited to a wheat - growing country. Moreover, this territory being inter- sected by noble rivers, navigable in most places, and capa- ble of being made so by canal-adjuncts almost universally, is, of itself, an infinite advantage, and presents vast facili- ties of intercourse, and cheap transmission of both people PART I. — PERSONAL NARRATIVE. 153 and produce from place to place. My duties called me to pass along the shores of Queen Victoria's possessions, for just about a thousand miles. This was effected, partly by the course of the Lakes, and partly by the Bay of Quinti and the river St. Lawrence ; whilst at the same time I did not see the termination of the latter by be- twixt three and four hundred miles. This magnificent river, with the Lakes, through which it is always con- sidered as passing, is of greater length than even the Mississippi ; and is, in itself, of the value of an empire. Those who command the navigation of the St. Lawrence must be the masters of a highway of water-communication of prodigious importance. Every year will increase this value, as the return of every season must develop the resources and riches of the country. In speaking of the command of the river, I am reminded, that, in passing between Kingston and Montreal, there was seen a branch of the main channel, which, after running some miles, returned to the parent stream. The shore on the right bank belongs to America, and that on the left to Canada. To my utter surprise, and equal indig- nation, by some sort of diplomatic concession to Jonathan, I found our statesmen had given up both banks ; so that America is the owner of the entire stream, and the branch river constitutes the boundary-line. This is just as if it were agreed upon in general terms by the authorities, that the Grand Junction Railroad between Birmingham and London should be the boundary of territorial rights ; but, on some subsequent occasion, one party should say the meaning of the treaty was, that the line should go through Oxford, leaving them in possession of the main trunk, and compelling the opposite party, in going to town, to turn off and proceed by the University city ; — with this excep- tion, indeed, that the branch river is unnavigable ; so that, in case of dispute, the British would be altogether shut out. These boundary-treaties are most humiliating to this 7* 154 TOUR IN AMERICA. country ; they always result in favour of the claims of America. Indeed, it seems a settled conviction in the American mind, an axiom of policy, and one would think a standing rule in the offices of the government, that, on all occasions of diplomacy, John Bull is destined, made, to be diddled, to be gulled, to be beaten. Our dandy, blunder- ing diplomatists are a poor match for the long-headed, practical, scheming statesmen of the United States. Cana- da is full of just complaints on this point, not even except- ing the famous Ashburton and Oregon treaties. My good friend, Mr. Ferrier, told me a most laughable instance of this kind of thing. The subject-matter was a railroad from Montreal to — I think the name of the place is — Rochester, [Portland,] on the Atlantic seaboard, or, at any rate, somewhere in the east. There lived at this Ro- chester a Judge , whose interest it was, as will be seen, to promote the business of Rochester, and get the trains to run to that place. But the new line had to con- nect itself with the line to Boston, and the Boston line was on the broad gauge. What did our worthy Yankee judge do ? He went to Montreal to persuade the boobies that the broad gauge is a very bad gauge, and that it would be much for their interest to adopt the narrow gauge ; thus preventing the new line from connecting with the Boston, and making it necessary for every bale of goods to be un- shipped from one train to the other, at a considerable amount of trouble and expense, or else to run on to Ro- chester. By this contrivance the probabilities were, that the goods would be sent on to Rochester, and increase its traffic. The judge prevailed upon the company to believe that the narrow gauge was much the best, and they forthwith adopted it. The bill came before the provin- cial parliament; and Mr. Ferrier was so convinced of the folly of the thing, that when it came before the senate, he offered it his most strenuous opposition, and for the time defeated the scheme of the judge. But he was not at PART I. — PERSONAL NARRATIVE. 155 all discomfited ; he went again to Montreal, and now, get- ting amongst the senators, prevailed upon them to believe that the broad gauge is a very bad gauge ; and the rail- road is either already constructed, or is in course of con- struction, on the principle of the narrow gauge. And this very judge, Diddle or Bibble, (his name is one or the other,) is the very person whose dicta ruled in the treaty betwixt Lord Ashburton and the States: a measure pompously put forth, at the time, as a most masterly piece of states- manship, but which every tyro in politics in Canada knows to be a surrender of the main points in dispute, and a most humiliating affair to Great Britain. I found the country full of complaints and dissatisfaction from one end to the other. The people everywhere, and of all shades of politics, spoke the same language. Their fortunes were wrecked, their commerce destroyed ; their agriculture, the sinews of the colony, enfeebled, ruined. Of course, all blamed the home-government. They refused to do anything, they said, to support their credit, or to fur- ther their exertions to obtain any loan, to assist in the public works ; — the execution of these was required, to expand their strength, and to develop the resources of the coun- try, but they could obtain no help. Nay, it was asserted, by men of first-rate intelligence, and who had been engaged in the attempt, that they even could not get a hearing ; nobody among the bureaucracy in London could be found to acquaint themselves with their affairs, or pay any atten- tion to them. Hence the only railroad in Canada is the insignificant line, of about a dozen miles, from Montreal to the place where the steamers land their passengers for that place. This one fact shows clearly enough the stag- nant state of the country. When railroads are, of all the gifts of Providence now known, best calculated to call forth the hidden resources of such a country as Canada, their absence is sufficiently indicative of the want of patronage on the part of government, or of indolence in the people ; 156 TOUR IN AMERICA. and, as the latter cannot be truly affirmed, the cause must be attributable to the former. There is a pretty general belief, indeed, that England has virtually given them up ; and, because of this, it would not be in the power of min- isters to get the sanction of Parliament for any great scheme of colonization and credit. The capitalists of England, they believe, will not embark their money without government security, entertaining the notion that the colony is vibrating in the balance ; and this not being accorded, probably for the same reason, there they are, floundering in a mighty ocean of greatness and wealth, for the want of the means of picking it up. How long this state of things will last, nobody can tell. The connexion between the mother- country and this her most athletic offspring, is now merely political ; or as nearly so as possible. All England now does for Canada, they said, again and again, is to appoint them a governor, and make them pay him five times more than they should in case they appointed him themselves ; and to maintain an army at a prodigious expense to keep them in order. This talk was not the conversation of radi- cals, of demagogues, of French republicans ; but of many of the best subjects of the British crown in America ; men of intelligence, of integrity, of honour, of loyalty, of reli- gion ; and these men are beginning openly to propose the question, "What are the advantages of English connexion ?" and to weigh and discuss those of annexation. It does not become me to enter into such a subject in detail ; but the fact is, that the recent policy of this coun- try — the free-trade policy — has had the effect of thro wing- all the advantages possessed by Canada, as a part of the British empire, (and which, as such, the people considered that they had a right to possess,) into the hands of the United States. Montreal used to be the great market for English produce, the centre whence it flowed to the whole of the provinces ; but now almost all this trade has found its way to New- York. On the enactment of Lord Stanley's PART I. — PERSONAL NARRATIVE. 157 bill respecting the admission of Canada flour into this coun- try, a vast outlay in building mills took place, which mills had just begun to Avork profitably ; but the new policy effectually crushed this trade. I myself saw one of these mills, belonging to one of our friends, — a new building of great size, and which must have cost many thousand pounds in its erection, — standing still. This I understood was generally the case. Before the new measures, the people of Canada could afford to purchase corn in the United States, and, turning it into flour at these mills, obtain a market for it in Europe ; thus deriving a benefit to them- selves from the soil of the States. The tables are now completely turned. The Americans are now the millers ; and corn-dealers from the States come over to buy up the grain of the country, turn it into " bread-stuffs," and sell Canadian-grown wheat in our markets as American flour. This is rather too much for flesh and blood to bear. Canada and the United States are now placed, as nearly as possible, on an equal footing with regard to commercial transactions with this country ; the one being a colony of the British empire, and the other the greatest rival this nation has to contend with in the world. How long this state of things can last, is for statesmen to consider. Canada now only belongs to Great Britain by a figment, a tradition, a loyalty, a recollection of heroic deeds ; and not by any material in- terest or benefit. Nay, in the present state of things, cast off by the mother country, and left to their own resources, with the United States just by their side, possessing vast political power and influence ; a growing credit, and mone- tary resources ; a prodigious mercantile and commercial navy ; an active, industrious, and virtuous people ; a govern- ment capable, in all respects, and equally disposed, to foster, protect, and strengthen all its possessions ; — we say, with all these things staring them in the face, the policy of this country has made it the plain, palpable interest of the Canadians to seek for annexation. This is as clear as 158 TOUR IN AMERICA. any problem in Euclid. How long the tradition and the loyalty will weigh against the interests now put in the balance against them, nobody need be at a loss to deter- mine. Perhaps the non-election of General Cass will settle the question for the next four years ; but, had that gentle- man obtained the presidency of the States, — why, the world would have presented itself in different phases at the end of the above period. Whether these fears and auguries take place or not, Canada must have a great and noble destiny. A country so magnificent, a soil so prolific, water communication so abundant, and a people, moreover, in whose veins British blood flows, and who are in possession of the incipient principles, freedom, and laws of England, safely planted in the soil ; such a country must rise to greatness and power. The French leaven is constantly losing its relative strength, and the British is as constantly increasing. The one population is rapidly getting ahead of the other, and assuming the lead. This must, in the nature of things, fix the destiny of the colony. Our language, our institu- tions, and our religion, will prevail. A mighty empire will rise up, enriched with knowledge, with public and private virtue, and possessed of all the appliances of poli- tical power and wealth. We wish them well ; they are at present our children ; and, in all future time and contin- gencies, they will be our brethren. They will carry out and perpetuate all that is valuable in our system, and, planting old England on a new soil, will reproduce our nation on a gigantic scale. PART I. — PERSONAL NARRATIVE. 159 CHAPTER X. Return— Pass the St. Lawrence— Lake Champlain — Pittsburgh— Whitehall — Journey by Stage— Troy— Albany— The Hudson— Arrival at New-York — 111 — Doubtful respecting being able to return Home — Resolved to do so — De- part for Boston — Embark on board the "America" — Passage — Arrival at Home. On Thursday, June 2 2d, the day on which we came up from Quebec, we bade farewell to our dear friends at Mont- real, and took a last look at Canada. Last things are painful, and full of interest. We parted from those who had endeared themselves by every kind of attention and affectionate regard, with the desire, never to be effaced, for their highest happiness. We crossed the St. Lawrence, and soon entered Lake Champlain. A portion of the wa- ters of this lake belong to the British ; as usual, just the fag-end, whilst the great body of the lake is owned by the States. The lines of demarcation are marked by a fort, of small dimensions or strength, which might easily be dis- mantled. This is, unquestionably, the finest lake I had seen. The scenery on its banks is perfectly enchanting ; and, unlike Lakes Erie and Ontario, it commands a view of mountain scenery of the most majestic description. This lake is one hundred and thirty-two miles in length, and varies in breadth from the narrow channel above mentioned to nine or ten miles. Many beautiful islands stud the wa- ters, and have a fine effect. At the close of the day Ave approached a place called Plattsburgh. The scene was the most beautifully romantic which nature can possibly present : A blue sky, deep, lofty, stretching its heavenly arch to span the landscape, the sun setting in all his gor- geous glory, the lake smooth as glass, except as disturbed by our motion, wild fowl fluttering about and enjoying the cool evening, the majestic mountains of Vermont looming in the distance, and all the intermediate space filled with 1(50 TOUR IN AMERICA. cultivated fields and towering forests, — and then the lonely little town of Plattsburgh, touching the fringe of the lake, and presenting the most perfect aspect of rural peace and quiet on which the eye ever gazed. My manliness was here for the first time overcome ; I longed and longed to get on shore, to fix my tent, and remain forever. This sentiment was new ; I had never before felt any remarka- ble desire to locate in any place I had seen ; but here, for a moment, I was perfectly overcome. Other affections, of course, soon sprang up, and wafted my soul across the At- lantic, where treasures dearer than even these beauties had their dwelling. During this little paroxysm, delirium, or whatever it majr be called, my kind companion, Dr. Richey, had retired to his cabin, so that one of my wants could not be relieved, — a vent for exclamations of delight ! This was just one of those moments which can never be forgotten, an Eden, a paradisiacal scene, into which none can enter with one, and which leaves its picture vividly pencilled on the soul. But how soon things change, and in their reality fade away ! We left this spot, passed on, the night closed in, the curtain dropped. " So even now this hour had sped In rapturous thought o'er me ; Feeling myself with nature wed, A holy mystery ! A part of earth, a part of heaven, A part, great God, of thee." In the morning, in good time, we found ourselves at Whitehall, a port at the head of the lake ; a place of con- siderable traffic and growing importance. After breakfast we had to mount the stage for Troy and Albany, a dismal road, if it can be called road, of between seventy and eighty miles. The jolting was prodigious, and at the end of the journey I was completely knocked up. My physical man had not failed till now ; but this tumbling about perfectly disordered me, and I was glad to arrive at the end of the journey. We stayed to dine at Troy, a large and well- PART I. — PERSONAL NARRATIVE. 161 built city, and there again took the stage for Albany, being too late for the rails. It was night when we arrived ; and being too unwell to move out, except to see one or two of the main streets, I had not much opportunity of inspecting the place. But I saw it was a large, fine, and most respect- able-looking city ; many of the houses being spacious, the streets broad, and the public buildings very commanding. This is the capital of the State of New- York, the seat of government, and of the State Parliament. We embarked on the Hudson the next morning, and descended this classical stream, the pride and glory of the Americans, being esteemed by them as presenting the most beautiful scenery in the States. It well deserves its fame. The banks are studded with towns and villages, rich fields in a state of fine cultivation, stupendous and rugged rocks, together with mountain scenery of the most interesting and majestic nature, some near, and some in the distance ; abrupt and precipitous shores, yawning and frowning upon the passers by ; and splendid landscapes, and picturesque views, enriched with umbrageous woods and forests. I could only now and then take a peep at this magic combi- nation of land and water, being obliged the greater part of the voyage to keep in my cabin. We were on board one of the most complete of the American river-boats. Nobody in this country can form an idea of the nature of one of these vessels ; our ships furnish no analogies, except in the fact that both are pro- pelled by steam, and glide on the water. For, by reason of the peculiar structure of the class of steamers already referred to, this vessel presented the aspect of prodigious size, both below and above. The dining-room was below, and occupied the space between the sides of the ship, reaching from stem to stern, and was filled with five or six tiers of berths, one above another ; the saloon was equally large, with state-rooms on each side. This enormous float- ing palace could accommodate a thousand persons on board. 162 TOUR IN AMERICA. The term " palace " is used, of course, improperly, as a ship cannot be like a palace. But in fittings -up, in decoration, in ornament, it was a perfect palace : and altogether pre- sented a scene of magnificence of a very extraordinary description. We arrived at New- York in the evening ; and being too unwell to trouble any private friend, we took up our resi- dence for the night at the City Hotel. The necessity of applying to Mr. Harper for Dr. Belcher's address, brought him acquainted with my situation, and in the afternoon he kindly took me to his own house. In passing through the streets of New- York, it was very pleasing to see the crowds returning from their places of worship. Blacks, coloured people, and whites, were all mingled together in a long flowing tide, quietly and gravely passing along to their homes. By Tuesday morning I had begun to amend, and, feeling better, the thought suddenly rushed into my mind, " I can go home, and I will." But the doctor must be consulted. He came ; and, on telling him my thoughts and feelings, he said, the probability was that I should do very well ; but there was just a chance that I might have a relapse. The reply was, " Then the probability shall have it, and we will throw the chances to the winds." We took our leave of our affectionate friends, the Har- pers, about four in the afternoon. The steamer made her way down the Sound, and we soon lost sight of New- York, and its splendid harbour. I found, on trial, that my cabin was just over some kind of machinery which produced a jarring and upheaving motion, which precluded the possi- bility of rest ; and when night came on, I was obliged to drag my mattress into the saloon, but failed to get one wink of sleep. We left the vessel about daylight, and passed on by railroad to Boston. After spending a few hours at the Revere, and in visiting the city, we went on board the " America," lying in the offing, four or five miles PART I. — PERSONAL NARRATIVE. 163 distant. This noble ship had made the voyage from Eng- land in eleven days and a half, the shortest trip ever known ; and is, of her class, the finest steamer in the world. We got under way about four in the afternoon, and soon lost sight of the shores of America. Nothing of any consequence took place on the voyage. We made Halifax again in the night, so that I could not see anything either of the harbour or the city. Here I lost my dear friend, Dr. Richey, and became truly desolate. He had been my companion at Pittsburgh, at the Canada Conference at Belleville, and travelled with me through Canada, and forward to this place. Truth and justice demand that I should say, that Dr. Richey is one of the most perfect Christian gentlemen I ever came in contact with. Politeness, founded on gentle, warm, and genuine affections, is the very element of his nature. I never heard from him a rash, rude, or unkind word, much less ever saw him perpetrate an unchristian or unbecoming action. I looked after my dear friend as far as the dim lamps would allow me to see him, and in my heart bade him a sad, a long, a last adieu. There sat opposite to me at our table a gentleman, with a lady and little girl, and on my right a thin, pale, interest- ing-looking young man, both completely Americanized in their appearance ; their beards were sticking, out on their chins in Yankee fashion, and their dress and bearing alto- gether seemed to bespeak them citizens of the States. We had taken several meals in company, when the gentleman who sat opposite said to me, "Pray, sir, is your name Dixon?" On replying, " Yes," he said, "And my name is Cocker : I am the son of Henry Cocker, of Hathersage :" and then the pale young man, who was standing by, said, " And my name is Ibbotson : I am the son of Mr. Ibbotson, of Sheffield." The meeting was mutually pleasant. Mr. Cocker left us at Halifax ; but Mr. Ibbotson was my very agreeable companion to the end of the voyage. 164 TOUR IN AMERICA. Sunday was unlike our Sabbath on board the " Acadia." Dr. Richey had spoken to the captain, whom he knew, and had told him who I was, and mentioned my taking the service ; and, moreover, he understood that the captain had assented to the proposition. But it did not so turn out. He read prayers himself, and finished the service with one of Henry Blunt's sermons. The service was well read ; and the sermon, as may be imagined from the name of the author, was excellent. How singular is human character ! This captain would certainly not lay claim to Methodism, and yet he seemed to take great delight in acting the parson, and really did it well. He is, however, somewhat celebrated for his exclusive churchism. About a dozen American divines sailed with him from the great Alliance Meeting in London, not one of whom would he allow to officiate ; but on that as on the present occasion, he performed the service himself. One other trait of character, but quite of another description, arose out of this affair. When the time came to propose the captain's health, which means returning him thanks for his conduct, a good Free-churchman, a genuine Scot, rose up and went out. He afterward told me, that, perceiving what was going to be done, he departed, because he could not in his conscience be a party to a vote of thanks to a man who had, as he expressed himself, " insulted you, by taking the service himself when there was a regular minister on board." The matter had little effect on my own mind, except in so far as it prevented me having the pleasure of preaching the cross of Christ to the promiscuous group around. But how truly characteristic of the real Scotchman was the conduct of my friend ! And, moreover, how honourable to his principles, his integrity, and his religious convictions ! On Saturday, the 8th of July, we hove in sight of old Erin early in the morning, and passed up Channel, all day seeing many spots interesting in Irish history, successively presenting themselves to view. Sunday morning we saw PART I. — PERSONAL NARRATIVE. 165 Holyhead. We were met, on returning home, with the truly English welcome of a dense fog and a drenching rain. Our pilot brought newspapers, containing an ac- count of the massacres of Paris. We had a great number of French on board ; they had been very gay up to this period ; but now an entire change came over them. Thoughtfulness, sadness, melancholy, were expressed for the moment : how Ions: would it last ? Some of the conn- tenances seemed to indicate the fear, that possibly some endeared relative mio-ht have fallen in the conflict. Had it not been for the serious events connected with the cause of this change, it would have been perfectly ludicrous ; it was like the overshadowing of a sunny scene by the sud- den rush of passing clouds. We landed at Liverpool at half-past two. I went to Stanhope-street chapel at night, and heard my present colleague, Mr. Brice. How sweet, how soothing, how heavenly is the service of God's house, after the tossings of a sea- voyage ! And how full of rest and quiet to the soul is the society of religious friends, after dwelling for a long time in the midst of promiscuous company ! I hastened down to the custom-house by five o'clock the next mom- mo- • but could not o-et released till near nine. Paid eisdit shillings duty for the American books which had been given me by friends. Set out for my beloved home, ar- rived about noon, found all well. To God be all the glory ! Amen. 166 TOUR IN AMERICA. CHAPTER XI. Reflections on America — Unfairly dealt with by Travellers — A religious people — This necessary to explain their state — The real Americans not hostile to this country — Their peaceful and prosperous condition — Education, the prin- ples on which it is conducted — The force of Christianity in its simply divine authority — The American's trust in this— Public Worship and the Duties of Religion — Slavery partly removed by the influence of Christian principle A lengthened investigation of objects of curiosity, or of men, manners, and institutions, is not necessary or intended, as our literature abounds with books of travel, graphic de- scriptions of scenery, and analysis of the institutions and social state of America. These productions, of course, take their colouring, in some degree, from the opinions, tastes, prejudices, and passions of their authors. They abound with information, but contain little instruction. And it cannot be denied, by candid persons, that most of them are grievously deformed by partial and exaggerated description — caricatures — of the manners and habits of our transatlantic brethren. The causes of this are undoubtedly many ; and, probably, if traced to their motive, would be found much diversified. One of these causes, however, is obvious enough. The Americans are a religious people; and this element can neither be avoided nor lightly touched. But, instead of treating this question with either the hand of the Christian or of the philosopher, these parties, in some instances, dis- regard the subject altogether, and, in others, treat it with levity or hostility. The religious notions and peculiarities of the people are turned into ridicule and scorn ; their asso- ciations for benevolent and Christian purposes are lam- pooned as fanatical ; their modes of expression and devo- tional exercises are held up to contempt ; and their absti- nence from the amusements of the world are treated as indicative of ill-breeding, or signs of hypocrisy. It is obvious that writers of this class are ill-suited to PART I. — PERSONAL NARRATIVE. 167 understand or to delineate the character of a grave and o religious community. Taking their gauge and measure- ment from the beau monde of London or of Parisian soci- ety, they naturally find all sober sense, industrious habits, and religious sentiments an eccentricity or a bore. The point with this race of voyageurs is, to see if the manners of the plain republican are in agreement with those of the aristocracy of old nations ; whether they come up to the coteries of the West End, of the clubs of St. James's, of the fashionable routs of our great parties; and, moreover, if they speak, and dance, and play in the first style of fashion. Can anything be more ridiculous than this? What right can the flippant dames, the military beaux, the panderers to frivolity, have to expect a people ready made to their several purposes ? Of what consequence can it be to the morality, the honour, the greatness of a people, that they should fashion their course by adopting the manners of the most frivolous, useless, and unreal portions of our own people ? Neither the wisdom nor the strength of even European society will be found in these quarters. The people who make sport of the Puritanism of the Americans, are themselves the objects of as much con- tempt, in their oavii country, as pity will allow to be just. Like other buzzing creatures, they have just the power to sting; and, with a malicious pleasure, they evidently de- light in the gratification of their feeble natures. Were the disposition felt, the laugh might be turned upon these tri- flers, with as much effect as they choose to indulge in at the expense of the " evangelicals" of the States. The irritation produced in America by the liberties which have been taken with their innocent and unimportant peculiarities, is not the worst effect of the ephemeral pro- ductions of the English gossips, who have chosen to make themselves merry at the expense of good manners. De- ception on the public mind of this country, to a fearful and mischievous extent, has been another of the consequences. 168 TOUR IN AMERICA. Gathering their opinions of American character from the representations of persons only intent on making a book, and rendering it spicy, is it any matter of surprise, that in this nation most false and injurious notions are entertained ? The evident intention merely to provide mental food for our circulating libraries ; to get up the tinsel sentimentality necessary to pamper the appetite for amusement and plea- sure ; the sardonic purpose to gratify the malevolence which takes delight in scandal ; to train and excite the worse than human infirmity which revels on the foibles and weak points of our fellow-men — supposing them to exist — merely for the sake of rendering them ridiculous; in fine, the disposition to meet the morbid prejudices of their read- ers, instead of being intent on truth, and doing justice to the character of the people they profess to exhibit ; utterly disqualify these authors for their task, and render their productions devoid of credit. It is humiliating thus to write ; but much more so to know, that gross deception has been practised in getting up even these productions. While the stranger has been admitted to the frank confidence of respectable and honour- able men, lie has sometimes employed this privilege in making them the subject of a mental picture, drawn in the mind, and anon to be transferred to his journal ; turning into ridicule all the real or imaginary singularities of their manners, and making them the butt of his wit. Their ac- tual character is not delineated. They may be good men, pure patriots, worthy citizens, successful merchants ; pos- sessed of strong and well-cultivated faculties, of good prin- ciples, of courteous manners, and generous dispositions; and yet all this is thrown into the back-ground, or never appears at all. At the same time, every trifling and un- important deviation from the beau idtal of dandyism is nagnified into prominency, and, by the ingenious combina- tions of the artist, a distorted picture is drawn, as untrue to life as if the noble frame of the American citizen had been PART I. — PERSONAL NARRATIVE. 169 screwed into the shape of the exquisite, who has, in his kindness, been taking his likeness. In the same spirit the privacies of domestic life, generous hospitality, and well- meant and courteous attentions, have all been distressingly outraged. Not even the ladies have escaped. Whilst they have been doing their utmost to make their home agreeable, provide the luxuries of the table, and administer to the pleasures of their guest, — he has had the meanness to select them as the victims of his satire ; and, whilst in- dulging in plaudits, compliments, and smiles, he at the same time has been treasuring up matter for a mean and cowardly exhibition of whatever his skill could afterwards turn to the account of his craft, in rendering ridiculous the women of America. This sort of conduct on the part of our countrymen — not to say countrywomen — has had the effect of keeping up irritation amongst the Americans, and of producing false notions in this country. Nothing can be more unfair to a people than to make their peculiarities the ground- work of any kind of description, physical, social, or reli- gious. The staple of their qualities must be fixed upon, not the exceptions ; otherwise the details will be untrue, and the picture distorted. On reading the productions to which reference is made, one cannot help asking, Is there anything else in these people ? If so, what is it ? That there must be something in them besides the trifles dwelt upon by these authors — even supposing them to be real — must be apparent to every one who allows himself to reflect but for a moment. The effervescences of society are not society itself: the holiday foibles of men cannot be taken as illustrative of their every-day habits ; the loose and slip-slop gait of a nation, when the day's work is over, cannot be considered as descriptive of their state when braced to the labours of life ; the free and familiar conversation of a people in their moments of relaxation, cannot be considered as the ex- 8 170 TOUR IN AMERICA. pression of those truths and principles by which they are guided in their serious moments ; and it could only lead to deception to suppose for a moment that the surface of a great community, made up as it must be of innumerable irregularities and follies, can justly indicate the forces which are constantly at work below. The aggregate, the totality of moral elements must be grappled, or otherwise any de- scription of the character and conditions of a nation must be perfectly fallacious. Judged by this rule, and ex- amined as a whole, it is the author's opinion, that the American people would suffer nothing from a comparison with any other. But it is, in point of fact, extremely difficult to obtain a true notion of the character and opinions of the genuine American, and especially from the public prints. The old, the home-born, the real man of the country is very differ- ent from the alien races which are constantly transferring themselves to the soil of the United States. These races are not always the most creditable in character, in mo- rals, in integrity, among the populations of Europe, which they kindly relieve of their presence, by transplanting themselves, and their very questionable virtues, to the New World. Some millions of these classes are now found located in the States ; and whatever may be the amount of their loyalty to the nation of their adoption, it is certain — indeed, demonstrated in no equivocal manner — that they all retain the virus of that disaffection to their own coun- try which, in many cases, first stimulated their departure. This is pre-eminently the case with the Irish. Steeped in religious, political, and social disaffection at home, what- ever may be the causes — just or unjust — these people do not fail to nurse, with the passion and intensity of their inflammable nature, an active and indomitable hatred against England. But now living on the American soil, these turbulent agitators are considered in this country as Americans. They are no more Americans than if, perchance, PART I. — PERSONAL NARRATIVE. 171 they were transplanted to China ; and, taking their place in the midst of that quiet and peaceful race, they should, by reason of this accidental residence, be considered Chi- nese. It is certain, that a large amount of the vituperation which is heaped upon this country by the public press of the States is from this quarter. Partly by their own means, and partly by the influence they exert by their priests, their numbers, and their organization, they are enabled to perpe- tuate in their exile the same antipathies, and to keep up the same rancorous bullying against the Saxon, as they did in their own beloved Erin. Their ardent and fierce pas- sions, the author was often told, whether of sympathy with their own island, or of animosity to ours, always last through the first generation. The Irishman never alters in his own person, whether found in St. Giles's or New- York. The sunshine of civilization, the softening influence of free insti- tutions, the example of quiet and good men, and, above all, the blessings of true religion, are all in vain. He continues the same fierce, intractable, restless being as when he left the wilds, or merged from the bogs, of his native land. To hate the English and eat potatoes were the two lessons of his Irish life ; and if he obtains better food in the New World, and thus unlearns the physical lesson, he never changes in his antipathies, or unlearns the moral, nay, the religious, duty of eternal hostility. The leaders of these people, some priestly and some laic, possess their newspa- pers everywhere in the United States, and, as in Ireland itself, are not very nice in the employment of epithets of abuse against this nation. These, generally speaking, are the parties who are so constantly attempting to keep up an irritation among the citizens of America against this country, by their venomous hatred, their abusive language, their speculations on revolts and revolutions ; and are, by these means, stimulating, as much as is in their power, the disloyalty of their own sweet " gem of the sea," and the Chartism of England. It is from this quarter, chiefly, that 172 TOUR IN AMERICA. the fiery stream descends upon us, and not from the genu- ine American press or people. Then is it fair, is it honest, to attribute to the Americans those hostile passions which, in fact, belong to our own people ? The real Yankee and the hot-headed Irishman are very different personages. It may be considered by everybody as a settled point, that the real American will never stir without an object. His love and his hatred botli will have some rationale. He will never be found to dis- turb his own quiet for the sake of agitating a distant nation for no rational purpose. His political belief, his theories of human rights, his perceptions of what he considers essen- tial to social happiness, his ideas of the grandeur of his own country, and of her high and glorious destiny — are, no doubt, deeply and vividly felt in his own soul. In fact, these thoughts and maxims live in the American as innate powers, as indestructible laws. But he is too proud a be- ing, is too conscious of his own dignity and strength, to be found intermeddling in the squabbles of other nations. He may, and no doubt does, desire that his own republican regime should be taken as a model system. All Europe and the world are welcome to the benefit of his experi- ments in legislation and government. In no other sense than this can the true American be considered a propagandist. It is the impression of the author, that a nation more proudly conscious of its own dignified position does not exist on earth. It is not this class who are found employ- ed in the mean and despicable drudgery of vituperation against this country, or seeking occasions of irritation and disturbance. This vocation is taken up and performed by our own recreant children ; with how much success, we all unhappily experience. Thus, by the agency of the two classes referred to, the British travellers on the one part, and the Irish residents on the other, the two countries are, in some degree, kept in a state of feverish excitement. This is painful to the PART I. — PERSONAL NARRATIVE. 173 real friends of both. Essentially one people, the bonds of union ought, by the removal of offences and jealousies, to be as much as possible tightened. The relationship is too natural, too dear and valuable, and connected too much with the happiness and advantage of both, to be allowed either to be severed or shaken by such agitators as these. It is easy to see, that the maintenance of peaceful and friendly relations between the only two great communities in which any real reciprocity of feeling, founded on religion and liberty, can possibly exist, must conduce, in every way, to the well-being and prosperity of both. The past jealousies of the two countries have not been unnatural, but now ought to end. The war of independ- ence, originating, as it did, in great questions of right on the one hand, and of independence on the other, was calculated to awaken every passion of the soul. Time alone could, of course, quench the fire thus kindled. Surely the cool breezes of seventy winters may be supposed sufficient to put out the flames then lit up. The two nations may, possibly, have separate interests to serve ; this must be the case ; but it is certain, that those which are common are much more numerous and durable. The political inde- pendence, the national freedom, the good government, the social happiness, the intellectual advancement, the moral and religious order and prosperity, of each, concurrently progressing, must necessarily act and re-act upon commu- nities so identical in character. These higher considerations may be strengthened by lesser ones. The trade and com- merce of Great Britain and the States will, in all likelihood, ebb and flow together. At any rate, it must be an infinite advantage to each to have the other for a customer. With- out these political and material ties, it is too much, per- haps, to expect nations to regard each other with much concern. The idea of a nation is, indeed, an abstraction ; as a reality, it is only an aggregation of individuals ; and men, all over the world, are certain to seek their own inte- 174 TOUR IN AMERICA. rests. It follows, that the reciprocity and friendship of nations must rest on the very vulgar fact of mutual bene- fits. It does not belong to the mere traveller to discuss these questions ; but he may easily see, that the good of one community is the good of both ; and, moreover, be pardoned if he modestly venture upon the task of advising, that the leading and active spirits, who, in both countries, have, and must continue to have, the main responsibility of fashioning the destinies of the two nations, may steer clear of all collisions, in the recollection, that on the peace, harmony, religion, industry, freedom, and moderation, of the Anglo-Saxon people, in the two hemispheres, hang the destinies of the human race. A real, confiding, well-understood, and permanent union of Great Britain and America must not only secure their own greatness and prosperity, but indefinitely promote the freedom and civilization of the world. The geographical position of the two nations, their addiction to trade, their instinctive maritime propensities, their adventurous spirit, their love of enterprise, must fit them to act together. But, more than this, the real identity of their opinions, though in some points seeming to differ, must prepare them to live in unity and love. This identity of sentiment and feeling may be seen in one single fact — the love of freedom. It would puzzle the finest optician to invent an instrument ex- actly to see the difference in this affection, as existing in the two countries. They may, and, indeed, do, differ in their opinions as to the best means of securing this inesti- mable prize ; but none as to its nature, its value, its neces- sity, its eternal oneness with the laws of nature and the will of God. On all these points the two peoples are fully agreed. Freedom, in each country, is a truth — a principle — a right. Existence without liberty, in either hemisphere, would be deemed a curse, and not a blessing ; the despot would be abhorred, antagonized, and destroyed. While these sentiments prevail, is it worth while for the two na- PART I. — PERSONAL NARRATIVE. 175 tions to quarrel respecting the means employed by either, to secure the end they have in view ? The moral grounds for harmony and concord are, or ought to be, much more potent than even the political ones for disunion and discord. The one class of motives rests on the eternal laws of truth, religion, honour, and brotherhood ; the other, on the acci- dents and interests of the hour. It is to be earnestly desired, that these considerations may have the effect of drawing the two countries together in uninterruptedly amicable relations. We are, in truth, the same people. In mind, in character, in habits, in modes of thought, there is infinitely more resemblance betwixt the British and the American populations, than can be found between either and any other nation. It cannot be otherwise, without a perpetual miracle. Sprung from a common parentage, the same tide of life flowing in the veins of each, the wonderful and mysterious type of soul which is so evidently possessed by races dwelling in both, each speaking the same language, and instructed and trained by the same master mind which lives and speaks in their common mother tongue ; — the political institutions of the older people the models of the younger community ; — the laws of the one country transplanted to the soil, and constituting the code, of the other ; — and, above all, the same religious sentiments which were embraced by the British people at the Reformation, and adopted before the pilgrim fathers took their departure to the New World, and still retained as the popular faith of both branches of the family : — All these things considered, how can it be other- wise than that next to a perfect identity should exist ? Nature is never untrue to herself, never obliterates her own impress, never does violence to her undying emotions. Is it in human nature for the American republic to reflect upon the birth-place and cradle of her existence, the father- land of her sires, to trace their own pedigrees and repeat their own names, without a thrill of interest and feeling, 176 TOUR IN AMERICA. which cannot be experienced in the case of any other coun- try than our own ? This is impossible. No man, however far he may wander, ever forgets his homestead, the scenes of his boyhood, the companions of his days of happy frolic and joy ; and, especially, he never forgets the endearments of maternal love. Tradition keeps alive what nature gives birth to ; and it is just as credible, that the Americans are an abortion of nature, as that they can ever cease to vene- rate and love the land of their sires. We have had proof that this monstrous perversion has not in reality taken place. It is the author's undoubted belief, that a profound affection towards this country lives in the real American mind. Beneath political agitations, jealousies, and mo- mentary ebullitions of spleen and opposition, there remains, in the depths of the human soul itself, the sure pledge, the indubitable guarantee, of reciprocal love. We say " reciprocal love." It is not to be expected, that the American people should continue to cherish good feeling towards us, if their fraternal regard is rudely or contemp- tuously met. From several causes, it is to be feared, that our disposition towards them is less kindly than theirs to- wards us. They can better afford to indulge in generous feelings than we can. Not to dwell on the fact that they were the victors in the painful strife which separated them from the mother country ; — their prodigious growth and expansion ; the vast augmentation of political power and influence acquired in a few years ; the immense improve- ment in their trade and commercial navy ; the successful trial of their principles of government, and their develop- ment on a constantly enlarging sphere of territory and population ; in fine, the entire success of the " great experi- ment," so emphatically referred to by Washington, when laying the foundations of the republic, may well lead to generous emotions, not to say complacency. But there are other causes of the trial of our feelings in regard to Ame- rica. It is to be feared, that the British population, in PART I. — PERSONAL NARRATIVE. 177 general, know infinitely less of the Americans than they know of us. Silly traditions, old prejudices, and the very natural pride and egotism of our nation, lead us often to take a perfectly false estimate of our kinsmen in the New World. Family quarrels and feuds, by general consent, are allowed to be more difficult to appease than any other. And, in the case of the American people, if nature is ex- pected to predominate over political antipathies and jea- lousies, b}^ the recollection of home, of descent, of their fatherland, ought not this to be mutual ? Can we forget, or fail to be influenced by the consideration, that the New World has become, and is likely to become more and more, the home of vast numbers of our own children ? The young life of England is pouring into the States like a deep and rapid torrent. Families and individuals from the old country are everywhere found, and in every possible va- riety of position and employment. The writer of these pages can never forget the intense eagerness and depth of feeling manifested by great numbers of these classes, and the joy connected with the mere opportunity of giving ex- pression to their attachment to their country. If it was discovered that I had been at the place of their nativity, knew any of their relations or friends, and especially if any of them had ever seen me before, their ecstasy seemed complete. Are we to forget, then, our children in the midst of our political hatreds ? England lives in America, and is likely to do so to a greater extent than ever. The soil which feeds and nourishes myriads of our own flesh and blood, who otherwise must perish ; a system which admits them to its privileges, and adopts them as brethren ; institutions which encourage their industry, foster their talents, and reward their public and private virtues ; a nation which lays open all its avenues of profit, employ- ment, honour, and distinction, of every sort, to our needy or adventurous sons ; such a land is not to be thought of by us otherwise than with profound interest and regard. 8* 178 TOUR IN AMERICA. The motives that lead the parent to follow his children with anxiety into the world, when they first leave his house, may well cause us, in the same spirit, to send our thoughts after our children, so numerously seeking their destiny in the United States. It has been already said, that the "Americans are a religious people." Their character, habits, and institutions, cannot possibly be understood, without taking this element into consideration. Persons who only look at the forms, the skeleton and frame-work, of society, and consider its strength and perfection to lie in these, will necessarily con- clude, that America is a heterogeneous mass of human beings, devoid of shape and symmetry. To parties whose lives have been spent in old nations, whose governing power, from time immemorial, has been external, and their means coercion, this is a very natural conclusion. The public order, morality, peaceful demeanour, and industrious habits of a people in these old societies, are all supposed, by their theories of government, to be enforced, — to be worked into the mind of the body politic by appliances from without. Government, in these cases, is like the dex- terous avocation of the herdsman or the hunter ; who, in the one case, pens in his animals, and only allows them to graze at his pleasure, and, in the other, circumvents them by his cunning and art. How far the state of these old countries has made this essential, it is not for us to discuss ; but, at any rate, if the necessity exists, it does not speak much for the intelligence and morality of the people. The pageantries of state, the trappings of royalty, the draperies and ornaments of decorated officials, — together with the infinite and endless, soulless ceremonies to be observed, — are all, no doubt, brought in to heighten the impression, and strike the senses of the vulgar. Those who place the power of good order and national security in these external things, will, as a corollary, think of the United States as a most lawless community. Not having the insignia of order, PART I. — PERSONAL NARRATIVE. 179 as found in their own country, they may, perchance, ima- gine that the substance is absent. It was the fortune, good or ill, of the present writer, to pass from Boston to Pittsburgh, and, of consequence, through all the intermediate space, embracing most of the cities, towns, and country of the older States, without set- ting his eyes on a single soldier, liveried policeman, or any other human being wearing the dress of authority. At the last-mentioned place he saw an assembly of volunteers, horse and foot ; and, on inquiry, found that they had turned out to do honour to the remains of one of their neighbours, an officer, who had lost his life in the Mexican war, and had been brought home for sepulture. But though there was not the slightest appearance of anything in the form of external coercion through all the space mentioned, so- ciety lay as unruffled, as peaceful and quiet, as one of their own beautiful lakes on a summer's evening. Let it not be imagined that this repose is the stillness of death. Pro- bably no equal number of men on earth are so active, so fully engaged, or have more various and complex business transactions, than this population. Industrious, eager for wealth, proud of distinctions, and sensible of the benefits of a good standing in society, these people are working their way up the hill ; and yet there is no visible, certainly no military, force to keep them in order. Here, then, are phenomena to be solved. How is this ? What is the power leading to this state of things? The answer to these questions will vary with the creed of the parties putting them. The political philosopher will look to his theories for a solution, and attribute the power and advancement of society to civil institutions, to the republi- canism of the country. He will say that the principles and provisions of this system, lying at the basis of the body politic, and extending their ramifications through the whole, are the motive power of the existing life, contentment, and happiness of the people. The economists, the merchants, 180 TOUR IN AMERICA. the men of trade, the dealers in money, and the jobbers in all sorts of speculations, will, in their turn, call in to aid the investigation ideas and notions taken from the wide-spread territories of the States, the fertility of the soil, the extent and usefulness of their rivers, the spaciousness of their harbours, mines, forests, manufactures, farms, and all the other agencies of industry and wealth. Without in the least depreciating the importance and value of all these things ; and, moreover, allowing them their just share in producing the existing prosperity of the country ; we must avow our skepticism as to the power of these means to create the greatness and the happiness of the American nation. It is, indeed, an unspeakable ad- vantage to be saved from the pressure of a crowded, and, as a consequence, a pauper population. This is fully en- joyed. Every man has scope for his enterprise without treading upon the heels of his neighbour, or injuring his prospects by competition. Every family has room for de- velopment ; the young can be profitably employed, and the certainty of success presents itself to stimulate their in- dustry and activity. There is a sufficiency of soil for the scions of every house to take root and spread their branches ; and, in case of suitable culture, the sunshine of heaven, its dews, and its rains, they are certain to rise to maturity. No kind of genius, of skill in the arts, of inventive powers, of mechanical capacity, of eminence in the professions, of governing talent, of senatorial elo- quence, or intellect of any other kind, can possibly go un- requited. There may be rivalries, contentions, and fierce gymnastic -like trials of strength, for the higher prizes of the world ; but there is an area of sufficient space to occu- py the population in the ordinary courses of life ; whilst great numbers have been trained in these normal schools, to aspire to the more honourable posts. Then, allowing for all the advantages referred to, we ask, Are they of themselves sufficient to account for the PART I. — PERSONAL NARRATIVE. 181 peaceful and progressive state of society, as it is seen in the United States ? I confess, I am not persuaded of their sufficiency. There must be something else, more profound, more permanent, more influential over men's souls, — some- thing more deeply imbedded in the moral sentiments of the people, more divine, than anything we have mentioned. If, in the absence of external coercion, society is found to be moral and quiet, then these virtues cannot arise from this cause. If not guided by the skill and the power of a master, men must be the masters of their own movements ; and in case these movements are in the paths of wisdom, g*od order, peace, and morality, to what does this lead us ? It leads to the inevitable conclusion, that moral sentiment is the guiding light and the sustaining power of such a community. But then is it possible for morality to have any vitality without religion ? We think not. A morality which is not based on the doctrines of Christianity is a baseless fabric, a sapless tree, a lifeless mummy ; in fine, a contradiction, a falsehood. But we are not left to specula- tion on these points. Inferences in many cases may be pretty truly drawn ; but we prefer facts. It is, then, an undoubted fact, that the American people do pay great regard to religion ; and as this, like every- thing else, is with them a personal and not a conventional concern, it is all the more energetically promoted. It seems a principle of Americanism, that the obligations of our nature are untransferable. An American never dreams of putting his social or religious obligations into commis- sion. He never considers himself as having denuded him- self of his responsibilities, when he has given his vote for a president, and taken his share in constructing a govern- ment. Even his political duties are not, in his own estima- tion, put in abeyance by these transactions, much less his moral and religious. He does not expect the government to serve God for him, or to take into its hands the task of publicly providing for that conservation of morality and 182 TOUR IN AMERICA. religion which he knows can only be secured by personal exertions. According to American ideas, the state does not consist of public functionaries, whether civil or ecclesiastical, but of the people. The souls and bodies of the population, unitedly, constitute the State : not a function, not an office. In the State making provision for this or the other, the American would include himself. He has no notion of public men taking his place, and relieving him of the burden of his own intelligence, conscience, humanity. This is a living power. It is refreshing even to look upon a true and real American, with his swinging gait, in the full consciousness of his manhood. There is something even in his appearance different from other people. It is not reck- lessness, not rudeness, not isolation, not misanthropy. No- thing of this sort is seen. And yet there is an air of per- fect independence and freedom, consciousness of strength and power, repose in the midst of activity, calmness and dignity with profound emotions. An American, more than any character it was ever my happiness to study, looks like a man who is sensible that he carries his own destinies about him ; that he is complete in himself ; that he is a self-act- ing, self-moving intelligence ; that he has to shape his own course, and become the architect of his own fortune. He does not seem to be looking without to catch the chances of some stray events by which to fashion his life : his thoughts are steadily fixed upon strengthening his own re- sources, and he is always laying in a stock for the voyage he is upon. The effect of this is to produce (I hardly know what to call it) a rotundity, a fulness, a complete- ness of manhood, not seen in other societies ; and to those who do not comprehend him, or who have only been ac- customed to the fawning flatteries — and as false as they are fawning — of other nations, all this is extremely offensive. Enter an American store, and, instead of being baited, wheedled, and deceived, the language, as expressed by PART I. — PERSONAL NARRATIVE. 183 action, is, " You may buy, if you please. It is your own concern ; do as you like." It came to the author's know- ledge, — and the fact will illustrate our point, — that a very popular traveller and writer, who was receiving the incense of the fashionable world in the States next to ado- ration, in the midst of this excitement, sent for a grave tradesman to wait upon him at his rooms ; no doubt with the intention of entering into some business arrangements. What was the reply? In spirit, "My compliments to Mr. , and inform him it is not the custom of our house for one of its principals to seek or receive orders in such circumstances. If Mr. wishes to do business with us, or has anything to propose, he must come to us ; we shall be glad to see him." " How rude !" says one of the gentlemen of " the trade," in " the Row," or at the West End. Well, the question of rudeness must be settled be- twixt the two parties. It is just possible that the Ameri- can might think it as rude to be summoned to attend the English traveller, as the latter considered it in him. We only select this instance of independence as illustrative of character. It is a general trait. Instead of moving and acting like the members of the body at the bidding of some other head or will than his own ; instead of being dragged along, like the helpless travellers of a railroad train, by forces independent of him- self, the American chooses to consult his own counsels, to examine his own course, and to move the machine intrusted to him by his Creator by his own free volitions. All this may either be good or bad. In case the forces which are thus put in motion are fitted to move aright, it is easy to see that the results must be vastly important. Man, free, unfettered, acting on his own convictions, supposing them to be wise and good, must possess a power which men in chains, or working in gangs like slaves in a plantation, can- not enjoy. This individualism is, in point of fact, the lead- ing feature of American character. The true son of the 184= TOUR IN AMERICA. soil never parts with it. The combinations, confederations, unions, and committees into which politics or commercial enterprises drive him, never despoil him of his identity. How then, seeing that every American is expected to act for himself, is he prepared to take his post ? Let us examine this point. Its solution is what we want to get at. Is he let loose on the world, a mere animal, to prey upon its vitals, or is he religiously prepared ? This leads us to the question of education. Great attention is paid by the Americans to this vital subject. What would be called in this country national education, universally pre- vails. Schools are provided at the public expense ; and though this people have a proverbial antipathy to taxation, yet they willingly tax themselves for this purpose. The system so often attempted here, on the model of some of the continental nations, is not the system of America. They have not established a central power, or educational department, under a minister of state, or anything analo- gous to our Committee of Privy Council. The people manage their own affairs in this as in other things. The municipal bodies and the parochial authorities have the power to assess themselves for educational purposes. This is done on a broad scale ; in the elder States the provision is universal, so that every child may, if his parents choose, obtain the advantages of a good common education. And inasmuch as every inhabitant is obliged to pay his share of the expense, whether he avails himself of the school or not, this is found to operate against parental neglect. But the advantages are so obvious ; the popular voice against ignorance, and in favour of knowledge, is so influential; the duties of citizenship, in which all share, are so pressing, and its honours so tempting ; that every parent is induced to place his children in one of these schools. Zealous partisans would probably say, that these are not religious schools, because particular creeds are not enforced. This would be impossible, in a country where PART I. — PERSONAL NARRATIVE. 185 no creed possesses a pre-eminence, or is sanctioned by the State. But if the Holy Scriptures constitute the basis of Christianity, then these are Christian schools, notwithstand- ing the absence of creeds. The Bible is read daily, it is the standard book, the foundation of everything ; and its divine authority is thus universally taught, and its sacred lessons constantly inculcated. True to their principles, the Romanists at New-York, some time ago, attempted to get the Bible banished from the public schools. In this they failed ; for though by their union and compactness they possess much strength, and on merely political questions, by throwing their weight into one scale, they have it in their power to turn the balance, — on this point, which was deemed a religious one, and on which all the Protestants were agreed, they utterly failed in their unholy attempt. This educational provision, being purely popular, may be taken as an indication of the public mind on a great religious question. Instead of leaving their children to go astray from their birth, we see that Christian instruction is provided for them, as an essential and national blessing. This does not seem as if the people were indifferent to Christianity ; and, moreover, it proves that they desire to seize the most fitting time in the life of man to inculcate its sacred lessons. This, no doubt, is one of the healing ingre- dients thrown into the troubled waters, one of the moral forces which ever after works in determining the character of the individual, the state of domestic life, and the condi- tions of society. And instead of indifference in this one arrangement, we see religion, in its most catholic form, employed as an instrument of national order, virtue, and peace ; and, that a useful and virtuous citizenship is not expected without the employment of suitable means. We are considering the question of religion. Do the Americans trust to the processes of secular knowledge, or the power of merely human means, for the maintenance of public order, and social prosperity ? The answer to this 186 TOUR IN AMERICA. question stands out in bold relief. In every city, small and great, are seen large and spacious public buildings ; and, on inquiry, the stranger is told that these are the common day-schools of the place. On entering, he finds that, besides the routine of a very good educational system, embracing the usual matters of secular instruction, the Scriptures are taught to the whole population ; God speak- ing to them in the impressive lessons of his own word. Here the work of Christianity begins. Can any one calcu- late the amount of influence produced on the public mind, and on the moral state of a great people, by this one living, active, pervading agency ? Religion is here brought to operate upon the youthful heart in its blandest and most winning, attractive form ; namely, that of the words of Scripture. It is not so very evident as some persons seem to imagine, that the best way to impress the mind of chil- dren is to drill them to get by heart some metaphysical, crabbed dogmas of theology, which neither themselves nor their teachers can in the least degree comprehend. Yet, in the jargon of our sectarianism, this is called teaching re- ligion, while the reading of the Bible itself is considered as not teaching religion at all ; and schools only using the word of God, with prayer, are said to be secular. Cer- tainly, Americans do not think so. The Holy Scriptures are a reality with them ; and by their conduct, we have reason to think that they place more confidence in the di- vine teaching of these " lively oracles" of God, than they do in the step-by-step process of Catechisms, all of which begin at the wrong end ; commence at the top, and build downwards ; start with the highest abstractions on the divine essence and attributes, and then from this elevation lead the poor little inquirer down into the details and facts of revelation. Is not a population, formed on the incul- cation of the Scripture, as likely to become real Christians and good citizens, as a population drilled in the abstractions of any existing Catechism ? There is a breadth, a fulness, PART I. — PERSONAL NARRATIVE. 187 a simplicity, and especially a divinity, in the word of God, which cannot be found anywhere else ; and, least of all, in the hare-bone, skeleton-like lessons propounded to the poor children of this nation. On the whole, then, it must be seen that the entire American people are trained in religion from their childhood, if the Bible teaches it. At any rate, an impression is made as to the divine authority of this holy book, that it is the word of God, the charter of salva- tion, the guide to heaven, and the only rule of faith and practice binding on the human conscience. One would think this is doing something towards forming society, and building the morals, happiness, and progress of the nation on our glorious Christianity. But besides the care taken of the young, we find that Christianity pervades the United States in vigorous action. This is seen in the numbers attending public worship, in the extent of church -communion, in the observance of the sacraments of the Church, in the respect paid to the Sab- bath, in the number and variety of religious and charitable institutions, in the placing of their collegiate and higher educational departments under the care generally of reli- gious men, in the diffusion and influence of a Christian literature ; and, in fine, by the depth and extent of reli- gious feeling and principle. By these means, Christianity, it is evident, touches and influences the entire social and political state. It is not meant by this that every individual is a pious Christian, but that the spirit of the evangelical system is in sufficient power to give to religious opinion and senti- ment the complete ascendant in society. A man is not reflected upon, or deemed less fit for the higher duties of the State, by belonging to a Christian church ; he is rather considered the better qualified for even civil posts of trust and responsibility. It happened that the writer fell in with persons, and heard from them the declaration, that they could not give their suffrages to a very favourite can- 188 TOUR IN AMERICA. didate for the presidential chair, on the ground that he was thouo-ht to be too lax in his habits. And, moreover, it was said, again and again, that this gentleman had damaged his position and blighted his prospects by this very circum- stance. Afterwards, indeed, he had reformed ; and it was stated, on good authority, that this gentleman had joined a Christian church, so that this objection must have fallen to the ground. This will appear foolish and bigoted to many of the wise men of this world, and may be thought to have been the feeling only of hot-headed enthusiasts. Not so. And it illustrates the point for which it is ad- duced, namely, that Christianity is a very powerful ele- ment in American society. A very sensible and amiable gentleman, living in the States, remarked, on the voyage out, " One of the things which will surprise you is the number of sects existing in the country." By the by, there is not m :ch difference in this respect between the mother and the daughter. But the fact here stated is a great stumbling-block to many, who can entertain no idea favourable to religion itself unless it exist as a unity, and is placed under the leadership of their favourite ecclesiastical functionaries. Certainly such parties will not find their " ideal church" in America. But if they will look deep enough, they will discover what is better than an external organization of stupidity and death ; they will find very much of the vitality of Christianity, a settled and active faith, together with a profound conviction of the obligations to energetic piety, and the exercise of a divine charity. This division of the Christian body in America into sects, and the fact that a union with any one of these sects is no bar against employments of the most honourable kind, is, to us, an anomaly. A Methodist lord-chancellor, a Baptist attorney-general, a Presbyterian commander of the forces, an Independent secretary of the state, and an Episcopal, or Popish, gentleman doomed to take rank with one of these PART I. — PERSONAL NARRATIVE. 189 sectarians, or under him, as the case may be, looks strange in this country. This is no fictitious picture, but a matter of fact. Men are united in the common service of their country indiscriminately, irrespective of their creed or re- ligious connexions. The sects may hate each other, as is their wont elsewhere ; but the State knows no distinction betwixt one class of religionists and another. At the present moment, though I was told that the Pre- sident does not hold communion with any church, yet he usually listens to a Methodist sermon in the morning, from one of the chaplains of Congress, who is of that persua- sion, and to a Presbyterian minister in the evening, his lady belonging to that church. One of the judges of the Supreme Court, answering as nearly as possible to our Court of Chancery, is at this moment a member of the Methodist Episcopal body, not nominally, but really ; observing the rules, and attending upon all the services, of his church in all his movements. Moreover, the talents, character, and standing of this gentleman are such, that in the present contest for the office of president he has been mentioned, indeed brought forward, by a numerous and most respectable class of his fellow -citizens, as a candidate for the high distinction. These are only mentioned as in- stances of the working of the system ; and no doubt every other appointment is in agreement with these cases of per- fect impartiality. But the matter of fact is, that in the United States the several churches to which reference is made are not, in our sense of the expression, sects at all. There are no sects in America, no Dissenters, no seceders ; — or, whatever other term may be employed to designate the position and stand- ing of a Christian society. They are all alike considered as Christians ; and adopting, according to the judgment of charity, with equal honesty, the common charter of salva- tion, the word of God, they are treated as equal, and as possessing similar and indefeasible rights. 190 TOUR IN AMERICA. This is certainly a new aspect of living and visible Chris- tianity ; and our business with it at present is, to test its operations on society. Can perfect liberty and equality in religion work well when favoured by circumstances as in the United States ? Is Christianity itself, in its own reve- lations, its own glorious platform and basis, its own provi- sions and divinity, when made plain, and put into the hands of a people, sufficient, without being formed and modified by the political society, to produce its legitimate fruits ? This question, like many others, is in course of solution in the States. Go into a Popish country, and speak of Christianity, and the native of one of these nations, how- ever elevated in rank, or polished by education, instantly thinks of Popery. He knows of no religious system but the hierarchy of Rome ; and it is impossible to get into his head an idea of an abstract, a divine, and an unalterable Christianity, reposing on the truth of God, and connected with his throne. It is very much the same among our- selves, and especially among the higher ranks. These gen- tlemen cannot conceive of any Christianity otherwise than that which is imbodied in their own church. In almost all the speculations of men among us, church organizations, official distinctions, ecclesiastical canons, and the dress and tinsel which men put upon their own fond creations, are confounded with Christianity itself, and so called. If looked at only in this light, the evangelical economy must be pro- nounced an utter failure. Of all the wretched things whose history stands out in the annals of time, the history of churches is the most humiliating, and the most calculated to make human nature blush. What had ecclesiastical, hierarchical Christianity done for the world in ancient times ? It has put its trammels upon the simple, primitive, and personal piety and usefulness, which had been pro- duced from time to time by the pure Gospel, and reduced the so-called church to the condition of one mighty con- glomerated mass of stupid ignorance and vice ; then seiz- PART I. — PERSONAL NARRATIVE. 191 ing the reins of even political power, has entwined itself parasitically around the institutions of society, reducing the world to the dominion of a politico-religious despot- ism. Much debate has arisen in the world respecting State's adopting the Church, then corrupting, then enslaving her. In passing, it may be permitted one to ask the zealous par- tisans of church purity and state corruption, of church love of freedom and state love of tyranny, just to reverse their inquiries, and ask, in all possible candour, as to the real delinquents in this matter. My belief is, that, as a general rule, the State has not corrupted the Church, except as a participant, just as companions in vice vitiate each other ; but the Church has, in most instances, corrupted the State. Neither has the State enslaved the Church, as a general rule, though sometimes this may have been the case ; but the Church has, whenever it was allowed, invariably enslaved the State. Nothing is so detrimental to the liberties and the virtues of mankind as a corrupt, a fetid religion, at the same time organized and guided by the subtle and crafty genius of a profligate priesthood. It can be no matter of surprise that the American peo- ple, being favoured with the opportunity, the soil being clear, and no old institutions standing in the way, should be disposed to adopt a new principle, and, discarding all authoritative church-organization, try the effect of Chris- tianity itself, in its own native grandeur and divine simpli- city. This they have done. We have seen that the people is the State ; and the State, in this sense, namely, through the people, has, with the exception of the infidels among them, adopted Christianity; only, instead of being an hie- rarchical government, it is that of the Holy Scriptures — the Bible itself being the governing light, the decisive authority, the court of final appeal. All the interests of society converge to this point ; religion is its life, its power, its beauty. It is like the substrata of the world, on which 192 TOUR IN AMERICA. all the soils whence the vegetable productions spring repose in security. Is this common Christianity, taught and developed in Scripture, sufficient for a nation ? May the people of a State be safely left, other things being favourable, to this simple process ? The answer to this question is in course of solution in the United States. So far as it has been tested, it is believed to have answered. Notwithstanding the number of churches, bearing different names, and adopting diversified forms of service, there is probably as much or more unity in these States than elsewhere. Looking at their spirit and visible position ; that is, in the general absence of polemic strife, of bitter contentions between church and church, of acrimonious declamation against each other in their religious periodicals ; — and then their intercommunion and good neighbourhood, joint exer- tions for common objects, and, on the whole, harmonious agreement : — these all unite to show that these professors of the name of Christ can meet each other on the ground of their common Christianity, though differing in non-essen- tial points. So far as he had the opportunity of intercourse with ministers and Christians of various denominations, the author is bound to say, that he met with the most frank and affectionate courtesy, and saw the same spirit mani- fested one to another ; and, moroeover, that there appeared infinitely less of what is distinctive and sectarian than in this country. While at the Conference at Pittsburgh, all the Protestant pulpits of every sort were filled each Sunday by Methodist ministers, except some one or two of the Episco- pal churches, whose ministers were believed to be tinctured with Puseyism. It is no marvel that this unity of spirit prevails. The bitterness of sectarianism is prevented by the nature of their position. No one church thinks of calling another church, resting on the Scriptures as its basis, and only dif- fering in external organization, " heretics," " schismatics," PART I. — PERSONAL NARRATIVE. 193 and " Dissenters." No class of ministers, except Popish priests and a few hare-brained Puseyites, ever dream of saying of other ministers that they are "unauthorized," have no "vocation," are "intruders" into other men's folds, and " usurpers" of the priestly office. These things can have no existence where common-law Christianity pre- vails ; they are the assumptions of sects, of exclusive pre- tensions, of caste claims. The only unity that ever can be found in this world, — unless God miraculously cut down all. souls to one common level, — is this. No power on earth can screw mankind into one shape and form on matters of faith and religious opinion. Unity can never exist in the sense of sameness, like bricks in a wall, or metal from a die. What is to throw souls into the same type ? The idea is absurd ; but this kind of unity has ever been the cant of bigots, or oftener still the instrument of tyrants to obtain the object of their ambition — dominion over their fellow-men. The unity of the Gospel lies deeper ; it is unity in the truth, not as seen by another, but as appre- hended by the individual mind. But this truth is large, broad, open. The divine revelations are not given in set and limited propositions, like the syllogisms of man. It seems to be the purpose of God to leave the manner of appre- hending and believing the Gospel undefined and free. How should it be otherwise ? Give any dogma to the first dozen men who may be met with, and it is certain that every one will conceive of it differently. How, then, can unity be found in the manner of holding the truth ? But though the Gospel may be apprehended variously, yet, if it is really embraced, and simply believed, as the mind is assisted by the helps within its reach, and especially as taught by the Spirit, who shall say that this vitiates the truth itself? Hence, though in the United States the churches may be called b} different names, and there may be diversities of opinion, even in matters of faith ; yet it does not follow 9 194 TOUR IN AMERICA. from this, that they are not every one of them true churches. But it is more on points of discipline and church order, than on questions of truth and faith, that differences spring up, and become the prolific parents of separations. Can any one prove, from Holy Scripture, that the Author of Christianity has not left this an open question ? Or, can any one show that He has given his followers a model church, a platform, a skeleton temple ? He has done no such thing. In his mercy and goodness to mankind, He has — following the analogies of nature — prepared a world, a universe of truth and grace, appearing confused, but not so in reality, stretching infinitely beyond the line and defi- nitions of man. And just as men are left to build their social state and polity, in the midst of the agencies and provisions of nature ; to cultivate their fields, erect their cities, appropriate to themselves the bounties of Provi- dence, and create the forms of civilization for themselves ; so, in like manner, Christians are permitted to erect their tents, found their churches, and enjoy the blessings of reli- gion freely, on the broad field of Scriptural truth ; and, for anything which can be shown to the contrary, one organi- zation is as lawful as another ; the only difference being in the fitness of such organization to edify the people them- selves, and evangelize the world without. The American system looks for unity on this broad basis. As far as can be seen, it is as much secured as can be well expected in the midst of the infirmities of human nature. At any rate, society is not convulsed, nor the state put into jeopardy, by religious contentions, claims, and projects. If religion does not bless, neither does it curse, the country ; if it does not produce health, neither does it extend any social pestilence ; if, in fine, it does not allay human pas- sions, neither does it exasperate them. But the matter is placed too low by being thus hypothetically put. It is my deep conviction, that religion is the conservative power of American society. It is the salt of the community ; it is PART I. — PERSONAL NARRATIVE. 195 the life and the soul of public and private virtue ; it is the cement, the power of coherence, which holds the States together; and, by purifying the public morals, elevating the soul with noble sentiments, creating the sense of re- sponsibility, and stimulating to industry, it is creative of their greatness and power. But by the English reader it will be instantly asked, — which, in fact, has often been the case, — If religion be so powerful an element in American society, why does it not abolish slavery ? Let us look at this question impartially. If this is done, it will be found that either Christianity, or some other great moral force, has done something in this direction already. The whole continent, including all the existing territory of the republic, was inherited, at first, from this country, with this great curse. Has anything been achieved to get rid of it ? The answer is, that many of the States have freed themselves from the evil. The States of Maine, New-Hampshire, Vermont, Massachusetts, Rhode Island, Connecticut, New- York, New-Jersey, Penn- sylvania, Delaware, Ohio, Michigan, Indiana, Illinois, Wis- consin, Iowa, have all renounced slavery. Let us learn to do justice where right principles have prevailed. Christian truth must have had something to do in free- o ing the people of colour from their chains. This, no doubt, has been the motive pcwer in bringing about this issue. There remains another triumph, even in these States, for the same influences to effect ; namely, the enfranchisement of the liberated African race in the rights of citizenship. They still remain aliens, though free. The constitutions of the several States, without exception, continue to pro- scribe them for the sin of the colour of their skin, however religious, virtuous, and orderly they may be.* These peo- * The constitutions of the several States merely pretermit them, by enact- ing that " every white male" shall possess the franchise. This is sufficiently effective. The State of New- York, indeed, mentions them expressly ; but (strange to say !) in the case of the African race, they establish a property- qualification. The words are : — " No man of colour shall vote, unless he shall 196 TOUR IN AMERICA. pie give their allegiance, their labour, their support to the state ; and yet they are denied any place within its pale. This is unjust, and it is as impolitic as it is oppressive. But we must trust to time, to the growth of better principles, to the improvement of the African race itself; and no doubt, where so much has already been accomplished, in the end right views and feelings will prevail. Nothing can be said respecting those States which are not only slave-holding, but manifest a fixed resolution to foster and perpetuate the evil. It is true, the difficulties in the way of getting rid of the institution are prodigious ; much more so than the people of this country can appre- hend. But this is no reason why the injustice should be cherished, and the aggregation of the mischief and misery increased, which is undoubtedly the case. We see amongst these southern States no disposition to take even the first step in the direction of liberty. What the religious element will ultimately do, no one can at present tell. If its les- sons and influences are not neutralized by the antagonism of slavery itself, in time, no doubt, it will produce the same results as in other places. If this is not the case, then the evil, as in other instances, must take its own course, and work its own cure. It is impossible that so monstrous an injustice should continue stationary. God has made in his decrees, in his immutable laws, the accumulations of evil to work their own destruction. Men may endure oppression up to a certain point ; but beyond that point it cannot be carried. The recoil comes, in the destruction of either the oppressors or the oppressed. One of these two results must, in the nature of things, take place in this case, — re- ligion will illuminate, exalt, and set the African race free ; or, being opposed, the ignorance, vice, discontent, and tur- bulence of slavery will, at some time, rise in revolt, and have been three years a resident of the State, and, for one year pext preceding the election, shall have owned a freehold worth two hundred and fifty dollars above all incumbrances, and shall have paid tax thereon." PART I. — PERSONAL NARRATIVE. 19? seek its revenge. The alternative is before the Southern people ; they cannot evade it, any more than they can stop the sun in his course. The question at present, though difficult, admits of a peaceful solution ; in a while this period of probation will pass away, and some fearful hurricane, some dreadful catastrophe, will come in to set- tle that which religion and justice failed to accomplish. 198 TOUR IN AMERICA. PART II. HISTORICAL NOTICES OF METHODISM IN AMERICA. CHAPTER I. Introductory remarks— Mr. Wesley's great talent for government — The confi- dence reposed in him — His disinterested encouragement to all who were ca- pable of rendering service to religion — Became the bond of union to the first Methodists in America. The history of Methodism in its commencement is one of those singular facts which come in to illustrate the force of that hidden and divine agency to which the glorious tri- umphs of Christianity are, in holy Scripture, always attri- buted. The insignificance of the instruments often em- ployed in the accomplishment of the work of God, is intended to demonstrate its spiritual, its divine origin. When parties, destitute of every human distinction, are seen to commence and carry to a successful issue the most difficult enterprises of religion ; it seems certain, from this, that they are employed by a higher power — that they have received a commission from God. It is true, that, in all its branches, Methodism possessed, from the beginning, the advantage of the counsels and con- summate guidance of its great leader. No man was ever better fitted for the task assigned him, in this respect, than John Wesley. His religious opinions and his policy were in perfect agreement, — Scriptural, simple, catholic, practi- cal. Everything with him resolved itself into one great purpose, — the promotion of the salvation and happiness of man, in connexion with the highest glory of God. Happily for mankind, the best blessings of religion lie within the compass of this simple area. Policy often perplexes, but nevir ultimately serves, the cause of true Christianity. The idea will look like a paradox to men who can see no PART II. — NOTICES OF METHODISM. 199 wisdom in government but what is circuitous, mystical, and subtle, to say that true policy is found on the surface, that it consists in a clear, lucid, and perspicacious adhe- rence to simple truth. And yet this is unquestionably the case. God, the supreme Ruler, has impressed certainty on all his laws. His government is not a labyrinth, a con- tradiction, a confused and clashing contrivance, a subtle system of expedients, intended to allure and to decoy his creatures into certain courses. The sunbeams of heaven are not clearer and brighter than the moral laws of the universe ; and the throne of the great Parent of all is no other than the throne of truth, which truth is being evolved in his entire administration and government. Confidence in this truth was never carried further, pro- bably, by any uninspired man than by the Founder of Methodism. His position made him necessarily the patri- arch and the governor of his people everywhere. On what did he depend to accomplish his work ? Nothing, certainly, but the force of truth through his long life ; and though often placed in very anomalous and perplexing circum- stances, yet we never see him resorting to any kind of finesse. He trusted his work where he trusted his soul, in the hands of God. But his maintenance of principle was free from passion, and equally free from narrow and isolated notions. We never perceive any angry or coercive enforcement even of the truth itself. Truth in his mind was not, indeed, a cold syllogism ; it had all the power of a command, an obligation : and yet it was only enjoined in the language of forcible argument, tender and affectionate persuasion, and, as occasion required, an awful lifting up of a warning voice as to the eternal consequences of its re- jection. His own keen intellect, illuminated by the Spirit, and sanctified by the grace of God, qualified him to appre- hend the appropriate course in matters of administration, as well as in other things, most fully and accurately : and then the purity of his affections, and his tender regard for his 200 TOUR IN AMERICA. fellow-men, enabled him to bear with their infirmities, ob- tuseness, and even factious conduct, when manifested, with entire confidence as to the result. But Mr. Wesley was no partial adherent to a system, any more than a dictatorial administrator of its laws. He clearly saw that truth, like nature, is an aggregation ; that one principle is linked with another, in harmonious concert, through the universe, and all to the throne of God ; that isolation is weakness, while a genuine, a catholic belief in religion, gives expansion to the mind, and calmness to con- fidence ; that government, like Christianity itself, must em- brace the happiness as well as the obedience of its subjects, or it must fail ; that man, in all grades of society, in all conditions of life, in all obligations and duties, in all offices and places of trust, ought to be treated with frankness, honour, and respect ; and, moreover, that in all religious relations the Holy Scriptures alone must be the rule, the final appeal. A ruler who fixes his thoughts and founds his entire policy on some favourite theory, some logical or mathematical line, some human dogma, some narrow party or sectarian base, — is sure, in the long run, to see his policy fail ; and the loss of his chimera will bring discomfiture and despair. His cause being frustrated, he imagines re- ligion itself is lost ; whereas, in point of fact, nothing but an embarrassment is gone. Not so with John Wesley. He had no scheme, no theory, no pet notions, in seeking to bring about the results of religion. He threw himself on the resources and power of God's economy. The spiritual life, the morality, the practical ends of government, secured, — he was perfectly indifferent regarding the external means. With him the experience of piety, the divine affections, the purity and holiness of soul and body ; the entire devotedness of talents, influence, property, to God ; the operations of a saving and practical faith in the Son of God ; the obligations to a con- secrated and useful life ; the spread of the gospel on the PART II. — NOTICES OP METHODISM. 201 widest possible scale ; and all kinds of good offices ren- dered to each other by Christians ; — these were the essen- tials of religion with him ; and whatever best promoted these ends, he considered as all that was important in matters of government. Hence his administration — if we may so call his care and authority — became easy. He did not fix his regards or bend his efforts to the formation of an ecclesiastical system ; but his one object was to help souls to get to heaven ; and he taught them that in their journey it was their duty to illustrate their Saviour's glory, and endeavour to persuade others to go with them to the same abodes of the blessed. In a word, it is clearly seen, in all the movements of this great man, that he kept but one thing constantly before his attention ; namely, the promotion of experimental and. prac- tical religion. And, what is more, the means agreed with the end. There was no ravelled scheme of policy in his government ; every one saw the end he proposed, and most persons acquiesced in the agencies employed to secure it. Nothing is more remarkable in the history of John "Wes- ley than the confidence his character inspired. All sought his counsel and advice, and deferred, in general, to his opinions. By reason of his disinterested regard to all who " loved our Lord Jesus Christ in sincerity," the singleness of his purpose, the simplicity of his course, and the urbanity of his manners, — he won the entire, the unbounded reli- ance of his followers. Unlike the vulture amongst birds, devouring some and frightening the rest, he attracted all by the music of his love, and never betrayed the confidence reposed in him. His object was, never to crush, to subdue, to repress the rising energies of any, even the poorest, Christian. On the contrary, his whole management turned on the principle of calling out the latent powers of the followers of his Lord, and turning them to the best account. No man ever did so much to exalt the lowly, to elevate the obscure, and to put all who were capable of any kind 9* 202 TOUR IN AMERICA. of service on the right track. Myriads have been rescued from a low and degrading position in life, and ultimately constituted the strength and ornaments of both the reli- gious and the social state, "who, but for him, would have passed through the world in some of its meanest and most vicious phases. His rule of action was, in the best sense, that of development. From his whole proceeding it is evident, that he had great confidence in man, as man, irre- spective of the accidents of birth and education. His object was to make every one better and happier than he found him. A priest himself, — but entirely free from the priestly spirit, — he sought to enlist, for religion and the progress of the gospel, all the gifts and talents created by experimental piety. By the adoption of this course, he appears, in all the different circumstances in which he is seen, much more of the father than the governor of his people ; though, in point of fact, no man more completely directed the affairs of a church than he did ; no man ever more really governed any body than he governed the whole Methodist community. We are often surprised, that instruments apparently so very unsuited, achieved so much in the early history of this work. The matter of fact, however, is, that all were directed by one mind. The agencies were various, the instruments often of the humblest kind, the talents, ab- stracted from the love and zeal of their possessors, were frequently of the meanest order, and the lines of operation adopted were sometimes extremely difficult ; but, all being moulded by the plastic power of this great master of cir- cumstances, the chaos was reduced to order, and the ele- ments which, in their separate state, were weak as water, became compact, massive, and strong ; like grains of sand compressed by the laws of nature into mighty mountains. It has been by the union of these insignificant fragments of piety and goodness, that the Methodist Church has risen to its present state. But it is perfectly easy to see, that PAKT II.— NOTICES OF METHODISM. 203 the power of cohesion could not exist in themselves. A centre of attraction, a uniting force, became essential. With- out this, the creations of religion itself must have spent their fire, and evaporated into thin air. In the first move- ments of any remarkable revival of the work of God, if this take place in the " field of the world," and not within the enclosures of an existing ecclesiastical system ; — men must, of necessity, become these centres of attraction, and exercise this power of concentration. Institutions, of course, cannot, at this stage, do this, inasmuch as they have no existence ; they may become rallying-points afterwards, as they take their position, and develop their excellencies ; but in the com- mencement, individuals constitute the centres around which those who have not the power of self-support naturally collect. This was the exact position of John Wesley. His labours had put many agencies in motion which could not, of them- selves, continue in any useful course ; but, guided by his wisdom, and held up by his encouraging counsels and sup- port, these simple and good men could accomplish much in the furtherance of the gospel. Hence the first scattered sparks of piety, which flickered in America, at once sought to connect themselves with him. The poor emigrants from this country and Ireland, who, belonging to the Me- thodist body, were made the instruments of introducing the system, — carried with them the traditions of his excel- lencies. They considered themselves his children, and connected with the united societies ; they had received their religious enjoyments in union with his followers ; they had been trained under the discipline he had established ; and hence, in their new circumstances, they could not look upon their expatriation as an excision from the parent tree. This, in some measure, accounts for the facts alluded to ; namely, that of a great result growing out of very insig- nificant means. And 3^et, by reason of its connexion with Mr. Wesley, nothing seems fortuitous. The rise and pro- gress of Methodism in the States does not look like a happy 204 TOUR IN AMERICA. accident ; though, in some of its features, it is sufficiently curious. The modes of the divine operation are often mys- terious ; but there seems to be one unalterable rule in the economy of Christianity, that is, to bless man by man. The pervading will of God, as well as the influences of his grace, is, indeed, actively and constantly at work in con- nexion with the progress of his gospel, but not so as to exclude human labour. This will of God is eclectic as to the choice of agents ; electing some to be the depositaries of power, of trust, and of government ; giving these parties, truly and really, a divine mission, authenticated by gifts, influence, and bless- ing, though not by visible miracles ; and, as their work is amongst souls, and refers especially to religion, bestowing upon them a remarkable degree of spiritual power, in the form of confidence, exercised in their functions and call. On this principle our Founder was an elect man ; chosen for his position ; endowed with divine gifts ; made the cen- tre of a great spiritual power ; and became the instrument and messenger of a new development of the Christian re- ligion ; and, inasmuch as he was " ordained a vessel unto honour," God gave him the hearts and affections of men. By reason of this it will be seen, that when the little rills began here and there to bubble up in America, they con- nected themselves directly with Mr. Wesley ; and thus brought themselves into close and intimate contact with the Fountain of all grace, through the instrumentality of one who had been thus chosen, as the chief channel of its communication in the line in question. The evidences that this is the work of God, are complete. Indeed, the social progress of the United States is not more in proof of the contemporary existence and operation of the moral ele- ments of civilization — than the origin and progress of Methodism is in proof of the presence, influence, and vari- ous gifts and blessings, of the Spirit of God, in connexion with its triumphs. PART II.— NOTICES OP METHODISM. 205 CHAPTER II. The Introduction of Methodism into New-York — Philip Embury — Begins to preach — Captain Webb — The first Society — Preaching-Houses — Robert Strawbridge commences preaching in Maryland — Freeborn Garrettson — Captain Webb's Labours in Long Island and Philadelphia — Attempts to get Mr. Benson appointed to America — Reflections on these Agents — The Class- Meeting. We now hasten to give some notice of the introduction of Methodism into America. Twenty-seven years had passed from the time of the establishment of the " United So- cieties" in England, and thirty-seven from the period of the meeting of the rudimental society, or " Godly Club," in Oxford, before it made its way into New- York, in 1*766. It is impossible to suppose, that this time had elapsed without emigrant Methodists having arrived from the mother country. They had, consequently, lost their reli- gion, or passed into other connexions ; in the former case, they had been absorbed in the world, as the persons who, at the above date, were instrumental in beginning the work, were in danger of being. * Philip Embury, and a batch of emigrant Methodists from Ire- land, had so far given up their profession as to become card- players, when another family arrived from Ireland, amongst whom was ' a mother in Israel,' to whose zeal in the cause of God they were all indebted for the revival of the spirit of piety amongst them. Soon after their arrival, this good woman ascertained, that those who had preceded her had so far departed from then* ' first love,' as to be min- gling in the frivolities and sinful amusements of life. The know- ledge of this painful fact aroused her indignation, and, with a zeal which deserves commemoration, she suddenly entered the room where they were assembled, seized the pack of cards with which they were playing, and threw them into the fire." How great the pity, that the name and future circum- stances of this noble-minded woman are not preserved ! She may be justly considered as the real instrument of the work which followed ; inasmuch as she roused the 206 TOUR IN AMERICA. slumbering men from their lethargic dreams, and put them in motion. " Addressing Embury, she said, ' You must preach to us, or we shall all go to hell together, and God will require our blood at your hands.' He tremblingly replied, 'I cannot preach, for I have neither a house nor a congregation.' ' Preach in your own house first, and to our own company,' was the reply. Feeling the responsibility of his situation, and not being able any longer to resist the importuni- ties of his reprover, he consented to comply with her request ; and, accordingly, preached his first sermon in his own hired house, to five persons only. This, it is believed, was the first Methodist sermon ever preached in America." — Bangs 's " History of Methodism ," vol. i, pp. 47, 48. Thus began Methodism in America. The circumstances are not very auspicious, and the chief agent, as we see, not a very promising person. Had not the faith and zeal of our female heroine come in to the help of pusillanimous men, the feeble spark would, at this time, no doubt, have gone out ; and the origin of this great cause would have commenced at some other point, and, possibly, have as- sumed another character. " From this time they gradually gathered strength, till they were able to rent a room in the neighbourhood, of larger dimensions. Here they assembled for mutual edification, Mr. Embury continuing to lead their devotions, and to expound to them the word of God." — Idem, p. 46. Captain Webb made his appearance on the scene soon after their first feeble efforts, greatly strengthening the confidence of the " little flock," and, instrumentally, aug- menting their numbers. He had been brought to the knowledge of salvation by the remission of sins, at Bristol, about the year 1*765 ; and, it seems, immediately began to call sinners to repentance. The character of his preaching may be pretty well ascertained, by an entry or two in Mr. Wesley's Journal. He says,— " Captain Webb preached at the Foundry. I admire the wisdom of God in thus raising up various preachers, according to the various tastes of men. The captain is all life and fire ; therefore, although PART II. — NOTICES OF METHODISM. 207 he is not deep, or regular, yet many who would not hear a better preacher, flock to hear him. And many are convinced under his preaching, some justified, a few built up in love."—" Works, 1 " vol. iii, p. 287. "Captain Webb lately kindled a flame here, (Devizes,) and it is not yet gone out. Several persons were still rejoicing in God ; and the people, in general, were much quickened. I found his preaching in the street at Winchester had been blessed greatly. Many were, more or less, convinced of sin ; and several had found peace with God. I never saw the preaching-house so crowded before, with se- rious and attentive hearers." — Idem, vol. iv, p. 261. At the period under review, the captain was stationed at Albany, the capital of the province of New- York ; and his appearance on the theatre must have created great interest in the public mind. His rank in life, his military costume, — in which it seems he preached, — his dauntless resolution, his fervid spirit, would, in a thoughtless and dissipated population, succeed much more in rousing at- tention than regular ministrations, however plain or elo- quent. Accordingly, his preaching " drew many to the place of worship ; and the room where they assembled soon became too small to accommodate all who wished to hear. Sinners were awakened and converted to God, and added to the society. These, continuing to walk in the ' fellowship of the Holy Ghost,' were much strengthened and comforted ; while others, who beheld their godly con- versation, were convinced of the power and excellence of their religion." — Bangs's "History of Methodism" vol. i, pp. 49, 50. The society of Methodists was now fairly established, the instruments being, as we see, a timid local preacher, a faith- ful and heroic woman, and a brave, believing, and zealous military officer. The hired room now became too small for the congregation, and the next step in advance was to rent a rigging-loft, in William- street. This place, like the other, soon becoming too strait, the people began to entertain the notion of building a preaching-house. 208 TOUR IN AMERICA. " While all were deliberating on the most suitable means to be adopted to accomplish an object so desirable, and even necessaiy for their continued prosperity, an elderly lady, one of the Irish emi- grants before mentioned, while fervently engaged in prayer for direc- tion in this important enterprise, received, with inexpressible sweet- ness and power, this answer : ' I the Lord will do it.' At the same time, a plan was presented to her mind, which, on being submitted to the society, was generally approved of, and finally adopted. They proceeded to issue a subscription-paper, waited on the mayor of the city, and other opulent citizens, to whom they explained then- object, and from them received such liberal donations, as greatly encour- aged them to proceed in their undertaking." This led to the erection of John-street chapel, sixty feet in length, and forty-two in breadth ; the people calling it, from respect for the venerable founder of Methodism, " Wesley Chapel." This was, most likely, the first chapel ever called by this name ; as, most assuredly, John Wesley would never allow either chapel, society, or anything else, to be called after him, in England, so long as he lived, and possessed the power to prevent it. The name of the above female has been happily rescued from oblivion. " The name of this pious woman was Hick, the mother of the late Paul Hick, who became a member of the Methodist Episcopal Church in his youth ; and was subsequently a class-leader and trus- tee, in which offices he continued till near the close of life ; and finally died, in the triumph of faith, in the seventy-fourth year of his age. He has children and grand-children, now members of the church in the city of New- York. He has often conversed with the writer re- specting the circumstances and incidents of those early days of Me- thodism, with much apparent delight and gratitude. When quite a lad, his mother used to lead him by the hand to the meetings ; and, said he, ' the first sixpence I could ever call my own, I put into the plate, which was carried around to receive the contributions of the people ; and I felt, in so doing, an inexpressible pleasure.' God abundantly rewarded him in after life with both temporal and spirit- ual blessings ; and he lived to see ' this seed of the kingdom spring up, and bear fruit, even a hundred-fold.' " — Bangs' 's " History of Me- thodism" vol. i, pp. 50, 51. In the mean time Captain Webb continued his zealous PART II. — NOTICES OF METHODISM. 209 labours with great success. He preached in various places in Long Island, produced great awakenings amongst the people, and prepared the way for the formation of societies. His love to the Saviour and the souls of men carried him to Philadelphia, and he became the means of laying the foundation of a great work of God in the famous Quaker city. When, in IV 6 9, the first missionaries, Messrs. Board- man and Pilmoor, landed at Philadelphia, they found the heroic captain in the city zealously pursuing his course, and a society collected by his labours of upwards of one hundred members. Much about the time these things were taking place, an- other agent from Ireland, Robert Strawbridge, began to preach in Maryland with equal success. He settled, it seems, in Frederick county in that State, and at first com- menced preaching in his own house. These labours were soon enlarged, and, like his contemporaries in the work, he extended his evangelical exertions to various parts of the country around. The success attendant on these efforts obliged our evangelist to turn his attention to the erection of a place of worship, which he accomplished at Pipe Creek, and which passed under the name of the " log meeting- house." This first Methodist place of worship in Maryland became famous in its history, and several of the early Con- ferences were held within its "log" walls. It was in the midst of these first and desultory labours of Mr. Strawbridge, that one of the earliest and most eminent of the native American ministers became acquainted with the way of salvation. Freeborn Garrettson met with Mr. Strawbridge at a friend's house in his own neighbour- hood ; and this incident seems to be the first link in a chain of events, which led that excellent man to become one of the most honoured and successful pioneers in this great work. Who does not feel a pleasure in searching out among elevated ridges the springs and rills which, in their course, 210 TOUR IN AMERICA. constitute great rivers ? It may be in imagination only ; but there is delight in sipping the water at the fountain- head, in spanning the tiny stream as it gurgles out of the rock, and then examining how it makes for itself a channel. There will in this be little to please the economist and the practical man. He only cares for results, for organizations, for a working power : the elements of things are nothing to him ; these he willingly gives up to prying curiosity. But it is clear enough that his favourite aggregations could have no existence without these elementary processes ; the great has its origin in the little, as the river in the fountain ; the woodman's axe, the ploughman's art, the housewife's spinning-wheel, the hand-loom of the humble weaver, the rude log-hut, constitute the foundations of the most ad- vanced civilization. To despise, or even to disregard, first efforts, indicates folly as well as pride. And in despite of the generalizings of philosophy, it will be found, in fact, that the characters, the opinions, the modes of operation, the tools, so to speak, which are employed, the lines of labour marked out, and the genius, spirit, and soul of these first essays, will give their colouring, and even forms, to all succeeding creations. This is evidently true in the case under consideration. Captain Webb seems to have been a perfect embodiment of the true genius and spirit of primitive Methodism. What the grave New-England religionists, and all men of their class, would consider its irregularity, enthusiasm, zeal, activity, and faith, — seems to have had a place in the soul and life of this noble soldier of the Lord Jesus Christ. By reason of his leisure, property, and position, he possessed the means of more extensive labours than Philip Embury or Robert Strawbridge. These good men occupied a sort of pastoral function on a limited scale, while the good cap- tain acted as an evangelist, pressing into every open door, and boldly proclaiming the glad tidings of salvation. The writer of a letter to Mr. Wesley, signing himself T. T., dated PART II. — NOTICES OF METHODISM. 211 New- York, April 11th, 1768, gives us some insight into the captain's character and proceedings. " For some time few thought it worth their while to hear ; but God so ordered it by his providence, that, about fourteen months ago, Captain Webb, barrack-master at Albany, (who was converted three years ago in Bristol,) found them out, and preached in his regi- mentals. The novelty of a man preaching in a scarlet coat soon brought greater numbers to hear than the room could contain. But his doctrines were quite new to the hearers ; for he told them point- blank, that all their knowledge and religion were not worth a rush, unless their sins Avere forgiven, and they had the witness of God's Spirit with theirs that they were his children. This strange doctrine, with some peculiarities in his person, made him soon taken notice of, and obliged the little society to look out for a larger house to preach in About this period Mr. Webb, whose wife's relations lived at Jamaica, Long Island, took a house in that neighbourhood, and began to preach in his own house, and several other places on Long Island. Within six months, about twenty-four persons received jus- tifying grace : nearly half of them whites, the rest Negroes. While Mr. Webb was (to borrow his own phrase) 'felling trees on Long Island, brother Embury was exhorting all who attended on Thurs- day evenings and Sundays, morning and evening, at the rigging- house, to flee from the wrath to come.' It was the 26th day of October last when I arrived, recommended to a person for lodg- ing. I inquired of my host, who was a very religious man, if any Methodists were in New- York; he answered that there was one Cap- tain Webb, a strange sort of man, who lived on Long Island, and who sometimes preached at one Embury's, at the rigging-house." It seems that our good captain not only laboured him- self, but exerted his influence to procure others to enter the field. He had an " impression" that Mr. Benson ought to go to America. The matter, as in all similar cases, was referred to Mr. Wesley, who, in a letter dated March 2d, IT 1 3, says, — " Certainly, you cannot stir, unless you are clearly satisfied of your call from God. An impression on the mind of another man is no rule of action to you. The reasons you give on the other side are weighty, and will not easily be answered." This call upon Mr. Benson by the captain, roused Charles 212 TOUR IN AMERICA. Wesley, who, in his usual style of frankness and energy, gives his notions of the captain's character. " I have barely time to say, your own reasons for not yet going to America, and Christopher Hopper's, are unanswerable. Mr. F." (Mr. Fletcher, no doubt) "is only the captain's echo. The captain's impressions are no more, or very little more, to be depended on than George Bell's. He is an inexperienced, honest, zealous, loving en- thusiast. God only knows whether you may not be called to America by and by. At present, your call is not clear ; therefore, stand still, and send our friends a loving, explicit refusal." It is singular enough, that whilst the several parties thus dealt with the captain's " impression," they all refer to the same principle. John Wesley thinks the "call," when di- vine, must be addressed to the person concerned, and not to another; he is the party to be convinced, and to be persuaded. Charles is not sure but the " call" may come some time, and Mr. Benson may be sent to America ; whilst he himself evidently refers to the s me thing, only he ar- gues, and that so conclusively as to convince the brothers, that to himself the "call" is not sufficiently clear and ex- plicit. It would be difficult to prove that Captain Webb's " impression" in this case was a revery, an ill-founded piece of enthusiasm. Had his election fallen on some in- competent person, Charles Wesley's biting caustic might have been justly applied. But the " impression " referred to a man whose age, piety, learning, great preaching talents, practical wisdom, entire attachment to Methodist theology, and eminent controversial and literary attainments, seemed in reason to point him out as the most suitable man in England for the work. Besides, there seems to have been a balance of judgment, two against two, — John and Charles Wesley against, and Captain Webb and Mr. Fletcher in favour. How prescient is Providence ! Had Mr. Benson gone to America, and taken the superintendence of the work, as he must have done, it is probable that his influence would have altered the whole aspect of things. Dr. Coke, in that case, could have had no place in the organization PART II. — NOTICES OF METHODISM. 213 of Methodism ; Francis Asbury must have been a secondary- man ; and, with Mr. Benson's views and opinions, it is ex- tremely likely, not to say absolutely certain, that the Me- thodist Episcopal Church would never, in its present shape, have existed. On what wonderful contingencies hang the greatest results ! These, then, are the agents, and this the beginning, of Me- thodism in America ; now grown to be by far the most nu- merous church in the United States. How different this commencement to any other religious formations in this coun- try ! When the pilgrim fathers sailed in the " Mayflower " with her companion, they constituted a church, an ecclesiastical state. Some of the most eminent Christians, probably, of the age accompanied the expedition ; they were men of real greatness of mind and heart ; they held a doctrinal system, arranged, digested, put into syllogistic order, and defended at all points ; they had left their country for the sake of what they considered a principle, a truth, which they car- ried with them as a sacred deposit, as the ark of G od ; the formalities of devotion and of religious rites attended every step ; and they seemed to act upon the conviction that they were going, in the name of their Divine Master, to take possession of a new " land of promise." We do not say they were mistaken in their convictions, or that they failed in their anticipations ; all that is meant to be noticed is, that this was formal, and that the religion of the transaction possessed a shape, a plan. W'hen William Penn took possession of Pennsylvania in the name of Quakerism, this was the case also. The Quaker king was himself a great man in every sense. In family connexions, in social rank, in all the qualities of the statesman, in knowledge and literary attainments, and actual standing in society, William Penn was a man to take rank with peers and princes, philosophers and statesmen. Religion, under the auspices of such a leader, has the appearance of a great interest, and likely to prosper. It 214 TOUR IN AMERICA. demands respect, and claims the approval of parties who look more at ''the outward appearance," than abstract truth. And, moreover, though the forms of Quakerism were very different, as was its spirit also, from the Puritanism of the settlers of New-England, yet still it had its own peculiar garb, and presented itself to view as a visible em- bodiment of Christianity. Methodism began in America in a perfectly different manner. Its first disciples, we see, had no name, no rank, no means, no scholarship, no power, no human credentials. It was introduced by a few poor, unknown, and unnoticed emigrants, who took their place amongst the common peo- ple, and occupied themselves in the menial affairs of life. The general population knew not that any parties lived amongst them of any remarkable stamp of character. Nei- ther themselves nor the people for a moment dreamed that they were the chosen apostles of God to introduce a doctrine, a system, which, in the course of time, was des- tined to become a great church. There was certainly no design, and no kind of forethought, of any results beyond present religious edification. What, then, gave Methodism its force, its momentum ? Unquestionably the truth and the Spirit of God in the first degree ; but then, it was truth unembarrassed, unsystematized ; truth in its simplicity. Moreover, it was not the gospel in any gorgeous array of symbols or of ornament, it was one capital and experimental verity ; namely, the offer of the pardon of sin, with its attendant blessings. This was just about all that these disciples of Methodism knew, or could preach to others. But it is exactly such a doctrine as is calculated to arrest attention, to excite the soul to a profound thoughtfulness, to prepare the way for other enunciations ; and, by reason of its exact adaptation to man in his guilt and miseries, is likely, in the issue, to win numerous converts. Besides, this single truth is in its nature germinant. Though but one in itself, it leads to everything else. But how great PART II. — NOTICES OF METHODISM. 215 the difference between the Methodist doctrine of the par- don of sin, and the Puritan doctrine of the decrees, and the Quaker doctrine of the inward light ! The founders of New-England and its religion sought, by all possible means, to establish their repulsive system of election and reprobation ; and, as if to give practical effect to their doctrines, refused residence and neighbour- hood to every one, unless he believed their creed and belonged to their church. The Quaker-prophet taught the people to look within, and to unravel the right from the wrong, the good from the evil, the light from the darkness, the divine from the human ; and insisted that religion was of the nature of an internal oracle, which, if rightly con- sulted, would lead to truth, virtue, and God. The Method- ist, from the earliest period of his appearance in America, on the contrary, went about proclaiming pardon, justifica- tion, as freely procured by the death of Christ, and offered to all men in the gospel. This was his mission, the blessing he preached, the acceptance of which he enforced upon his audience ; teaching, at the same time, the mode of its attainment by faith, and pointing out its evidences and fruits. There is not so much in this to engage philosophy and excite admiration as in the other systems referred to ; but there is much more to meet the wants of mankind, to satisfy the cravings of the soul, to ease the anguish of the conscience, and to lead to peace and holiness. Mr. Ban- croft could not write so splendid and philosophical a dis- sertation on the Methodist doctrine of pardon, as he has produced on the "inward light" of the Quaker system; and yet this doctrine of pardon has done a thousand times more to evangelize his country, and gained a hundred- fold more disciples, than the system he so eloquently eulo- gizes. But this doctrine is powerful, not simply because it is so well adapted to man's state : it is effective, because divine ; the very blessing of the gospel, to which the Holy Spirit gives his testimony and influence. No one can pos- 216 TOUR IN AMERICA. sibly account for the success of the early propagators of Methodistic doctrine, on any other principle than this. It owed next to nothing to its agents, but everything to its own intrinsic truth ; — stripped of all efflorescent verbiage, and rendered powerful by the blessing of God. The only external appliance which Methodism possessed, at this first stage of its existence, was the class-meeting. Many parties will be unable to see anything in this ; and some will smile or sneer, as the case may be. Be this as it may, there can be no doubt that these meetings collected the scattered rays of light into a focus, gave solidity to the work, and fostered the courage and confidence of the dis- ciples ; strengthened, animated, and inflamed their piety and love ; drew out their respective talents, whether for prayer, exhortation, or any other service ; and consolidated their means for exertion and usefulness. The social prin- ciple in religion is power, as well as in other things ; and it is especially necessary in the feeble commencement of any new undertaking. We have seen that Philip Embury and his companions had given way, when roused from their slumbers by the importunities of a more faithful female. The result was, the establishment of what is called " a so- ciety ;" and Ave hear no more of any vacillations. The members of the "little flock" looked after each other; became, in some sort, answerable for each other's character and piety ; assisted each other in their daily trials, and prompted each other " to love and to good works ;" and, by these several means, gave solidity and strength to the whole work. But this is not all ; these class-meetings be- came centres of life. Their several gifts were brought into exercise, and, consequently, improved ; and many of the members, as the result, became eminently useful, who would, probably, have remained in listless obscurity. These classes thus proved to be " schools of the prophets ;" and, like the fountain in the arid desert, sent forth their ferti- lizing waters to the regions around, giving religious verdure PART II. — NOTICES OF METHODISM. 217 to places which must otherwise have remained in a state of barrenness and death. It results from all that we have seen, in connexion with the early stages of this great revival of religion on the con- tinent of America, that, so far as human and external means are concerned, it owes its origin and progress to two very simple powers, — the doctrine of pardon, and the class- meeting. These, it may be thought by some, are inade- quate means to produce such effects ; that, in point of fact, there must have been something more profound, more recondite. On examination, however, it will be perceived, that, in everything divine, the declaration of the apostle is found true : " God hath chosen the weak things of this world to confound the mighty." The men first called by Christ to the apostolic office, were selected from amongst the common people ; the speech they employed was plain, pointed, and expressed in the idioms of the times ; the doc- trines they taught were certainly such as we have indicated, and were stated in a popular, and not a scholastic, style ; the societies established were evidently spiritual, practical meetings for merely religious purposes ; and the church- officers were men of plain sense, good character, and emi- nent sanctity ; while their office itself only contemplated the promotion of piety, or relief to the poor. In this manner the Methodist societies were first formed, both in America and elsewhere. Their simplicity was their beauty, their glory, and their strength. This ill accords with the complexity of most ecclesiastical organizations ; in which complexity many, though in great mistake, place their strength. In this work, then, there can be no ground for glorying in man. "Not by might, nor by" human " power," were the foundations of Methodism laid in the American colonies. This church can boast of no princely power, no noble - patronage, no legislative provision, no chartered immunities, no domestic or foreign support. No apostolic man, linked in the chain of any kind of succession, 10 218 TOUR IN AMERICA. laid the foundations of this gigantic fabric. The Methodist Church cannot count back to a Peter or a Paul, like the pretence of Rome ; nor can they reckon on great traditional or historic characters, as coming from afar to plant the gospel on their shores. The period will allow of no mys- tery; no strange missionary, as Patrick in Ireland, can ever be palmed on public credulity, as the agent of this work ; it is not, it cannot be, lost in the dim distance of a remote antiquity. The curious can never dispute about the origin of the movement. Philip Embury, Robert Straw- bridge, Captain Webb, and the " mother in Israel," men- tioned before, instrumentally, laid the foundations of one of the most numerous, well-governed, pious, and useful Protestant churches in the world ; and the powerlessness of the instruments must lead all to acknowledge, that this is, indeed, the " finger of God." CHAPTER III. Application to Mr. Wesley for Missionaries — Messrs. Boardman and Pilmoor appointed — Account of the State of Things — Messrs. Asbury and Wright — Account of the former — The Spirit of the Clergy — Mr. Jarratt — Thomas Rankin and George Shadford arrive — First Conference. We now enter upon a new period in the progress of Me- thodism in America, — the period of more regular ministra- tions. In 1*768, the society at New- York addressed Mr. Wesley on the subject of sending them a minister. The writer above referred to, signing himself T. T., was their organ. " There is another point far more material, and in which I must importune your assistance, not only in my own name, hut also in the name of the whole society. We want an able and experienced preacher ; one who has both gifts and grace necessary for the work. God has not, indeed, despised the day of small things. There is a real work of grace begun in many hearts, by the preaching of Mr. Webb and Mr. Embury; but, although they are both useful, and their hearts in the work, they want many qualifications for such an PART II. — NOTICES OF METHODISM. 219 undertaking ; and the progress of the Gospel here depends much upon the qualifications of preachers. " In regard to a preacher, if possible, we must have a man of wis- dom, of sound faith, and a good disciplinarian ; one whose heart and soul are in the work ; and I doubt not but, by the goodness of God, such a flame will be soon kindled, as would never stop till it reached the great South Sea. "We may make many shifts to evade temporal inconveniences ; but we cannot purchase such a preacher as I have described. Dear sir, I entreat you, for the good of thousands, to use your utmost endeavours to send one over. With respect to money for the payment of the preacher's passage over, if they could not pro- cure it, Ave would sell our coats and shirts to procure it for them." This letter led to the appointment of the first mission- aries from England. Mr. Wesley, referring to this in his Journal, says, — "Tuesday, August 1st, 1769. — Our Conference began in Leeds. On Thursday, I mentioned the case of our brethren in New- York. For some years past, several of our brethren from England and Ire- land (and some of them preachers) had settled in North America, and had, in various places, formed societies, particularly in Philadel- phia and New- York. The society at New- York had lately built a commodious preaching-house, and now desired help, being in great want of money, but much more of preachers. Two of our preachers, Richard Boardman and Joseph Pilmoor, willingly offered themselves for the service, by whom we determined to send over £50, as a token of our brotherly love." The two missionaries landed at Gloucester Point, six miles below Philadelphia, October 24th, 1769. This ought to be regarded as a red-letter day in the history of Me- thodism in America. It is the date of an era; it marks the beginning of a direct connexion between the societies, and the father of the entire family ; and it also indicates the period of the admission of a new, a regulating power. Henceforward, the American societies became a part of the pastoral charge of Mr. Wesley and the British Conference ; and their history stands intimately connected with that of the entire body. On entering upon their duties, our missionaries divided ; Mr. Boardman taking New- York as the centre of his move- 220 TOUR IN AMERICA. ments, and Mr. Pilmoor, Philadelphia. But, adopting the accustomed rule of itinerancy, they exchanged with each other at certain intervals ; thus giving vitality and interest to their work, by the effects of varied ministrations. Mr. Pilmoor gave an account of the state of things in Phila- delphia, in a letter dated October 31st, 1*769, only seven days after his arrival. He says, — " By the blessing of God, we are safely arrived here, after a tedious passage of nine weeks. We were not a little surprised to find Cap- tain Webb in town, and a society of about one hundred members, who desire to be in close connexion with you. ' This is the Lord's doing, and it is marvellous in our eyes.' " I have preached several times, and the people flock to hear in multitudes. Sunday evening I went out upon the common. I had the stage appointed for the horse-race for my pulpit, and I think be tween four and five thousand hearers, who heard with attention, still as night. Blessed be God for field-preaching ! When I began to talk of preaching at five o'clock in the morning, the people thought it would not answer in America ; however, I resolved to try, and I had a very good congregation. " There seems to be a great and effectual door opening in this country, and I hope many souls will be gathered in. The people, in general, like to hear the word, and seem to have ideas of salvation by grace." Mr. Boardman does not write so soon ; but on the 24th of April, 1770, he says, — " Our house contains about seventeen hundred people. About a third part of those who attend get in ; the rest are glad to hear with- out. There appears such a willingness in the Americans to hear the word, as I never saw before. They have no preaching in some parts of the back settlements. I doubt not but an effectual door will be opened among them. may the Most High now give his Son the heathen for his inheritance ! The number of the blacks that attend the preaching affects me much." It is seen by this, that Philip Embury and Captain Webb had done good service. A third preaching-place, holding seventeen hundred persons, was no mean triumph, for the circumstances in which they were placed. In the folloAving year another, the most important actor PART II. — NOTICES OF METHODISM. 221 who ever appeared from England in America, took his place on the continent, — Francis Asbury, accompanied by Richard Wright. As Mr. Asbury became so conspicu- ous a leader in the affairs of Methodism, it may be as well to give his own account of his early life. Mr. Asbury tells us, he was born near the foot of Hamp- stead Bridge, in the parish of Hands worth, four miles from Birmingham, on the 20th or 21st of August, 1*745. His father and mother, Joseph and Elizabeth Asbury, " were in common life, but remarkable for honesty and industry." On the death of an only daughter in childhood, his mother " sunk into deep distress, from which she was not relieved for many years." Under this dispensation, " God was pleased to open the eyes of her mind, and she now began to read almost incessantly, strongly urging her husband to adopt family reading and prayer." This affected young Francis ; and he tells us, that from childhood he neither " Dared an oath, nor hazarded a lie." Being sent to school early, he learned to read the Bible, and took " great delight in the historical parts." His mas- ter, proving a great " churl," and using him " cruelly," filled him with such " horrible dread," that it seems he made his escape from this tyranny. This was the amount of his education ; we hear no more of school. He then " lived some time in one of the wealthiest and most un- godly families in the parish ;" and became " vain, but not openly wicked." When betwixt thirteen and fourteen, he was " put to learn a branch of business, at which he wrought six years and a half," enjoying great liberty in the family, and was " treated more like a son than an apprentice." When fourteen years of age, he was awakened by the instrumentality of a " pious man, not a Methodist," who was invited by his mother to visit the family for religious purposes. He began to attend West Bromwich church, hearing several evangelical ministers, and read all the good 222 TOUR IN AMERICA. books he met with. He now inquired of his mother, " who, where, and iv hat were the Methodists ?" and she directing him to " a person who could conduct him to Wednesbury to hear them," we find him for the first time at this place. " The people were devout, men and women kneeling down, saying, Amen." They sung hymns, " sweet sound ;" the preacher had " no Prayer-Book, and yet he prayed wonder- fully ;" and, more extraordinary, " he took his text, and preached, and yet had no sermon-book." " He talked about confidence, assurance, of which," he says, " all my flights and hopes fell short." He adds, " I had no deep convictions, nor had I committed any deep known sins. At one sermon, some time after, my companion was powerfully wrought on : I was exceedingly grieved that I could not weep like him ; yet I knew myself to be in a state of unbe- lief. On a certain time, when we were praying in my father's barn, I believe the Lord pardoned my sins, and justified my soul." He was now " free from guilt and fear, and had power over sin, and felt great inward joy." He now began to " hold meetings " with his companions, who were " much persecuted ;" the people opening their houses were obliged to close them again. Being driven from these places, he "held meetings" at his father's house, and went also to Sutton-Colefield for the same purpose, "several souls professing to find peace." He had preached some months before he publicly appeared in the " Methodist meeting-houses ;" and when his labours became more pub- lic and extensive, " some were amazed ; not knowing how he had exercised elsewhere." He now became a local preacher, " the humble and willing servant of any and of every preacher that called on him, by night or by day ; being ready, with hasty steps, to go far and wide to do good." Thus called, he " visited Derbyshire, Stafford- shire, Warwickshire, Worcestershire," " preaching, generally, three, four, and five times a week, and, at the same time, pur- suing his calling." — Asbury's Journal t \o\. ii, pp. 133-136. PART II. — NOTICES OF METHODISM. 223 The account of his entrance on his American mission must be given in his own words : — " On the 7th of August, 1771, the Conference began at Bristol, in England. Before this, I had felt for half a year strong intimations in my mind that I should visit America ; which I laid before the Lord, being iinwilling to do my own will, or to run before I was sent. During this time my trials were very great, which the Lord, I believe, permitted to prove and try me, in order to prepare me for future usefulness. At the conference it was proposed that some preachers should go over to the American continent. I spoke my mind and made an offer of myself. It was accepted by Mr. Wesley and others, who judged I had a call. From Bristol I went home to acquaint my parents with my great undertaking, which I opened in as gentle a manner as possible. Though it was grievous to flesh and blood, they consented to let me go. My mother is one of the ten- derest parents in the world ; but I believe she was blessed in the pre- sent instance with divine assistance to part with me. I visited most of my friends in Staffordshire, Warwickshire, and Gloucestershire, and felt much life and power among them. Several of our meetings were held, indeed, in the spirit and life of God. Many of my friends were struck with wonder, when they heard of my going ; but none opened their mouths against it, hoping it was of God. Some wished that their situation would allow them to go with me. " I returned to Bristol in the latter end of August, where Richard Wright was waiting for me, to sail in a few days for Philadelphia. When I came to Bristol, I had not one penny of money ; but the Lord soon opened the hearts of friends, who supplied me with clothes, and £10. Thus I found, by experience, that the Lord will provide for those who trust in him. " On Wednesday, September 2d, we set sail from a port near Bris- tol ; and, having a good wind, soon passed the Channel. For three days I was very ill with the sea-sickness ; and no sickness I ever knew was equal to it. The captain behaved well to us. On the Lord's day, September 8th, brother W. preached a sermon on deck, and all the crew gave attention. " Thursday, 12th. — I will set down a few things that lie on my mind. Whither am I going ? To the New World. What to do 1 To gain honour 1 No ; if I know my own heart. To get money 1 No ; I am going to live to God, and to bring others to do so. In America there has been a work of God ; some moving first amongst the Friends, but in time it declined ; likewise by the Presbyterians, but amongst them also it declined. The people God owns in Eng- 224 TOUR IN AMERICA. land are the Methodists. The doctrines they preach, and the disci- pline they enforce, are, I believe, the purest of any people in the world. The Lord has greatly blessed these doctrines and this disci- pline in the three kingdoms ; they must therefore be pleasing to him. If God does not acknowledge me in America, I will soon re- turn to England. I know my views are upright now ; may they never be otherwise !" — Journal, vol. i, pp. 1, 2. This is the spirit in which this apostle of Methodism in America began his work, and which only terminated with his life — an eventful period of forty-four years. There were now four missionaries from England in America ; and their number was increased by the addition of Robert Williams and John King, emigrants from the mother-country. The band of brothers evidently laboured together, in general, harmoniously, and with equal success. The only difference among them seems to have been, on the subject of country •work. Mr. Asbury thought his brethren were too fond of remaining in the large towns, while he felt, in the spirit of a true evangelist, that, in order to secure the objects of their mission, it was necessary that the villages and country places should share their attention, and enjoy the benefit of their ministrations. With these convictions, he deter- mined to sally forth ; and from this time we find him pro- secuting his itinerant labours with indefatigable zeal — rushing into every open door, and, where an entrance could not be found, endeavouring to make one. On this subject his remarks are pertinent. On November 20th, he writes : — " I am in York, though unsatisfied with our being both in town together. I have not yet the thing I seek, — a circulation of preach- ers to avoid partiality and popularity. However, I am fixed to the Methodist plan, and do what I do faithfully as to God At present I am dissatisfied. I judge we are to be shut up in the cities this winter. My brethren seem unwilling to leave the cities ; but I think I shall show them the way. I am in trouble, and more trouble is at hand ; for I am determined to make a stand against all pai-tial- ity. I have nothing to seek but the glory of God, nothing to fear but his displeasure. I am come over with an upright intention, and, PART II. — NOTICES OF METHODISM. 225 through the grace of God, I will make it appear ; and I am deter- mined that no man shall bias me with soft words and fair speeches : nor will I ever fear (the Lord helping me) the face of man, or know any man after the flesh, if I beg my bread from door to door ; but, whomsoever I please or displease, I will be faithful to God, to the people, and to my own soul." Here we have the moral elements forming the character o of Francis Asbury. Firmness, fearlessness, integrity, sin- gleness of eye for the glory of God, an intense love to the souls of men, faithfulness to the leading idea of Method- ism, happiness in labour ; — from "which he never deviated to the end of life. Such was the man called of Provi- dence to take the lead in this enterprise, in great measure to guide its counsels, and to become its chief apostle. At this period the Methodist preachers in America, as well as in England, considered themselves connected with the Church. Two incidents may be mentioned to show how they fared with different classes of the clergy. In Kent county, Mr. Asbury relates, that he was encountered by Mr. R., a church minister. " He charged me with making a schism. I told him that I did not draw the people from the church, and asked him if his church was then open. He then said, that I hindered the people from their work. I asked him if fans and horse-races did not hinder them ; and further told him, that I came to help him. He said, he had not hired me for an assistant, and did not want my help. I told him, if there were no swearers or other sinners, he was sufficient. ' But,' said he, 'what do you come for?-' I replied, 'To turn sinners to God.' He said, ' Cannot I do that as well as you V I told him that I had authority from God. He then laughed at me, and said, ' You are a fine fellow, indeed !' I told him I did not do this to invalidate his authority ; and also gave him to understand, that I did not wish to dispute with him ; but he said he had business with me, and came into the house in a great rage. I began to preach, and to exhort the people to repent, and turn from all their transgressions, so iniquity should not prove their ruin. After preaching, the parson went out, and told the people they did wrong in coming to hear me ; and said, I spoke against learning ; whereas, I only spoke to this purpose : — "When a man turned from all sin, he would adorn every character in life, both in church and state." 10* 226 TUUU IN AMERICA. This sort of clergy generally predominated, in the south- ern provinces ; but Mr. Jarratt, of Virginia, was an ex- ception. " Under his preaching there was a considerable revival at a place called White Oak. In imitation of Mr. Wesley and his preachers, Mr. Jarratt formed those who were awakened to a sense of their danger into a society, that they might assist each other in working out their salvation. The good effects of these meetings were so apparent, in producing the fruits of ' good living,' that they were encouraged, and the revival went on gradually, chiefly under the labours of Mr. Jar- ratt, from 1771 to 1773, spreading from fifty to sixty miles in the re- gion round about." — Bangs's " History of Methodism" vol. i, p. 76. This good man identified himself with Methodism, afford- ed his countenance and encouragement to the preachers, himself took part in their labours, attended some of their early meetings in Conference, threw open his door for their entertainment ; and, in fact, became to the infant cause in America exactly what Mr. Fletcher of Madeley, or Grimshaw of Haworth, were to the Methodists of England in their day. In June, 17*73, two other missionaries, Thomas Rankin and George Shadford, landed in Philadelphia ; and as Mr. Rankin had travelled several years longer in England than Mr. Asbury, Mr. Wesley appointed him the general assist- ant (superintendent) of the societies in America. Mr. Rankin seems to have received, with the superintend- ency, full powers from Mr. Wesley to hold a Conference. Accordingly, we find, the first Conference ever held in America was convened to meet in Philadelphia, in July, 1*7 73. Up to this time the business of the Church had been transacted at the quarterly meetings. At this Conference we find the following questions and answers : — '• 1 . Ought not the authority of Mr. Wesley and that of [the Eng- lish] Conference to extend to the preachers and people in America, as well as Great Britain and Ireland ? " Ans.— Yes. PAET II. — NOTICES OF METHODISM. 221 " 2. Ought not the doctrine and discipline of the Methodists, as contained in the Minutes, to be the sole rule of our conduct, who la- bour in the Connexion with Mr. Wesley in America ? " Ans.— Yes. " 3. If so, does it not follow, that if any preachers deviate from the Minutes, we can have no fellowship with them till they change their conduct 1 " Ans. — Yes." The following rules were agreed to by the preachers present : — " 1. Every preacher who acts in connexion with Mr. Wesley, and the brethren who labour in America, is strictly to avoid administering the ordinances of baptism and the Lord's supper. " 2. All the people among whom we labour to be earnestly ex- horted to attend the church, and to receive the ordinances there ; but in a particular manner to press the people in Maryland and Virginia to the observance of this minute." Thus the Methodist system was fairly established, and its discipline agreed upon, by the consent of the brethren. Mr. Rankin is reported to have been a stern disciplinarian of the Presbyterian class ; a Scotchman by birth and edu- cation, and somewhat inflexible in his character, after the manner of his countrymen. The above resolutions were not passed without debate, or carried into effect without opposition. There seems to have been no demur in regard to the authority of Mr. Wesley and the British Conference ; but on the question of the sacraments, the feeling was not equally unanimous. Some of the brethren, as Mr. Strawbridge, had been in the habit of administering these sacred rites to the satisfaction of the people, so that the rule on the subject came into collision with the practice of some of the societies. On other points there was some difference of opinion, and the New- York people threatened to shut the doors of their chapel against Mr. Rankin. These differences gradually subsided, and by the careful enforcement of discipline, together with the faithful ministerial labours of the preachers, order became predominant, and prosperity attended the work. By the 228 TOUR IN AMERICA. merciful ordination of Divine Providence, this work of union took effect at the right time. Events of a distressing character were approaching ; and if this consolidation had not been then attained, the probability is, that it would not have been secured for many years, if at all. Peace being established, the brethren had time to extend their evange- lical labours through various portions of the provinces of New- York, Virginia, Maryland, Long Island, Delaware, the Jerseys, Pennsylvania, as well as in the cities. From what followed, it almost seemed as if Mr. Rankin had received an especial commission to grapple with the incipient disor- ders which had unhappily crept in, and establish on a firm foundation the whole Methodist system, before the revolu- tionary hurricane broke out. CHAPTER IV. The Revolutionary Period — Messrs. Rankin, Shadford, and Rodda depart for England — Adventures of Shadford — Asbury determines to remain— His Exer- cises of Mind— Finds Refuge in the House of Judge White — Persecutions of Messrs. Hartley and Garrettson — Mr. Jarratt's Account of a Revival of Religion in Virginia— Reflections on the Revolution— John Calvin's Dogma- Originates the Revolution — Its Success. We now approach the revolutionary period, which, to the infant Methodist Church, was a sore trial. With the Eng- lish preachers a point of conscience of a very perplexing nature at once arose. The Americans began their work by resolving themselves into an independent confederation, in these words: "Resolved, that these united colonies are, and of right ought to be, free and independent States ; that they are absolved from all allegiance to the British crown ; and that all political connexion between them and the State of Great Britain is, and ought to be, totally dissolved." This instrument bears date July 2d, 1116. — Hickey's Con- stitution of the United States. This, of course, left British subjects no choice ; they were either obliged to renounce PART II. — NOTICES OF METHODISM. 229 their allegiance to their own sovereign, leave the coun- try, or evade the laws by concealment. All the preach- ers, except Mr. Asbury, chose at once to return home. But this was evidently a great exercise of their feelings. They delighted in their work, saw much good going on, and had the prospect of witnessing the spread of religion on a magnificent scale. The agitations of mind and positive dangers to which these good men were exposed, are truly affecting. On Tuesday, May 16th, 1775, Mr. Rankin remarks : — " The preachers came together from their different circuits, and next day we began our little Conference. We conversed together, and concluded our business in love. Mr. Strenger spent some time with us. We all came unanimously to the conclusion to follow the advice that Mr. Wesley and his brethren had given us, and leave the event to God. We had abundant reason to bless God for the increase of his work last year. We had above a thousand added to the dif- ferent societies, and they had increased to ten circuits. Our joy in God would have been abundantly more, had it not been for the pre- parations of war that now rang throughout this city. (Philadelphia.) I endeavoured to open up and enforce the cause of our misery. I told them that the sins of Great Britain and her colonies had long called aloud for vengeance, and in a particular manner the dreadful sin of buying and selling the souls and bodies of the poor Africans, the sons and daughters of Ham." How singular that we should find, in the midst of these notes of civil war, the following entry ! — "I called at Mr. Fairfax's, (a relation of old Lord Fairfax, )-a gen- tleman of large estate, and who of late years had been savingly brought to the knowledge of the Lord Jesus Christ. He was over at Baltimore at our little conference ; and at the lovefeast that followed, he spoke of what God had done for his soul with such simplicity and unction from on high, as greatly affected every one who heard him. May he live to be an ornament to the Gospel of the Lord Jesus !" — Jackson's "Lives of Early Methodist Preachers" vol. ii, pp. 189-191. Mr. Rankin seems to have made his escape on pretty easy terms ; but George Shadford was called to encounter more formidable difficulties. He says, — 230 TOUR IN AMERICA. " The next summer and winter I spent in Maryland ; the Avinter on the Eastern Shore, where I could labour and be at peace ; but as the test-oath must take place there also, I was brought to a strait. I had sworn allegiance to the king twice, and could not swear to re- nounce him forever. I dare not play with fast-and-loose oaths, and swallow them in such a manner. We could not travel safe without a pass, nor have a pass without taking the oaths. At our Quarterly Meeting, I said to brother Asbury, ' Let us have a day of fasting and prayer, that the Lord may direct us ; for we never Avere in such cir- cumstances as noAV, since we Avere Methodist preachers.' We did so ; and in the evening I asked him hoAV he had found his mind. He said he did not see his Avay clear to go to England. I told him I could not stay, as I believed I had done my work here at present ; and that it was as much impressed upon my mind to go home noAV, as it had been to come over to America. He replied, ' Then one of us must be under a delusion.' I said, ' Not so ; I may have a call to go, and you to stay ;' and I believe Ave both obeyed the call of Provi- dence. We saAV Ave must part, though Ave loved as David and Jona- than. And indeed these times made us love one another in a pecu- liar manner. O hoAV glad Avere Ave to meet, and pour our grief into each other's bosom ! " Myself and another set off, having procured a pass from a colo- nel, to travel to the general ; and, arriving at the head-quarters, Ave inquired for General Smallwood's apartments ; and, being admitted to his presence, and asked our business, Ave told his Excellency that Ave AA'ere Englishmen, and both Methodist preachers ; and, as Ave con- sidered ourselves subjects of Great Britain, Ave could not take the test-oath ; therefore should be very glad to return home to our na- tive land. l We cast ourselves,' Ave added, ' Avholly upon your Ex- cellency's generosity, and hope, as you profess to be fighting for your liberties, you will grant us to have a pass, to have liberty to return to our OAvn land in peace.' He answered roughly, ' Now you have done us all the hurt you can, you want to go home.' I told him our mo- tive had been to do good ; for this end we left our OAvn country, and had been travelling through the woods for seA r eral years, to seek and to save that which was lost. It Avas true, Ave could not beat the poli- tical drum in the pulpit, preaching bloody sermons, because Ave con- sidered ourselves messengers of peace, and called to preach the gos- pel of peace. At last he told us he would give us a pass to the Eng- lish, if Ave would swear aa^c Avould go directly to Philadelphia, and from thence embark to Great Britain. He then swore us. and gene rously gave us our liberty Avithout any further trouble." — Jackson's " Lives of Early Methodist Preachers.' 1 '' PART II. — NOTICES 0¥ METHODISM. 231 The danger, however, was not at an end. The same night, Mr. Shadford tells us, that " a man leaped from behind a bush with his gun loaded and cocked," and, pre- senting it " at his breast, swore, like a fiend," that if he did not stop he should be a dead man. This man finally " dropped his gun," and allowed the Methodist preacher to take his departure. The next day he got to Chester " with his saddle-bags upon his back ;" and, at night, " crept on his hands and knees on a narrow plank to that part of the bridge that remained standing, and got his horse over the next morning." He arrived at Philadelphia the next day, and met three or four preachers who, like himself, " were refugees." They remained six weeks in Philadelphia, then took ship for Cork, thence to Wales, and finally for Bristol ; and Mr. Shadford " felt a very thankful heart when he set foot on English ground, in a land of peace and liberty, where was no alarm of war or bloodshed." The stout-hearted Francis Asbury was a man of another mould ; he would neither take the " test-oath," nor return to his native land. He resolved to brave all difficulties, remain at his post, and serve his brethren and the cause of his Divine Master as best he could. There is something remarkable in the incidents connected with the final settle- ment of this apostle of Methodism in America. Before the war broke out, there was evidently some misunderstanding between Mr. Rankin {Wesley s Works, vol. vii, pp. 9, 10) and Mr. Asbury ; and Mr. Wesley again and again recalled the latter, but he firmly, though no doubt respectfully, refused to obey.* Let us listen to the noble sentiments of this true man on the subject of deserting the work in America. * The first time I ever saw David M'Nicoll, when very young, I have a dis- tinct recollection that he said of his countryman, Rankin, that he was Mr. Wesley's cafs-paw. Great men generally have this kind of animal attached to them, often without any design of their own. 232 TOUR IN AMERICA. "I received a letter from Mr. T. R., (no doubt Rankin,) in which he informed me, that himself, Mr. R., (Rodda,) and Mr. D., (Demp- ster,) had consulted, and deliberately concluded it would be best to return to England. But I can by no means agree to leave such a field for gathering souls to Christ as we have in America. It would be an eternal dishonour to the Methodists, that we should all leave three thousand souls who desire to commit themselves to our care , neither is it the part of a good shepherd to leave his flock in time of danger • therefore I am determined, by the grace of God, not to leave them, let the consequence be what it may. Our friends here appeared to be distressed above measure, at the thoughts of being for- saken by the preachers. So I wrote my sentiments both to Mi'. R. and Mr. G. S."— Journal, vol. i, pp. 118, 119. Being soon after this left to himself, as far as regards the English preachers, it seems from his journal that he suffered great perplexity and agitation of mind. But he continued through the whole period to breathe a noble spirit of piety and devotedness to God. His apprehen- sions of God, the strength and stability of his faith, the tenderness of his spirit, the regularity and fervour of his prayers, (determining to spend ten minutes in every hour in this exercise,) fed his piety, and strengthened his reso- lution. And then the remarkable caution, forbearance, and prudence he manifested ; the ardent, untiring, steady zeal, which moved in him with the regularity of the pulse of life ; the heroism of his soul in all possible sufferings and perplexing difficulties ; the decision he continued to mani- fest, in the midst of great temptations to deviate, in support of the doctrines and discipline of Methodism ; and then his indefatigable labours in travelling and preaching, — are all points of excellency, which are finely and fully brought out by these trying events. Mr. Asbury was, moreover, evidently a man of much sorrow. The depth of his feelings corresponded with the eminence of his piety, and the delicacy of his spiritual af- fections. Instead of manifesting anything like exultation or bravado in his differences with Rankin, and the part he was obliged to take during the troubles of the war, we find PART II. — NOTICES OF METHODISM. 233 his spirit is prostrate in the dust, his soul lacerated with feelings of anguish, and he is constantly heard to sigh after the rest and peace of heaven ; very often uttering his wishes in the pathetic language of Charles Wesley's poetry. The outward incidents of his life, in these eventful years, are as nothing compared with the spiritual, the sublime, exercises of his mind. In the case of those who are in the hands of God, everything turns to good account. Baxter conceived the idea of his Saints' Rest at Melbourne Hall, in a state of great debility, and when unable to perform more active service ; and John Bunyan wrought out his wonderful dream, the "Pilgrim's Progress," in Bedford jail. Though Francis Asbury did not write a book in the seclu- sion into which, for a part of the time, he was driven ; yet he diligently improved his time in reading and study, so as to attain a fitness for his subsequent work, which probably he would not have so fully possessed without these trials. In nothing does this eminent servant of the Lord Jesus appear so great as in his spiritual character and walk with God ; and perhaps these excellences shine forth in more lustre and strength at this period than at any other of his life. Refusing to take the oath required in the provinces in which he had spent most of his time, Mr. Asbury retired to Delaware, and was most hospitably entertained and pro- tected in the house of Judge White, for about twelve months. He gives the following account of his reasons for this step : — "From March, 1778. on conscientious principles, I was a non- juror, and could not preach in the State of Maryland, and, therefore, withdrew to the Delaware State, where the clergy were not required to take the state-oath ; though, with a clear conscience, I could have taken the oath of the Delaware State, had it been required; and woidd have done it, had I not been prevented by a tender fear of hurting the scrupulous consciences of others. St. Paul saith, ' When ye sin so against the brethren, and wound their weak consciences, ye sin against Christ.' " — Journal, vol. i, p. 208. 234 TOUR IN AMERICA. We have other sufferers in the cause of religion, as well as Mr. Asbury. ' : Mr. Joseph Hartley, also, another travelling preacher, a man of great zeal and faithfulness, was apprehended in Queen Ann's county for preaching the Gospel, who gave bonds and security to appear for trial at the next court. Being forbidden to preach, he attended his appointments ; and, after singing and prayer, stood upon his knees and exhorted the people, until his enemies said that he might as well preach standing on his feet as his knees. He Avent thence to Talbot county, where he was seized and committed to jail for ' preach- ing Jesus Christ and him crucified.' This, however, by no means silenced him. The people collected around the walls of his prison ; he preached to them through the grates : and so powerfully was the word applied to then* hearts, that some of them were deeply awaken- ed to a sense of their lost and guilty state, and began earnestly to seek the Lord. This induced some of the inhabitants to remark, that unless Hartley were released from prison, he would convert the whole town. After keeping him confined for some time, he was set at liberty ; but such had been the blessed effects of his preaching, that a powerful revival followed, which terminated in the establish- ment of a flourishing society in that place." — Bangs's " History of Methodism,'" vol i, p. 127. Mr. Freeborn Garrettson also suffered greatly. " He was knocked off his horse by a brute named Brown, his head much bruised by the blows he received, and was preserved from death, probably, by a female passing at the time, who, possessing a lancet, very opportunely bled him on the spot. After his restoration to his senses, a magistrate, as violent as Brown himself, proceeded to write a mittimus to send him to prison. But his exhortations and appeals, delivered in the spirit of the Gospel, so disarmed his as- sailants that they desisted, and allowed him to go at large. How ever, after spending some time in indefatigable labours in his Mas ter's cause, he was finally sent to jail. Though he suffered much in body in consequence of having no other bed than the floor, with his saddle-bags for his pillow, with two large windows open upon him, yet he enjoyed great spiritual consolation in prayer and meditation, reading and writing, and was not a little comforted by the visits and prayers of his friends and pious acquaintances." Before his trial commenced, however, he was liberated, through Mr. Asbury's intercessions with the governor PART II. — NOTICES OF METHODISM. 235 of Maryland. — Bangs's "History of Methodism" vol. i, p. 127. As might be expected, the societies were greatly agi- tated during the war. The question of the sacraments, as we have seen, came into discussion ; and, being pressed upon the subject by 'the people, a part of the preachers had ordained each other, and administered the ordinances. Mr. Asbury, Freeborn Garrettson, and one or two more, however, remained faithful to Mr. Wesley's principles, and firmly confronted the innovators. A partial separation, for a season, took place ; but by the excellent conduct and judicious management of Mr. Asbury, connected with much prayer, the breach was finally healed, and the dissenting brethren not only returned to their old fellowship, but re- nounced their ordination and the practice of administering the sacraments at the same time. What is remarkable, in the midst of the commotions of war, and the agitations of the times, — a most extraordinary revival of religion took place in Virginia ; and very much by the instrumentality of the Rev. Mr. Jarratt, minister of the English Church. We see from this that God's spiritual temple was being built in troublous times. War, the worst of all calamities, was mitigated in its horrors " by the peaceable fruits of righteousness." In the midst of all these difficulties, Methodism, as an organization, as well as in its spiritual triumphs, made con- siderable progress during these dreary years. At the close of the war the Church numbered eighty-three preachers, and fourteen thousand nine hundred and eighty-six mem- bers. The Conference held in 1782 performed an act of justice in regard to Mr. Jarratt by passing the following resolution : — " The conference acknowledge their obligations to the Rev. Mr. Jarratt, for his kind and friendly services to the preachers and people, from our first entrance into Virginia, and, more particularly, for at- 236 TOUR IN AMERICA. tending our conference in Sussex, in public and private ; and advise the preachers in the South to consult him and take his advice in the absence of brother Asbury." Thus have we brought our historical notices down to one of the most eventful periods in the annals of this country and of America. The loss of her colonies by Great Britain was an event of the greatest national consequence, an awful catastrophe. The merits of the contest, the princi- ples involved, the spirit manifested on either side, the policy of the Governments, and the talents and blunders of each, are points lying altogether beyond our line. But it was a fearful thing to see masses of men of the same race arrayed in deadly conflict. It may be very true that great princi- ples were at stake, great interests the prize of battle, great issues the result ; but this does not alter the painful nature of the fact, that the combatants were brethren. The pas- sions then called forth, and the animosities created, could not but convulse both communities to their centres. To any other nation, less elastic and energetic than Great Britain, the loss of such territory, wealth, population, and political power, — must have produced a perfect paralysis, have prostrated the nation irrecoverably, and sunk her to the state of a fourth or fifth rate power. And to any other people than the children of this country, the prize won would inevitably have entailed insuperable difficulties. But the event itself is one of those stupendous facts of history which God decrees once in the course of many centuries, for the creation of new epochs on the theatre of nations. Its morale is infinite : it must reach through all time ; and touch and influence the destinies, in one way or other, of all countries. The reflux of the tide is now felt in all nations ; and the flow of events cannot be turned till all old things pass away, and, for good or evil, all things be- come new. Would the first French Revolution ever have taken place, or, if it had occurred, have assumed its demo- cratic form, had La Fayette and his legions never visited PART II. — NOTICES OF METHODISM. 237 America, and imbibed the spirit of the revolt ? Would the thrones of Europe have been shaken by the revolutionary- war, and the mighty organic changes have been effected by even that war, which really occurred, had not this de- mocratic spirit prevailed ? Would the decimating power of the movement have swept away the old aristocracy, and the older church, so as to make way for the military dicta- torship of Napoleon, had it not been for this predominant tendency ? Would the singular events of the present day — the republicanism of France, the revolts of all the nations of Europe against their dynasties, the establishment of the democratic power, more or less developed, in new and un- tried institutions ; the freedom of the press, the opening of legislative chambers, the unrestrained expression of public opinion, and the strange sight of all kings and princes per- mitted to reign at all, borne upon the shoulders of the people to their thrones — would these things ever have occurred had it not been for American republicanism be- coming indigenous on the soil of France ? Who can see the end of these things ? ISTo one ; it is impossible. Time alone can develop the principles and agencies now at work. The swell of the Atlantic, of the western waves, is now felt on every shore of Europe and of the world ; and, from appearances, it seems not likely to abate till the tide has borne American principles to every nation under heaven. How little did John Calvin think of the egg he was hatching when, in his quiet study, in the quiet little city of Geneva, he first broached the doctrine that it was lawful for Christians, under certain circumstances, to resist their rulers ! This thunderbolt of John Calvin is the power which has shaken the world ever since ; and it is that which is heard in the air at this moment. Right or wrong, it is religion, that is, the dogma of a religious man, which has worked all the revolutions of the world. John Calvin's doctrine, studied and imbibed by the Puritans, caused 238 TOUR IN AMERICA. them to question the power of Queen Elizabeth and the Stuarts in ecclesiastical matters ; their collisions with the legitimate representatives of the "divine right" principle led to the English Grand Rebellion : this, again, led to innovations in the constitution of our country, and the existence of the Protectorate. The republicanism of Eng- land nursed young republicans for the wilds of America, where, under the guise of religious freedom, they were all along building up a democratic fabric; till the whole issued, as we have seen, in the independence of the States, and the mighty changes now taking place in the world. If the present movement should, in its desolating effects, subvert even Popery itself — not a very improbable thing, as so much has already been done — this will have been effected by John Calvin ; that is, by the idea which he first broach- ed, and which has been, like a rolling substance, gathering bulk, solidity, and strength to the present moment ; and is destined, like the " stone cut out of the mountain without hands," to dash in pieces the image, whether of gold, sil- ver, brass, clay, or iron — the image of the beast and false prophet, together with all the forms of power which have so long propped up this monstrous tyranny. But the American Revolution is likely to produce an equally wide impression of a religious nature. The exam- ple of a great nation adopting the purely voluntary princi- ple will, it is extremely likely, be followed by others. The people, who are now everywhere claiming for themselves the privilege of choosing their own temporal rulers, are not likely, for any length of time, to allow the extraneous appointment of religious governors. The public will claim for itself the right of giving its suffrages in matters ecclesi- astical. This principle, indeed, is already powerfully at work. Either a pure voluntaryism, or else nationalism, which is only voluntaryism in a national form, as seems from the tendencies of events, must predominate. A sys- tem which nations choose for themselves, may possibly find PART II.— NOTICES OF METHODISM. 239 a place in the new order of ideas ; but as to a religious yoke being imposed by a foreign church — as in the case of Popery in ancient times — this is utterly impossible in the present state of things. The doctrines of the Papacy may indeed prevail in places where they have been held for a great length of time, till something better obtains ; but as to anything like the old dominion of the Holy See, this cannot find place in the midst of the growing democracy of the world. Indeed, institutions of every kind seem des- tined to be controlled by the public voice. The American Revolution, both in its political and reli- gious phases, may be considered as the advent of a new revelation of ideas ; as initiating a new class of social relations ; as founding a new order of institutions ; as creating a new, a democratic force, of tremendous power ; as ushering into the social state a new, but universal, ele- ment, destined, like the atmosphere, or some other ubiqui- tous agency, to modify all existing things ; — in a word, to put the world upon a new path, another probation, an untried exercise of its moral and political capacity. America has stood before the world, up to this time, like an athletic youth just having escaped from the care of parents and governors. How it will ultimately fare can scarcely be divined at present. Either from the conviction of conscious strength ; from a repugnance of evils, endured or imagined ; from the teachings of history, and the antecedent miseries of mankind, as suffered in the old world ; from the abhor- rence of the chains which governments and priesthoods had, in every nation of Europe, forged for the people, and suc- cessfully riveted on their limbs ; from a detestation of the waste of public money, the hard earnings of the labouring classes, in the gorgeous decorations of the abodes of pam- pered idleness and debauchery ; from the notion that men, equally made in the image of God, are not, as a consequence, destined to be the playthings of vanity or the sport of despotism, but alike possess all the rights of manhood, and 240 TOUR IN AMERICA. are equally capable of its duties and its blessings ; from the impression that rot and decay had entered the timbers of the old social edifices, through the ignorance, impotency, and pride of those who, for age after age, had inhabited them, and which were about to fall over their heads ; from a conviction of the dreadful evils of war and bloodshed, generally arising out of the thirst for aggrandizement, the lust of ambition, the support of despotism, the quarrels of state-gamblers and prize-fighters, and never, on one side, from truth and justice ; — we say, from one or all these considerations the American people determined on abandon- ing the old systems, and to put themselves to the onerous task of working out a new theory. Their trial has proved to be the trial of the world. The French, in the exuberance of their vanity, attribute the advent of democratic principles to themselves. They, in their own opinion, are the apostles of liberty ; the philosophy of modern civilization originated with them ; their nation constitutes the only focus of light and intelli- gence ; and, moreover, they are destined to renovate the world. The egotism apart, the truth is not so. The American Revolution is the event to which we must look as giving the impulse to the new order of things ; and the seeds of this were laid in the Puritanism of the first settlers. The disputes about the legality of this revolution are all lost in the splendour of the issue. Nobody now ever thinks of the principles involved, or the disputants on either side. The fact is, in itself, too great to admit of these minor considerations ; it is, in truth, the fact of modern history. What will be the consequences of independence to the Americans themselves ? Hitherto it is vain to deny that the attempts at self-government have been most successful. ~No doubt there are ferocious passions in America ; and tales about the uses made of the bowie-knife, Lynch-law, and matters of that sort, are abundantly rife. It would, indeed, PART II. — NOTICES OF METHODISM. 241 have been a marvel, if a scattered population, living in remote places, away from the seats of government and magistracy, were not guilty of some excesses. And in passing from under the power of the parent state, and consolidating their own government, it would be equally a matter of astonishment if everything connected with the state-machine could at once be laid in an even balance, and be made to work without friction. But, bating unavoidable accidents, and the imperfections attendant upon all human affairs, the establishment of the American system and social state must be pronounced hitherto as a perfectly successful experiment. That other races should attempt to follow in the same direction, is no wonder; but it does not follow that they can successfully tread in the steps of the Anglo- American people. The soil was free, the space ample ; the institutions founded among them while colonies of Great Britain were essentially democratic ; the people had been educated for generations in the principles of self-govern- ment, and in most places elected their magistrates, and often the governor himself. In this state of things there was no antagonistic power upon the soil. They had no throne to overthrow, no aiistocracy to decimate, no hierar- chy to proscribe, even no code of law to abrogate. Every- thing favoured the experiment ; and, allowing for the infirmities of human nature, it must be conceded by all candid persons that hitherto the people have been true to the doctrines of their origin as an independent nation ; and that the establishment of the United States in their free and confederated nationality is the greatest event of modern times. 11 242 TOUK IN AMERICA. CHAPTER V. Measures preparatory to the Organization of the Methodist Episcopal Church Application of the People to Mr. Wesley — His Advice— Dr. Bangs's Account — The Church formed — Success. We now approach a period in the history of Methodism in the United States, of great importance ; namely, its establishment as an independent church. On the cessation of the war of independence, the American Methodists immediately resumed their intercourse with Mr. Wesley, and sought his counsels and advice. The retirement of Mr. Rankin had obliged them to act for themselves ; and the preachers, by their own vote, made Mr. Asbury assistant in his place. This term, at the time, indicated that the person bearing the name was assistant to Mr. Wesley ; and, consequently, implied subordination to him and the confer- ence in England. By this act, then, it is apparent, that they did not contemplate a separation. They had no notion of independence, and did not assert it. The venerable man at once entered into their case, and gave them such advice as he deemed most expedient in their new and altered position. In a letter dated Bristol, October 3d, 1783, he writes : — " 1. Let all of you be determined to abide by the Methodist doc- trine and discipline, published in the four volumes of sermons, and the Notes upon the New Testament, together with the Large Minutes of Conference. " 2. Beware of preachers coming from Great Britain or Ireland without a full recommendation from me. Three of our travelling preachers here eagerly desired to go to America ; but I could not approve of it by any means ; because I am not satisfied that they thoroughly like either our discipline or doctrines ; I think they differ from our judgment in one or both. Therefore, if these or any others come without my recommendation, take care how you receive them. "3. Neither should you receive any preachers, however recom- mended, who will not be subject to the American Conference, and PART II. — NOTICES OF METHODISM. 243 cheerfully conform to the Minutes both of the American and Eng- lish Conferences. " 4. I do not wish our American brethren to receive any who make any difficulty in receiving Francis Asbury as the general assistant. " Undoubtedly the great danger to the work of God in America is likely to arise either from preachers coming from Europe, or from such as will arise among yourselves, speaking perverse things, or bringing in among you new doctrines, particularly Calvinian. You should guard against this with all possible care ; for it is far easier to keep them out than to thrust them out. " I commend you all to the grace of God, and am yom- friend and brother, John Wesley." This advice was soon followed by greater and much more important events. We refer to the organization of the American societies into a regular and independent church. Tins event is so important in itself, possesses so great a bearing on the unexampled success of Methodism in the United States ; and, by some, is thought to fix upon Mr. Wesley the blemish of inconsistency with his cherished and long-avowed principles; — that it seems necessary to go into the question. The account given by Dr. Bangs is so exact, and his reasonings upon the case are so perfectly sober and conclusive, and, withal, must, to most in this country, be so new, that it is thought best to give the narration in his own Avords. " We have arrived at a very important period in the history of Methodism in this country. And as so much has been said respect- ing the constituting of the Methodist societies here into an inde- pendent Church, I shall, in the first place, give a detail of the facts in the case, and, secondly, offer some arguments in defence of the measure. ' : I. Hitherto the Methodists, both in Europe and America, had been considered as a society within a church ; in Great Britain they considered themselves as members of the Establishment, in America as members of that denomination to which they might be attached. The preachers in both hemispheres, not having been consecrated to their work by the imposition of hands, were distinguished as ' lay- preachers,' and had not, except in the instance heretofore narrated, presumed to administer the ordinances of baptism and the Lord's 244 TOUR IN AMERICA. supper. Under these circumstances much uneasiness had been manifested both in Europe and America, more especially here. But all solicitation, whether from the preachers or people, for the estab- lishment of a separate church, had been strenuously resisted by Mr. Wesley, as being foreign to his primary design, and incompatible with the principles he had avowed from the beginning of his minis- try. He commenced his ministerial labour with the single intention of reviving evangelical religion in the Church, by preaching her doc- trines, and enforcing her discipline. This was the state of things at the time of which we are now speaking. "As, however, the colonies had now become an independent government, no longer under the control of Great Britain, either in civil or ecclesiastical matters, Mr. Wesley began to relax from the sternness with which he had heretofore resisted the solicitations of the American Methodists, and to think seriously of granting their requests ; and after consulting with his most intimate friends re- specting the propriety of the measure, — for of its lawfulness he had no doubt, — he resolved to grant their request, and adojDted means to carry the resolution into effect. ' At the conference held in Leeds, in 1784, he declared his intention of sending Dr. Coke and some other preachers to America. Mr. Richard Whatcoat and Mr. Thomas Vasey offered themselves as missionaries for that purpose, and were accepted. Before they sailed, Mr. Wesley abridged the Common Prayer-Book of the Church of England, and wrote to Dr. Coke, then in London, desiring him to meet him in Bristol, to receive fuller powers, and to bring the Rev. Mr. Creighton with him. The Doctor and Mr. Creighton accordingly met him in Bristol ; when, with their assistance, he ordained Mr. Richard Whatcoat and Mr. Thomas Vasey presbyters for America-, and being peculiarly attached to every rite of the Church of England, he afterward ordained Dr. Coke a superintendent, giving him letters of ordination under his hand and seal, and at the same time the following letter, to be printed and circulated hi America :'* — " ' To Dr. Coke, Mr. Asbury, and oar Brethren in North America. " ' Bristol, Sept. 10th, 1784. '"1. By a very uncommon train of providences, many of the pro- vinces of North America are totally disjoined from the British em- pire, and erected into independent states. The English government has no authority over them, either civil or ecclesiastical, any more than over the States of Holland. A civil authority is exercised over them, partly by the Congress, partly by the State assemblies. But no * Moore's " Life of Wesley,'''' vol. ji, p. 273. PART II. — NOTICES OF METHODISM. 245 one either exercises or claims any ecclesiastical authority at all. In this peculiar situation some thousands of the inhabitants of these States desire my advice : and, in compliance with their desire, I have drawn up a little sketch. " ' 2. Lord King's Account of the Primitive Church convinced me, many years ago, that bishops and presbyters are the same order, and, consequently, have the same right to ordain. For many years I have been importuned, from time to time, to exercise this right, by ordain- ing part of our travelling preachers. But I have still refused, not only for peace' sake, but because I Avas determined as little as possible to violate the established order of the national church, to which I belonged. " ' 3. But the case is widely different between England and North America. Here there are bishops who have a legal jurisdiction. In America there are none, and but few parish ministers ; so that, for some hundred miles together, there is none either to baptize or to ad- minister the Lord's supper. Here, therefore, my scruples are at an end ; and I conceive myself at fall liberty, as I violate no order, and invade no man's right, by appointing and sending labourers into the harvest. '"4. I have accordingly appointed Dr. Coke and Mr. Francis Asbu- ry, to be joint superintendents* over our brethren in North America. As also Richard' Whatcoat and Thomas Vasey to act as elders among them, by baptizing and administering the Lord's supper. *' ' 5. If any one will point out a more rational and scriptural way of feeding and guiding those poor sheep in the wilderness, I will gladly embrace it. At present I cannot see any better method than that I have taken. " ' 6. It has, indeed, been proposed to desire the English bishops to ordain part of our preachers for America. But to this I object, (1.) I desired the bishop of London to ordain one only ; but could not prevail : ( 2. ) If they consented, we know the slowness of their pro- ceedings; but the matter admits of no delay: (3.) If they would or- dain them now, they would likewise expect to govern them. And how grievously would this entangle us ! (4.) As our American brethren are now totally disentangled both from the state and from the English hierarchy, we dare not entangle them again, either with the one or the other. They are now at full liberty simply to follow the Scriptures and the primitive Church. And we judge it best that they should stand fast in that liberty wherewith God has so strangely made them free. John Wesley.' * " As the translators of our version of the Bible have used the English word ' bishop' instead of ' superintendent,' it has been thought by us that it would appear more Scriptural to adopt their term ' bishop.' — Discipline." 246 TOUR IN AMERICA. " The following is the letter of ordination which Mr. Wesley gave to Dr. Coke : — " ' To all to whom these presents shall come, John Wesley, late Fellow of Lincoln College, in Oxford, presbyter of the Church of England, sendeth greeting : " ' Whereas many of the people in the Southern provinces of North America, who desire to continue under my care, and still ad- here to the doctrine and discipline of the Church of England, are greatly distressed for want of ministers to administer the sacraments of baptism and the Lord's supper, according to the usage of the same church ; and whereas there does not appear to be any other way of supplying them with ministers : " ' Know all men, that I, John Wesley, think myself to be provi- dentially called at this time to set apart some persons for the work of the ministry in America. And, therefore, under the protection of Almighty God, and with a single eye to his glory, I have this day set apai't as a superintendent, by the imposition of my hands, and prayer, (being assisted by other ordained ministers,) Thomas Coke, doctor of civil law, a presbyter of the Church of England, and a man whom I judge to be well qualified for that great work. And I do hereby recommend him to all whom it may concern, as a fit person to preside over the flock of Christ. In testimony whereof I have hereunto set my hand and seal, this second day of September, in the year of our Lord one thousand seven hundred and eighty-four. '"John Wesley.' " Being thus furnished with the proper credentials, in the month of September, Dr. Coke, in company with Messrs. Whatcoat and Vasey, set sail for America, and landed in the city of New- York on the 3d of November, 1784. From thence they proceeded through Philadelphia to the State of Delaware, where, on the 15th day of the same month, he met Mr. Asbury, at Barratt's chapel. Mr. Asbury gives the following account of this meeting : — " ' Sunday, 1 5th. — I came to Barratt's chapel. Here, to my great joy, I met those dear men of God, Dr. Coke and Richard Whatcoat. We were greatly comforted together. The doctor preached on Christ our wisdom, righteousness, sanctification, and redemption. Having had no opportunity of conversing with them before public worship, I was greatly surprised to see brother Whatcoat assist by taking the cup in the administration of the sacrament. I was shocked when first informed of the intention of these my brethren in coming to this countiy : it may be of God. My answer then was, If the preachers unanimously choose we, I shall not act in the capacity I PART II. — NOTICES OF METHODISM. 247 have hitherto done by Mr. Wesley's appointment. The design of organ- izing the Methodists into an independent Episcopal Church was opened to the preachers present, and it was agreed to call a General Conference, to meet at Baltimore the ensuing Christmas ; as also that brother Garrettson go off to Virginia to give notice thereof to the brethren in the South.' "According to this arrangement, Mr. Garrettson set off imme- diately on his Southern journey, sending letters to those he could not see ; and Dr. Coke spent the intermediate time in visiting various parts of the country, and preaching to the people. On Friday, the 26th, Mr. Asbury says, ' I observed this day as a day of fasting and prayer, that I might know the will of God in the matter that is to come before the conference. The preachers and people seem to be much pleased with the projected plan ; I myself am led to think it is of the Lord. I am not tickled with the honour to be gained. I see danger in the way. My soul waits upon God. O that he may lead us in the way we should go ! ' " In conformity with the above arrangement, December 25th, sixty out of the eighty-three preachers then in the travelling connexion, assembled in the city of Baltimore for the conference, in which Dr. Coke presided, assisted by Mr. Asbury ; and the first act of the con- ference was, by a unanimous vote, to elect Dr. Coke and Francis Asbury as general superintendents ; for although Mr. Asbury had been appointed to that high office by Mr. Wesley, yet he declined acting in that capacity independently of the suffrages of his brethren over whom he must preside. After his election, being first ordained a deacon, then an elder, Mr. Asbury was consecrated by Dr. Coke, assisted by several elders, to the office of a superintendent, in the manner set forth in the following certificate : — " ' Know all men by these presents, that I, Thomas Coke, doctor of civil law, late of Jesus College, in the University of Oxford, pres- byter of the Church of England, and superintendent of the Methodist Episcopal Church in America ; under the protection of Almighty God, and with a single eye to his glory ; by the imposition of my hands, and prayer, (being assisted by two ordained elders,) did, on the twenty-fifth day of this month, December, set apart Francis As- bury for the office of a deacon in the aforesaid Methodist Episcopal Church. And also on the twenty-sixth day of the said month, did, by the imposition of my hands, and prayer, (being assisted by the said elders,) set apart the said Francis Asbury for the office of elder in the said Methodist Episcopal Church. And on this twenty- seventh day of the said month, being the day of the date hereof, have, by the imposition of my hands, and prayer, (being assisted by 248 TOUR IN AMERICA. the said elders,) set apart the said Francis Ashury for the office of a superintendent in the said Methodist Episcopal Church, a man whom I judge to be well qualified for that great work. And I do hereby recommend him to all whom it may concern, as a fit person to pre- side over the flock of Christ. In testimony whereof, I have hereunto set my hand and seal, this 27th day of December, in the year of our Lord 1784. Thomas Coke.' " One of the elders who assisted at the consecration of Mr. Asbury, was the Rev. Mr. Otterbine, a minister of the German church. Hav- ing enjoyed an intimate acquaintance with this pious and evangelical minister of Jesus Christ, and having full fellowship with him as a laborious and useful servant of God, Mr. Asbury requested that he might be associated with Dr. Coke and the other elders in the per- formance of this solemn ceremony. " The following persons were elected, twelve of whom were conse- crated elders : — Freeborn Garrettson, William Gill, Le Roy Cole, John Hagerty, James 0. Cromwell, John Tunnel, Nelson Reed, Jeremiah Lambert, Reuben Ellis, James O'Kelly, Richard Ivey, Beverley Allen,* and Henry Willis. Mr. Garrettson and Mr. Crom- well were set apart especially for Nova Scotia, to which place they soon after went ; and their labours and success will be noticed in the proper place. Mr. Lambert was ordained for the island of Antigua, in the West Indies. ' : John Dickins, Caleb Boyer, and Ignatius Pigman, were elected deacons. " II. Having thus given an account of these transactions, we pro- ceed to offer a few arguments in their defence. Let it be recollected, " 1. That there was a loud call for these things. Most of the clergy of the English Church, during the revolution, had fled from their flocks : and those who remained, with very few exceptions, were fit for anything rather than ministers of the Gospel. Erom the hands of such men the Methodists felt unwilling to receive the ordinances. As to the Presbyterians and Congregationalists, they would neither baptize the children unless, at least, one of the parents professed faith in their doctrines, nor admit them to the communion- table unless they became members of their church. The Baptists were more rigid still, as they could fellowship none unless they had been baptized by immersion. To neither of these conditions could the Methodists submit. Besides, by these denominations, the Me- thodists were treated as heretics, on account of their opposition to the Calvinistic doctrine of decrees, and the final perseverance of the * " Mr. Allen was not ordained until the conference in 1785 ; and Mr. Wil- lis, not being- present, was ordained a few weeks afterward."— Lee. PART II.— NOTICES OF METHODISM. 249 saints. Hence a necessity, originating from the state of things in this country, compelled the Methodists either to remain without the ordinances, to administer them by unconsented hands, or to pro- vide for them in the manner they did. Those who disclaim all de- pendence upon the argument derived from the necessity of the case, would do well to inquire whether any man can be justified in doin^ an unnecessary work,-a work that might be Scripturally dispensed with. It appears to the writer, that if there be no weight in this ar- gument, then it follows, that Mr. Wesley, and those who acted with him m this solemn affair, were guilty of a work of supererogation, and therefore cannot be justified on any principle whatever, either of Scripture, reason, or conscience. " 2. Let it be recollected, also, that those who consecrated Richard Whatcoat and Thomas Vasey, namely, Mr. Wesley, Dr. Coke, and Mr. Creighton, were all regular presbyters in the Church of Eng- land; and that those who laid hands on Dr. Coke, and set him apart as a superintendent of the Methodist Episcopal Church in America, were also presbyters regularly ordained to that office. " 3. It appears manifest from several passages of Scripture, par- ticularly Acts xiii, 1, 2, and 1 Tim. iv, 14, and the testimonies of the primitive fathers of the Church, that presbyters and bishops were of the same order, and that they originally possessed the power of or- dination. " 4. The doctrine of uninterrupted succession from the apostles in a third order, by a triple consecration, as distinct from, and supe- rior to, presbyters, has been discarded by many of the most eminent ecclesiastical writers, as resting upon no solid foundation, not being susceptible of proof from any authentic source. " 5. Mr. Wesley possessed a right over the Methodists which no man else did or could possess, because they were his spiritual children, raised up under his preaching and superintendence, and hence they justly looked to him for a supply of the ordinances of Jesus Christ. " 6. Therefore, hi exercising the power with which the divine Head of the Church had invested him, he invaded no other man's right, nor yet assumed that which did not belong to him. " 7. Hence he did not, as the objection which this argument is de- signed to refute supposes, ordain either presbyters or a bishop for the English Church, nor for any other church then existing, but simply and solely for the Methodist societies in America. And therefore, in doing this necessary work, he neither acted inconsistently with himself as a presbyter of the Church of England, nor incompatible with his frequent avowals to remain in that church, and not to separate from it. 11* 250 TOUR IN AMERICA. " 8. For, in fact, in organizing the Methodist Episcopal Church, he did not separate either from the English or Protestant Episcopal Church ; for that church had no jurisdiction here, and the Methodist was organized some time before the Protestant Episcopal Church had an existence. Hence he acted perfectly consistent with himself, with all his avowals of attachment to the Church of England, while he proceeded to organize a church here ; for while he did this, and thereby established a separate and independent church in America, where the English Church had no jurisdiction, he and his people in England still remained members of the Establishment. " 9. While the Scriptures are silent in respect to the particular form of church government which should be established, they cer- tainly allow of an episcopal form, because it is not incompatible with any known precept or usage of primitive Christianity. " 10. This is further manifest from the fact, that the apostles and evangelists did exercise a jurisdiction over the entire Church, pres- byters, deacons, and people, though, at the same time, there is no proof that as to order, created such by a third consecration, they were higher than the presbyters. "11. Distinguishing, therefore, betAveen the power of ordination and the power of jurisdiction, Ave may see Iioav an episcopal govern- ment may be created by a Presbyterian ordination, and hence justify the act of Mr. Wesley and his associates in setting apart Dr. Coke to the office of a general superintendent. " These arguments are merely stated here as the grounds on which the organization of the Methodist Episcopal Church is justified, re- ferring the reader Avho may wish to see them in detail, A\ r ith the proofs on Avliich they rest for support, to the book recently published, called, ' An Original Church of Christ.' In that performance he aaIH see all objections met, and, I trust, fully ansAvered, and the proceed ings of Mr. Wesley and his co-Avorkers amply vindicated. " 1 2. Another ground of defence is in the diameter of those Avho Avere employed in this transaction. As to the Rev. John Wesley, it is almost needless hoav to say anything in his commendation. In him were concentrated all the elements of a great man ; and by a conscientious improvement of his gifts, having been made a partaker of 'like precious faith,' lac was as much distinguished by his good- ness as by his greatness ; but all his other endoAvments Avere pro- pelled on by his inextinguishable thirst for the salvation of his fel- loAV-men, and fully employed, as an evangelist, in the grand cause of Jesus Christ. And such Avere the effects of these labours, that, at the time of which Ave are iioav speaking, there Avere no less than sixty- four thousand one hundred and fiftv-five members of societv. and PART II. — NOTICES OF METHODISM. 251 one hundred and ninety-five preachers, in Europe; and fourteen thousand nine hundred and eighty-eight members, and eighty-three preachers, in America; making in all seventy-nine thousand one hundred and forty-three members, and two hundred and seventy- eight preachers. These had been raised up through his instrumen- tality in the short space of forty -five years, as seals to his ministry, and as evidences of his call to the work in which he was engaged. Of his call, therefore, and qualification for the work of an evan- gelist, there can be no doubt, any more than there should be of his right, as the spiritual father of this numerous family, to provide them with all the means of grace." — Bangs's " History of Method- ism" vol i, pp. 151-163. Thus were the scattered societies in America formed into a regular church organization. This event, like the political independence of the States, is one of those circumstances which constitute epochs in the history of Christianity. The success of the arrangement has put to silence all surmises as to the w T isdom of the settlement, whether entertained in this country or in America. It gave, in the first place, a free and independent action to the church so established ; which, under the able and judicious management of the new bishops, and especially of Bishop Asbury, at once be- gan, as if with new life, to develop its strength. Much has been said on the subject of Mr. Wesley's love of power, and, by Southey, on his to-wering ambition ; but this whole business palpably refutes all such allegations. It is not a characteristic of the love of power to part with it : and the yielding up of authority to others, is but an ill proof of ambition. John Wesley might have retained an entire and undivided exercise of government over the American soci- eties, just as he did at home, had he chosen to do so. His appointment of preachers would have been undisputed, and they, on their part, would have cordially supported his pas- toral authority; his missives of instruction would have been unhesitatingly received by his sons in the gospel, and obeyed in the most perfect docility of spirit ; the decisions of the British Conference, expressed in its Minutes, would have been complied with, for aught that appears, as the 252 TOUR IN AMERICA. canon-law of the American body : a president, sent from England in the name of the father of the whole family, might have presided in the Conferences, and kept up the link of union, and thus have secured subordination. All this might have taken place ; and would, no doubt — or some other line of policy similar in spirit — have been pur- sued, had this great man been actuated by selfish or ambi- tious views. No act of his life, rightly considered, so fully indicates the integrity of his mind, the purity of his motives, the grandeur of his views, and the magnanimity of his cha- racter, as this arrangement. It is the act of a generous, noble-minded parent, dispossessing himself of his patrimony and power, to bestow it upon a son during his own life- time. The magnanimity of the measure, also, appears in its largeness. It went far beyond the anticipations or de- sires of the parties themselves. They had merely requested to have the ordinances among them, and, for this purpose, desired the ordination of ministers. But this could have been secured, as in Scotland, without either the establish- ment of an independent church, or the appointment of su- perintendents. The only question in the mind of Mr. Wes- ley must have been, What is best for the parties interested ? He soon answered the question by his conduct. His pene- trating mind, his sound understanding, his knowledge of the whole case, his Christian philosophy, and capacity to see into the future as well as the present ; — all this, in connexion with his noble disinterestedness, determined him to take the initiative, and himself to originate the organization and independent position of the Methodist Episcopal Church. The issue has amply verified, and, one would think, more than verified, the highest anticipations of this faithful shep- herd. The great end he sought, in the extension of the gospel, and the conversion of sinners, has certainly been secured on the widest scale ever witnessed in modern times. This of itself would be to him a sufficient reward. He had PART II. — NOTICES OF METHODISM. 253 no other purpose save this, in all he did. The object pro- posed by the several institutions ordained by him, was the extension of our Lord's kingdom in the salvation and hap- piness of mankind. But every other purpose has been secured, as well as this primary one. The doctrines he held so dear have been faithfully conserved and widely disseminated ; the main points of Methodist discipline have been sedulously guarded and carried out ; the holy living and piety towards God, so indefatigably promoted by him in his whole career of labour and of shame, have been happily secured; the unity of a numerous people, who, with few exceptions, have given a cordial and hearty allegiance to the system he adopted, has been exhibited for the illustration of the truth of Scripture, and the edification of the world ; and that evangelic action which is indicated by the establishment of itinerancy, has been fully secured and prosecuted even be- yond the extent of their own gigantic country. Moreover, the world may now, if it chooses, look upon a primitive episcopacy in actual and living operation. Before this period it was only ideal. It might be found in the New Testament, in the practice of the first churches, in the remains of the primitive fathers, in the writings and speculations of men of moderate, but true and authentic, notions ; but the reality had long been absorbed in the monstrous usurpations of Popery, and other systems of ecclesiastical error and tyranny. That man must have possessed a stout heart who, in the presence of existing establishments, and the prevalent opinions of the day, and even of the church to which he professed himself to belong — who had the courage to return, practically, to primitive usage, and build up a living body on the model of the Presbytero-Episcopal Church of the first and best ages. He could not help foreseeing, also, that the temerity which would venture upon such a course must expose him to all manner of reproach. He braved it all ; and the American 254 TOUR IN AMERICA. Methodist Episcopal Church now stands, and will forever stand, as the noble monument of his wisdom, love of truth, disinterested devotion to his Master's honour, and his peo- ple's good ; as well as of his own courageous contempt of this world's petty scorn, or of the grave or bitter rebukes of an incensed and privileged priesthood. CHAPTER VI. The new Order of Things — Mr. Asbury becomes the real Bishop of the Church — His Character and Qualifications for the Office — Dr. Coke exceeds his Powers — Certificate— The Episcopacy defined and guarded — Mr. Wesley's Offence at the Use of the Term " Bishop" — Letter to Asbury — Dr. Coke in Difficulties respecting the Address to Washington— And on Slavery— The Church takes its Standing among the Institutions of the United States. Mr. Asbury, under the new order of things, became the real superintendent of the Methodist Church, Dr. Coke returning home, and only occasionally visiting the conti- nent. It was a merciful dispensation that this power fell into his hands. In addition to true piety, which we have before considered, he was blessed with a sound judgment, great moderation, tender sympathy with his fellow-labour- ers, intense desire for the salvation of mankind, uncompro- mising integrity, and entire decision of character. He seems to have devoted himself most sedulously to the cul- tivation of a knowledge of theology, as far as circumstances would allow ; was a constant and zealous preacher — plain, practical, energetic, though not eloquent ; an assiduous pastor, naturally caring for the spiritual and temporal wel- fare of all the people ; and bent, in his evangelical toils, upon spreading true religion through the entire continent. But Mr. Asbury seems to have possessed, in an eminent degree, that wonderful gift which is sometimes seen in favoured individuals — an almost irresistible influence over men. Undoubtedly this originates, in part, in confidence in their integrity ; and yet not altogether so. Indeed, PART II. — NOTICES OF METHODISM. 255 without the conviction of this quality, and many others, the homage would not be given ; but no assemblage of moral excellences will, of themselves, lead to this result. It is evidently the power of mind ; though in what that power consists, is extremely difficult to define. To say it is intel- lectual would not meet the case, as there are many men of high and noble intellect who possess no very commanding influence among their fellows. Extraordinary religious attainments, and the reputation of exalted sanctity, though producing great reverence, yet does not, of itself, lead to the dominion of the mind of which we speak. It appears to consist of — shall we call it ? — robustness of soul, especially in strength of will. This, when connected with a corresponding amount of intelligence, judgment, insight into character, integrity, and honour; and, withal, that strange thing called "tact" — a perception of the right time, the right means, the right spirit and mode of proceeding — seem to constitute the elements of this cha- racter. Be this as it may, these characteristics all met in Mr. Asbury. But, after all, his power was his piety, connected with corresponding energetical labours. No natural en- dowments could have made him what we see him to have been. He seems to have possessed an intense and a pro- found faith, which was constantly at work. He was a be- liever in the living, active, omnipresent reign of God ; and was in the habit of viewing all things through the medium of his providence and will. His mission to America was undertaken, as we have seen, in the full and unwavering persuasion, that it was the call and will of God. The resist- ance he set up against Mr. Wesley's commands to return home, after only being in the country a short time, and his pertinacious determination to remain at his post at the period of the Revolution, though adopted in the midst of the most painful and embarrassing exercises, were taken with the full belief that his continuance at his post was the 256 TOUR IN AMERICA. ordination of God. So, again, when all his English bre- thren deserted him, and his heart was left to bleed at their loss, and especially for the loss of George Shadford, for whom he entertained the warmest possible affection; when he stood alone, and had to pass through years of distress, anxiety, and sorrow ; — he still adhered to the belief that he was called of God to all this. In like manner, when it was proposed to him to take the new office of superintendent, and adopt the church-system which Mr. Wesley had framed, and of which he seems to have had no premonition what- ever, on consideration, connected with prayer, he entered upon it as the appointment of God. This was the habit of his mind. And never taking up a new position without being entirely persuaded that it was the will of God, he never afterward swerved. These are the men who rule mankind. Their soul seems to be rooted in some eternal, immutable, unalterable truth — winch, as the soil supports the oak, strengthens them for every emergency. Hence they are always the same ; the vacillations of weaker men, the sweep of time, and all other contingencies, find them still inflexibly bent upon their mission. But this decision of character in Mr. Asbury by no means made him insensible, or blunted his feelings. We often find him in deep distress of mind, his sensibilities lacerated, his soul in an agony, as evils present themselves before him ; but still his refuge is prayer, leading him con- stantly to God in Christ. The miseries of his itinerant life deeply affected him. Something like the spirit of Jonah, when he saw his " gourd" wither, and the sun smote him, occasionally appears in his Journals. When traversing the untrodden forests, and crossing dangerous rivers, in the midst of all kinds of weather, the summer's heat, and the winter's cold ; living on the meanest fare, and that by the charity of others ; lodging in log-huts, in the midst of filth, vermin, and noisy children ; — he sometimes gives way to exclamations of anguish, and longs for death and heaven. PART II. — NOTICES OP METHODISM. 257 No wonder. Yet, harassed by all these exercises, he still goes on. Not an expression of doubt as to his line of duty ever occurs ; no shrinking under his load of labour and privation is ever witnessed ; not a whisper of giving in, of retiring, of seeking ease, is ever heard. Certainly, he had no desire for anything on earth different from his life of toil and danger ; and the only change he ever refers to, is a dismissal by the command of his heavenly Master to the rest of heaven. Such was the man to whom were chiefly committed the interests of the newly-formed Methodist Episcopal Church. As might be expected, some little friction appeared in the movements of the machine for some short time ; but nothing of any weighty consideration. It seems astonishing that the new regime was permitted to come into operation so easily ; but, with great wisdom and foresight of consequences, Mr. Asbury refused to take the office assigned him by Mr. Wesley, till he had obtained the concurrent suffrages of the Conference. This assent was accorded unanimously ; and, of course, afterwards they could not quarrel with their own election. This did not enter into the plan of Mr. Wesley, nor of Dr. Coke; but this judicious man un- derstood his position; and, as in all his proceedings, before he moved in the matter, he made his ground per- fectly sure. In a while after the settlement of these affairs, Dr. Coke returned to England ; and, it seems, exercised some of the functions of his new office while at home. This gave um- brage to his brethren in America. And when, on his se- cond visit, he arrived in Baltimore, — " Some dissatisfaction was manifested toward him, because, while in Europe, he had, as was contended, so far teinscended his powers as to alter the time and place for the conference to meet, after they had been fixed by the conference itself. This, with some other com- plaints of a trifling character, drew from Dr. Coke, with a view to allay all apprehensions of liis American brethren hereafter, the fol- lowing certificate : — 258 TOUR IN AMERICA. "' The Certificate of Dr. Coke to the Conference. " ' I do solemnly engage by this instrument, that I never will, by virtue of my office as superintendent of the Methodist Church, during my absence from the United States of America, exercise any govern- ment whatever in the said Methodist Church during my absence from the United States. And I do also engage, that I will exercise no privilege in the said Church when present in the United States, ex- cept that of ordaining according to the regulations and laws already existing or hereafter to be made in the said Church, and that of pre- siding in the said conference ; and, lastly, that of travelling at large. Given under my hand, the second day of May, in the year 1787. " ' Thomas Coke.' " And with a view to guard as much as possible against similar infringements of their rights in future, the following question and answer were entered on the Minutes : — ' : ' Ques. — Who are the superintendents of our Church in these United States ? '"Ans. — Thomas Coke (when present in the States) and Francis Asbury.' "— Bangs's "History of Methodism? vol i, pp. 256, 257. About this time the two superintendents took upon them the name of " bishop." This was done, it appears, in the first instance, by their own act (was it not that of Dr. Coke ?) in subscribing themselves such, in a new edition of the book of Discipline. This led to some little alterca- tion, and grievously offended Mr. Wesle} 7- . But though the Conference did not determine the question in the first place; yet, on their assembling in 1787, they approved of and confirmed it in the following words : — " We have constituted ourselves into an Episcopal church, under the direction of bishops, elders, and deacons, and preachers, accord- ing to the form of ordination annexed to our Prayer-Book, and the regulations laid down in this form of discipline." In the Conference of 1*788, we have this question and answer : — " Ques. — Who are the bishops for our church in the United States % " Ans. — Thomas Coke and Francis Asbury." Thus Episcopacy was formally established, to the great PART II. — NOTICES OF METHODISM. 259 annoyance of Mr. Wesley, who bad employed the more humble term " superintendent." Hence he addressed the following characteristic letter to Bishop Asbury :— " There is, indeed, a wide difference between the relation wherein you stand to the Americans, and the relation wherein I stand to all the Methodists. You are the elder brother of the American Method- ists ; I am, under God, the father of the whole family. Therefore, I naturally care for you all in a manner no other person can do. Therefore I, in a measure, provide for you all ; for the supplies which Dr. Coke provides for you, he could not provide were it not for me, — were it not that I not only permit him to collect, but also support him in so doing. " But, in one point, my dear brother, I am a little afraid, both the doctor and you differ from me. I study to be little, you study to be great ; I creep, you strut along ; I found a school, you a college. Nay, and call it after your own names, (Cokesbury.) O beware! Do not seek to be something ! Let me be nothing, and ' Christ be all in all.' " One instance of thi\ of your greatness, has given me great con- cern. How can you, ..ow dare you, suffer yourself to be called bishop ? I shudder, I start, at the very thought ! Men may call me a fool, or a rascal, a scoundrel, and I am content ; but they shall never, by my consent, call me bishop ! For my sake, for God's sake, for Christ's sake, put a full end to this. Let the Presbyterians do what they please, but let the Methodists know their calling better. " Thus, my dear Frankey, I have told you all that is in my heart. And let this, when I am no more seen, bear witness how sincerely I am, &c." The somewhat anomalous position of Dr. Coke as a British subject and an American bishop, now that the States were free, brought him into some trouble on both sides of the Atlantic. Occasion was taken, by the part he took in presenting the following congratulatory Address to General Washington, on his appointment to the Presi- dency of the United States, to call the doctor's consistency in question.* * The event led to great dissatisfaction in England ; so much so, as to cause the Conference to leave the Doctor's name off the Minutes. — Drew's "Life of Coke," p. 144. 260 TOUR IN AMERICA. " To the President of the United States. " Sir, — We, the bishops of the Methodist Episcopal Church, hum- bly beg leave, in the name of our society, collectively, in these United States, to express to you the warm feelings of our hearts, and our sincere congratulations on your appointment to the Presi- dentship of these States. We are conscious, from the signal proofs you have already given, that you are a friend to mankind ; and, un- der this established idea, place as full confidence in your wisdom and integrity for the preservation of those civil and religious liberties which have been transmitted to us by the providence of God and the glorious revolution, as we believe ought to be reposed in man. " We have received the most grateful satisfaction from the hum- ble and entire dependence on the great Governor of the universe, which you have repeatedly expressed, acknowledging him the source of every blessing, and particularly of the most excellent constitution of these States, which is at present the admiration of the world, and may in future become its great exemplar for imitation ; and hence we enjoy a holy expectation, that you will always prove a faithful and impartial patron of genuine, vital religion, the grand end of our creation and present probationary existenc". And we promise you our fervent prayers to the throne of grace, that God Almighty may endue you with all the graces and gifts of his Holy Spirit, that he may enable you to fill up your important station to his glory, the good of his church, the happiness and prosperity of the United States, and the welfare of mankind. " Signed in behalf of the Methodist Episcopal Church, " Thomas Coke, " Erancts Asbury. "New-York, May 29, 1789." The following is the reply of President Washington : — " To the Bishops of the Methodist Episcopal Cliurch in the United States of America. ' : Gentlemen, — I return to you individually, and through you to your society collectively, in the United States, my thanks, for the demonstrations of affection, and the expressions of joy, offered in their behalf, on my late appointment. It shall be my endeavour to manifest the purity of my inclinations for promoting the happiness of mankind, as well as the sincerity of my desires to contribute whatever may be in my power toward the civil and religious liber- ties of the American people. In pursuing this line of conduct, I hope, by the assistance of divine Providence, not altogether to disappoint the confidence which you have been pleased to repose in me. PART II. — NOTICES OF METHODISM. 26 i " It always affords me satisfaction when I find a concurrence of sentiment and practice between all conscientious men, in acknow- ledgments of homage to the great Governor of the universe, and in professions of support to a just civil government. After mentioning that I trust the people of every denomination, who demean them- selves as good citizens, will have occasion to be convinced that I shall always strive to prove a faithful and impartial patron of genu- ine, vital religion, I must assure you in particular, that I take in the kindest part the promise you make of presenting your prayers at the throne of grace for me ; and that I likewise implore the divine bene- diction on yourselves and your religious community. " George Washington."* On the proposition being made to present an Address to the new President, we are told that Conference approved and appointed the two bishops, Dr. Coke and Asbury, to draw it up, which they did. Bishop Coke, however, being a British subject, it was thought he ought not to read it, and Asbury performed that service, " with great self-pos- session." The other ministers and denominations were angry that " the Methodists should take the lead ;" and the next week batteries of raillery and vituperation were let loose on the poor doctor. They ironically asked, " Who was he ? How came he to be a bishop ? Who consecrated him ?" then uttered severe strictures on the impropriety of a British subject signing an address approving of the Government of the United States ; charging him with duplicity, and that he was the enemy of the independence of America. To the good people on this side the water, at the time, it would appear equally strange for a British subject to eulogize as a " glorious revolution," a war which had beaten and imprisoned the armies of his country, and wrested a mighty empire from under her dominion. And then, it would appear equally a question, whether Dr. Coke could, consistently, call the new institutions of America " the most excellent constitution of these States, which is at present * Banos's " History of Methodism," vol. i, pp. 284-286. 262 TOUR IN AMERICA. the admiration of the world, and may in future become its great exemplar for imitation." The doctor did not trouble his head much about these embarrassments ; if he saw any awkwardness in his position, it made no difference in the discharge of what he conceived to be his duties. But Dr. Coke got into hot water on another, a more vital, matter, namely, that of slavery. Southey gives this case with so much truth and felicity of expression, that we can- not do better than insert his narrative. " Wesley had borne an early testimony against the system of Negro slavery ; on this point his conduct is curiously contrasted with Whitefield's, who exerted himself in obtaining a repeal of that part of the charter granted to the colony of Georgia, whereby slavery was prohibited. Dr. Coke, feeling like Wesley, took up the subject with his usual ardour, preached upon it with great vehemence, and pre- pared a petition to Congress for the emancipation of the Negroes. With this petition, he and Asbury went to General Washington, at Mount Vernon, and solicited him to sign it. Washington received them courteously and hospitably ; he declined signing the petition, that being inconsistent with the rank which he held; but he assured them that he agreed with them : and that, if the Assembly should take their petition into consideration, he would signify his senti- ments by a letter. They proceeded so far themselves, that they re- quired the members of the society to set their slaves free ; and seve- ral persons were found who made this sacrifice from a sense of duty. One planter in Virginia emancipated twenty-two, who were, at the time, worth from thirty to forty pounds each. His name was Ken. non, and it deserves to be honourably recorded. But such instances were rare ; and Dr. Coke, who had much of the national ardour in his character, proceeded in such an intolerant spirit of philanthropy, that he soon provoked a violent opposition, and incurred no small degree of personal danger. One of his sermons upon this topic in- censed some of his hearers so much, that they withdrew, for the purpose of way -laying him ; and a lady Negro-owner promised them fifty pounds, if they would give ' that little doctor' a hundred lashes. But the better part of his congregation protected him ; and that same sermon produced the emancipation of twenty-four slaves. In one county the slave-owners presented a bill against him, which was found by the grand jury, and no less than ninety persons set out in pursuit of him ; but he was got beyond their reach. A more fero- cious enemy followed him, with an intention of shooting him : this PART II. —NOTICES OF METHODISM. 263 the man himself confessed, when, some time afterwards, he became a member of the Methodist society. On his second visit to America, Coke was convinced that he had acted indiscreetly, and he con- sented to let the question of emancipation rest, rather than stir up an opposition which so greatly impeded the progress of Methodism." — Life of Wesley, vol. ii, p. 452. Thus, in connexion with some slight agitations, not, how- ever, of principle, but of accident, the Methodist Episcopal Church took its ground in the midst of the institutions of the United States. The authorities, from the beginning, evidently viewed it with no displeasure ; and, as far as the State has control in such matters, rather gave it countenance than the contrary. The lay public, except in the expres- sion of those outbursts of malignity, spleen, and opposition, which are common to all populations, when an earnest and spiritual religion is introduced among them, were quiet or favourable. Some jealousies, as might be expected, pre- vailed among the religious bodies, and especially with the ministers. The prescriptive Calvinism of the old churches was disturbed by the introduction of the Wesleyan doctrine ; and their notions of the independence of churches, in their individual and isolated state, became antagonized by the connexional principle on which the Methodist Church was established. The title assumed, of bishop, could not be very palatable to ministers, who had all along associated the idea of aristocracy, prelac}^, and lordship, with this innocent name. The very term must, in America, have awakened bitter associations in the minds of the descend- ants of the expatriated refugees, often driven from their homes by the persecutions of bishops, in the days of their domination in this county. That so little opposition was encountered at the time, indicates the moderation and the tolerant spirit of the Americans. Taken as a whole, the Methodist Church, in the principles of its foundation, its rules and institutions, together with the titles assumed by its chief officers, presented itself to view as, perhaps, the 264 TOUE IN AMERICA. most conservative institution of the States. That it should have excited so little jealousy, and properly no opposition, in the midst of the new democratic republic, shows the confidence of the people in their own power, the entire absence of religious bigotry, and the real and practical pre- dominance of a free and generous spirit. PART III. — INSTITUTIONS OF THE M. E. CHURCH. 265 PART III. THE INSTITUTIONS OF THE METHODIST EPISCOPAL CHURCH. CHAPTER I. The doctrinal Basis of the Church — The Articles of Religion— This places the Church on a system of dogmatical Truth — The Difference between this and the English system. In presenting some account of the institution of the Ame- rican Episcopal Church, it is necessary to keep in mind that it rests altogether upon a constitutional basis. Nothing is left to usage, to tradition, to common law, or to the indi- vidual judgment of its officers. By a series of enactments a complete and well-defined code of law and order has obtained, so that it is perfectly easy to comprehend and analyze the entire system. From 176C, the time of the formation of the first society in America, till 1*784, they adopted the Minutes of the English Conference as the rules and regulations of their administration ; but at the latter period, ceasing to be mere societies, and becoming a regular church, they, partly by Mr. Wesley's recommendation, and partly by the enact- ments of their own Conference, proceeded to frame, from time to time, the ecclesiastical constitution by which they are at present governed. The doctrines themselves are the same as those held by the Methodist body in this country and all over the world ; but the documents securing the recognition and promul- gation of these doctrines are different. In this country Mr. Wesley's four volumes of Sermons, and the Notes on the New Testament, constitute the legal creed of the Me- thodist Church ; in America the Articles of Religion of the 12 266 TOUR IN AMERICA. English Church, altered by Mr. Wesley with a view to bring them into harmony with his own opinions, have been adopted. These Articles of Religion were originally pre- pared by Mr. Wesley, and printed in "The Sunday Service," which he sent over to America. They were accepted and published in 1*785, and incorporated into the body of the Discipline in 1*790.* These Articles have been reduced from thirty-nine to twenty-four, and some of those which remain have been changed in their phraseology, and por- tions omitted. Those which have been entirely left out are Articles — III. Of the going down of Christ into Hell. VIII. Of the three Creeds. XIII. Of Works before Justi- fication. XV. Of Christ alone without Sin. XVII. Of Predestination and Election. XVIII. Of obtaining Eternal Salvation only by the Name of Christ. XX. Of the Au- thority of the Church. XXI. Of the Authority of General Councils. XXIII. Of ministering to the Congregations. XXVI. Of the Unworthiness of the Ministers, which hin- ders not the Effects of the Sacraments. XXIX. Of the wicked, which eat not the Body of Christ in the use of the Lord's Supper. XXXIII. Of excommunicate Persons, how they are to be avoided. XXXV. Of the Homilies. XXXVI. Of the Consecration of Bishops and Ministers. XXXVII. Of the Civil Magistrates. The Articles which have been adopted, it will be seen, on examination, constitute a clear and complete standard of truth, notwithstanding the omissions ; that is, on the theory of Mr. Wesley, that the Calvinistic doctrine of pre- destination and election is not founded on the truth of the word of God. The expurgation of the Articles on the de- scent into hell, the three creeds, the authority of the Church to ordain ceremonies, the general councils, and matters of that sort, will be deemed by the great body of Protestants of this day as a benefit ; but, of course, the omission of the * Emory's " History of the Discipline of the Methodist Episcopal Church." PART III. — INSTITUTIONS OF THE M. E. CHURCH. 267 seventeenth Article will be differently considered by those who hold the doctrine therein contained. But the point to be regarded is, that by this arrange- ment the Methodist Episcopal Church is found to adhere to a system of positive, of dogmatical, doctrinal truth. In these days of rampant speculation and theorizing on mat- ters of doctrine, this is of great consequence. The Ame- rican people, like many parties in Europe, are somewhat addicted to give reins to their imagination and critical acu- men, even on questions of sacred truth. It is, therefore, of some importance to bind the Methodist body to the observance of something tangible. It argues sobriety and reverence in them, — a new, an active, and a perfectly free people, — to adopt the venerable forms in which the Church of this country put the truth nearly three hundred years ago, instead of placing themselves on the current of living opinion. We believe there have been very few secessions from the doctrinal opinions of the general body, and heresy is almost unknown in the history of the Methodist Church in the United States. There is, indeed, one striking difference between the American and English Methodists regarding doctrines. We on this side the water are bound by legal enactment to preach the doctrines taught in Mr. Wesley's writings, and it seems the Americans are under no such legal obligation. It follows that the obligation with them is moral, a matter of conscience, of faith, of conviction. Here then, at this point, tradition comes in, usage, and the influence and force of a common opinion. It is very well known that Mr. Wesley has taught, in his four volumes of Sermons, and Notes on the New Testament, opinions which are not found in the twenty-four Articles of Religion adopted by the American Church, except in the way of a very remote inference. Reference is here made to such subjects as the witness of the Spirit, — the witness of our own spirit, — Christian perfection, — and many other 268 TOUR IN AMERICA. nice points of experience and duty. Now, as far as appears on the face of documents, and the Book of Discipline, the Methodist Church in the States has not bound itself to these expositions of doctrine. It has indeed enforced some of them, as that of Christian perfection, in the Minutes of Conference ; but they are not found in the Discipline. It has, on the other hand, adopted the fundamental articles of religion, as so many great centres of truth, and, as it seems, left the detail and the interpretation to the living expositor. This will probably startle the English Methodist ; but, as far as appears from the publications, preaching, and testi- mony of the American Church, they have hitherto proved themselves true to the sentiments of our founder, and teach them as faithfully as is the case in this country. The doc- trines of a religious community, so long as they retain their vitality and simplicity, are always adopted as the living faith of the people. There is no danger while this vitality con- tinues ; the danger commences in the decay of piety, in the loss of spiritual life, and in the forfeiture of all that grace of which the doctrine is the type. This day has not yet come to the American Methodists. If it should ever arrive, it might possibly be useful to possess the doctrines of Methodism proper, in some way, so embedded in the system as to place them beyond the reach of rash and faithless men : and yet the history of the Church awfully shows how fragile all safeguards have been in the presence of the floods of ungodliness which have arisen and swept truth and holiness alike before its desolating wave. PART III.— INSTITUTIONS OF THE M. E. CHURCH. 269 CHAPTER II. The Federal Nature of the Church— The Idea of Unity— How secured— Doctri- nal — Visible governing Power — Episcopacy. The Methodist Church is federal as well as episcopal. Its regime is constructed on the principle of the federation of the whole body, securing the rights and freedom, and, in defined cases, the independent action, of the several parts. The federal character of the church will be found deve- loped in the establishment of the Annual Conferences — their rights and immunities — connecting with the General Conference. Its unity is a unity of several parts, possess- ing almost independent rights. In the spirit of this compact the ecclesiastical canons and government of the Church will be found to stretch to the very circumference of its extent. Every minister is alike under the dominion of its laws, every member is equally subject to its rules, the same doctrines are preached in all its congregations, its worship is the same everywhere, and the same forms of discipline pervade the whole body. None of these things are left to the suffrages of the people, to the influence of the popular will, to the fancies and sentiments of the moment. The framework of the Church has been built by the architectural skill of the able fathers of the community ; and those who enter into its family do not so enter to frame a system or to establish a government of their own as they think best, but to seek for personal edifi- cation, and to obey rules already existing. This unity is variously preserved. The first element, however, is to be found in the adoption of the common creed and frame of government referred to above. When open and tangible symbols of the truth are professed in a church, and subscription to these is enacted as a condition of admission from the candidates for office, there can then be no room for disputation or difference, inasmuch as those 270 TOUR IN AMERICA. who cannot conform to the doctrines to be subscribed have an easy remedy in not taking upon them the office. This is certainly a fair principle toward all parties ; and, to the Church adopting it, must tend to preserve peace and one- ness : and it is equally clear, that churches following any other mode must often be convulsed with discord and divisions. A sufficient freedom, without any compromise of the truths of the gospel, seems the desirable and the difficult question in establishing a church upon a creed. How far this freedom should extend is a problem not easily solved. That all understandings can arrive at conclusions perfectly similar, or express themselves in the same manner, is a pure impossibility. The intellectual, and indeed spiritual, varieties found among Christians will make this absolutely hopeless. Could it have been the will of God ? If so, how is it that in his creating wisdom he has made so great a difference in the structure of the soul ? And, espe- cially, how is it that the glorious verities of God's word are given to man with so little mathematical or logical precision? It seems sufficient for the purposes of Christian unity that men should believe in the same great truths, and seek for themselves the blessings which these truths indicate. Should not a church be large enough to admit men of every calibre of mind ? and while it faithfully adheres to all truth, and even states it dogmatically, which it has a right to do ; ought it not to leave the mysterious to stretch into the hidden and eternal, whence it emanates, and to which it points ? No human power can compress the truth of God into a syllogism, into a definition, into a logical proposition. In adopting the Articles of Religion as amended by Mr. Wesley, the American Methodist Church has secured all the great and glorious doctrines of the Christian system, but left the minute details unexplained. This gives as much freedom as any parties can have a right to expect, or as it would be safe to grant. Next to the doctrinal basis considered as a means of unity, PART III. — INSTITUTIONS OF THE M. E. CHURCH. 271 must be reckoned the central power of legislation which has always existed. Without some recognized head, whe- ther pope, parliament, assembly, or conference, it is impos- sible that a people can be one. The principle on which this is found universally to prevail is evidently one of those fundamental laws of the universe which stamp them as divine. No society, social or sacred, can exist without some visible, palpable, recognized head. But it should seem that the mode in which the principle and law shall be embodied is left very much to human discretion, guided by the pro- vidence of God. Without the popish appendages, claims, and absurdities attached, the religious world seems very much disposed to go back to the old practice of giving its allegiance, so far as external order is concerned, to councils, and assemblies of men. These centres of life and authority, besides having the reputation of great wisdom by the joint exercise of many minds, and of purity and disinterestedness by the supposed impossibility of collusion in crime, are looked upon with favour by the people, from the fact that, in different ways, they consider themselves represented, either by election, or else by having men present who are connected with them, whom they know, and on whose integrity they can depend. They whose faith teaches them to expect God to interpose at all in the government of mankind, whether in church or state, look reverently to these centres of order and influence as the depositaries of his power, as the visible and outward embodiment of his mind and purpose. That the shoulders of individuals can no longer bear the weight of government, is clear enough ; and that the people are indisposed any longer to give their allegiance to authority and power as a unit, is equally certain. That the Church, and mankind at large, will fare better under the new development than the old, is a subject of general hope and expectation ; the realization is in the future ; and the lover of mankind may indulge the antici- 272 TOUR IN AMERICA. pation with glowing exultation, how much soever of dis- appointment awaits him. We see that things held at one time as sacred and undoubted truths are only allowed a limited course ; like material substances, they can only endure a certain amount of friction, and then wear out. Who could have imagined, in the palmy days of Popery, that the sentiment of the divine power living in the person of the pope, or in general councils, and spoken from the infallible throne of St. Peter, would have been held as transferred to the French Chamber ? and yet the faith of Lamartine, and men of his cast, is as devoutly fixed on the Revolution and its representative as the embodiment of the divinity, as that of the ancient devotees of Rome was fixed upon his Holiness. Be this as it may, the central power which has all along done so much for the unity of the Methodist Episcopal Church, is one which partakes very much of the spirit of the age ; namely, the Conference. We only refer to this now, as a means of union and success among the Methodist societies. With few exceptions, this body has evidently possessed the confidence of the people ; and it has employ- ed its influence assiduously and wisely in promoting both the consolidation and expansion of the Church. It is very evident that, in American society, mere power can do but little to bring about such a result. The cohesive force must be something different from naked, palpable, and frowning authority. With firmness and adherence to con- stitutional rule and order, we believe the moderation of the American Conference has been its power. Its undoubted desire to promote the extension of religion ; to secure the happiness and interests of all its people ; to give them all the advantages of knowledge with those of piety ; to leave their civil rights and position intact, without any attempt to make them political tools ; the desire for their temporal advancement, and sympathy in their exercises and troubles ; the respect paid to all their feelings and sentiments, as PART III. — INSTITUTIONS OP THE M. E. CHURCH. 273 expressed by petition and other means ; the anxiety to follow them in their pilgrimages into the wilderness, to minister to their spiritual wants ; — all these, and many other proofs of paternal care and good-will, have united to attract the confidence of the Methodists to their embodied head. So long as this confidence remains unshaken, the unity of the Church will be secured ; but the moment this confidence is lost, it must be dissolved. The abstraction of the key-stone of an arch would not more surely lead to the fall of the entire fabric, than the forfeiture of confidence in the American Conference, on the part of the people, would lead to the demolition of the Church, and the breaking up of the entire fellowship. But we have another great element of federal unity in the American Church in its episcopacy. It is extremely likely that all the rest would be insufficient without this. This is a vital bond of fellowship. The bishops of the church are in the habit of living among the people : they see and converse with them, they heal their differences, they carry among them the symbols of unity and paternity, and in all things their office is found to conserve the so- cieties. The Americans are too wise and too practical to leave a question of so much importance as the union of the Church to the influence of abstractions, to ideas and laws ; they embody the federal principle in their living repre- sentatives. These good men have never betrayed their trust ; never sought personal aggrandizement at the ex- pense of public peace and usefulness ; never attempted to build up the office of bishop into either a sinecure or a domi- nation. They become in this way the depositaries of a power which, though unfelt, is very efficient. It is impos- sible that a large community can long remain without causes of difference and debate. These, if left to them- selves, will soon produce jars and friction, which must, in the end, lead to disruptions. Men who refuse to submit to each other are generally willing to refer differences to a 12* 274 TOUR IN AMERICA. third party ; and, supposing confidence in his integrity is felt, are equally willing to bow to his award. This over- sight of the flock is thought to be well adapted to perpe- tuate the oneness of the body. CHAPTER III. The Methodist Church in its Subdivisions— The Circuit and Station— The Sta- tion an innovation— The Quarterly-Meeting Conference — Its Powers. The divisions of the Methodist Church exist in the form of circuits or stations, districts, and local Conferences ; that is, Conferences in the sense of a territorial division. We begin with circuits and stations. In the commence- ment of the work, circuits, embracing several preachers, and numerous societies, prevailed in America, as is now the case in England. In these circuits, an exchange among the ministers constantly took place, so that the congrega- tions were each Sunday, and at other times, addressed by these preachers alternately. This practice continues at present to a considerable extent, and especially in the country places. It seems impossible to cultivate a thinly populated tract of country at first, except upon the adoption of the mission- ary principle ; which principle is embodied in the practice of a pure itinerancy. Hence we find in the new countries, only partially peopled, that the ecclesiastical demarcation is now, properly so called, a circuit. But this principle has been nearly altogether abandoned in the towns and cities. The substitution for this is the station, which means the appointment of a single minister to the pastoral charge of one society and congregation during his term, which cannot be longer than two years. This minister is usually known by the designation, " the preacher in charge" of such and such a church. This "preacher in charge" is the sole pastor of the church in PART III. — INSTITUTIONS OF THE M. E. CHURCH. 275 question, and lie is alone responsible ; no one lias the right to interfere with him, except as by the provisions of the constitution. This arrangement is important, inasmuch as it is the abandonment of the practice of an alternating, mixed ministry, deemed so essential an appendage of Methodism in this country. Either by the force of habit, the influence of tradition, or the opinion of Mr. Wesley, and some of his most eminent followers, it is now a sort of settled point, an understood case, to be admitted without question or de- bate, that the same congregation cannot be well and effi- ciently served in their spiritual interests, without a change of ministers ; if not once every Lord's day, at any rate every other Sunday. If any deviation from this should be suggested, a thousand voices, without a moment's reflection, indeed, in less time than thought could be formed into words, would cry out, " Heresy !" and at once predict that Methodism would be ruined ! These parties would do well to meditate upon two facts ; namely, that when Mr. Wes- ley established a universal system of itinerancy, including the change of men in the same circuit, he considered them as mere preachers, and not pastors ; and in theory he regarded the Methodist body as societies in the Church ; and, consequently, that the Establishment, was the church to which he and his people belonged ; and, moreover, that the minister of the Establishment, who administered the sacraments to them, was their proper pastor. With these views, and with the purpose of perpetuating this state of things, he made itinerancy a legal part of the Methodist system in this country. The second fact is, that when he established a church in the United States, though no doubt his desire and expectation was that itinerancy in all its gradations would prevail, yet he made no provision for its perpetuity. He evidently did not intend that the American ministers should be considered only as preachers. Hence his ordinations, his preparation of the " Sunday Service," his organization of a complete church. 276 TOUR IN AMERICA. Without giving up itinerancy formally, it will be found, on examination, that the introduction of the "station" scheme is a very great and important modification of the principle. Many of the " preachers in charge" are literally confined to one congregation. They never preach beyond the precincts of their own church, and visit no country places, cottages, or anything else in the city in which they reside ; — in point of fact, they are limited to the pastoral charge of one congregation, and discharge none of the work of evangelists. It is not intended by this, that these men are idle, that they fail in the duties of their vocation, or, in fine, that they cease to possess the spirit of real min- isters. A large society and numerous congregation will find enough of employment for any one man. American Christians, like those nearer home, require pastoral atten- tion, and earnestly demand it at the hands of their minister. This, with constant preaching to the same people, fills up the time, and entirely engages the labours, of " the preacher in charge." The internal government of these circuits and stations is provided for in an exact manner. We find that an execu- tive power, called the " Quarterly-Meeting Conference," is, with the " preacher in charge," the governing body. Be- sides providing funds, and discharging the secular duties of the station, they possess judicial functions of some con- sideration. Indeed, it seems from the Rules that they constitute a court of appeal, as the last resort in all cases of discipline affecting the standing or character of mem- bers. The delinquent member is, in the first place, brought to trial — 11 Before the society of which he is a member, or a select number of them, in the presence of a bishop, elder, deacon, or preacher. If the accused person be found guilty by the decision of a majority of the members before whom he is brought to trial, and the crime be such as is expressly forbidden by the word of God, sufficient to ex- clude a person from the kingdom of grace and glory, let the minister or preacher who has the charge of the circuit expel him Never- PART III. — INSTITUTIONS OF THE M. E. CHURCH. 277 theless, if in any of the above-mentioned cases the minister or preacher differ in judgment from the majority of the society, or the select number, concerning the innocence or guilt of the accused person, the trial, in such case, may be referred by the minister or preacher to the ensuing quarterly-meeting conference." Again : — " If there be a murmur or complaint from any excluded person, in any of the above-mentioned instances, that justice has not been done, he shall be allowed an appeal to the next quarterly-meeting confer- ence ; and the majority of travelling and local preachers, exhorters, stewards, and leaders present, shall finally determine the case." — "Discipline" pp. 99-101. Last edition, 1844. This evidently places the final decision of all cases of discipline, regarding members in any particular station, in the hands of the authorities of that station. There is no appeal in these cases of moral criminality to any jurisdiction beyond the boundaries of the local church to which the accused party may belong. It may be interesting to some to give one item of the temporal economy of the Methodist Church through this Quarterly-Meeting Conference. " It shall be the duty of the said committee, appointed by the above body, or one appointed for that purpose, who shall be mem- bers of our church, to make an estimate of the amount necessary to furnish fuel and table expenses for the family or families of the preachers stationed with them, and the stewards shall provide, by such means as they may devise, to meet such expenses, in money or othei-- wise." — "Discipline" p. 190. Last edition, 1844. It is to be hoped these committee gentlemen, who are called to sit in judgment on the eating and drinking capa- city of their preachers, their wives, and children, are uni- formly family-men themselves, possess the sympathies of parents and husbands, and do not receive their appointment because of a disposition to put the poor wretches upon " short commons !" 278 TOUR IN AMERICA. CHAPTER IV. Subdivisions continued— The District — How constituted — The presiding Elder — Rules and Laws — The several Orders of Ministers. The district is the charge of the presiding elder, and is constituted of a greater or less number of circuits or sta- tions, according to the convenience of the case. Properly speaking, the presiding elder is a bishop, and the district is his diocese. He is not appointed to any local charge, and travels through his district constantly for the purpose of superintending its affairs. The presiding elders are chosen by the bishops ; they are stationed and changed by the bishops: the bishops may allow a presiding elder to remain in the same district for any term not exceeding four years successively ; after which he shall not be appointed to the same district for six years. The duties of the presiding elder are, — " 1. To travel through his appointed district. " 2. In the absence of the bishop, to take charge of all the elders and deacons, travelling and local preachers, and cxhorters in his district. " 3. To change, receive, and suspend preachers in his district dur- ing the intervals of the conference, and in the absence of the bishop, as the Discipline directs. " 4. In the absence of a bishop, to preside in the conference : but in case there are two or more presiding elders belonging to one con- ference, the bishop or bishops may, by letters or otherwise, appoint the president; but if no appointment be made, or if the presiding elder appointed do not attend, the conference shall, in either of these cases, elect the president by ballot, without a debate, from among the presiding elders. " 5. To be present, as far as practicable, at all the quarterly-meet- ings ; and to call together, at each quarterly meeting, a quarterly -meet- ing conference, consisting of all the travelling and local preachers, cx- horters, stewards, and leaders of the circuit, and none else, to hear complaints, and to receive and try appeals. The quarterly-meeting conference shall appoint a secretary to take down the proceeding PART III. — INSTITUTIONS OF THE M. E. CHURCH. 279 thereof, in a book kept by one of the stewards of the circuit, for that purpose. " 6. To oversee the spiritual and temporal business of the church in his district, and to promote, by all proper means, the cause of missions and Sunday-schools, and the publication, at our own press, of Bibles, tracts, and Sunday-school books ; and carefully to inquire, at each quarterly-meeting conference, whether the rules respecting the instruction of children have been faithfully observed ; and to re- port to the annual conference the names of all travelling preachers within his district, who shall neglect to observe these rales. " 7. To take care that every part of our Discipline be enforced in his district. And to decide all questions of law in a quarterly-meeting conference, subject to an appeal to the president of the next annual conference ; but in all cases the application of law shall be with the conference." — " Discipline" pp. 31-33. From these rules, it is evident the office of the presiding elder agrees, in character, with the suffragan bishop of ancient times. By right of his appointment, in the absence of the bishop he presides at meetings for business ; he hears appeals, and sits in judgment in cases of discipline ; he travels through his district for the purpose of " overseeing" its state, and putting all things in order ; and on him lies the responsibility of seeing that all the rules of the Disci- pline are observed by both preachers and people. But the fact that all this is only done in the absence of the bishop, indicates that he is, in some sort, considered as his substi- tute. In point of practice, the whole falls pretty constantly upon the presiding elder, in consequence of the constant travelling of the bishops. We see from these laws that the American Methodists are not afraid of giving power to their officers sufficient to enable them fully to exercise the functions of their calling. A vigorous executive is what their system everywhere indicates ; but, at the same time, this executive is responsible for all its acts. Various other ecclesiastical officers are found in one of these districts. It may be proper to give them a place here, that the whole case may be understood. " There are the exhorters, who receive their license from a quarterly- 280 ' TOUR IN AMERICA. meeting conference, and have the privilege of holding meetings for exhortation and prayer. " A preacher is one that holds a license, and is authorized to preach but not to baptize or administer the Lord's supper : he may be either a travelling or local preacher. A local preacher generally follows some secular employment for a livelihood, and preaches on the Sab- bath, and at other times occasionally, without any temporal emolu- ment. A travelling preacher devotes himself entirely to the work of the ministry, and is supported by the people among whom he la- bours. All these, after being recommended by the class to which they respectively belong, or by a leaders' meeting, receive their license from a quarterly-meeting conference, signed by a presiding elder. " A deacon holds a parchment from a bishop, and is authorized, in addition to discharging the duties of a preacher, to solemnize matri- mon} r , to bury the dead, to baptize, and to assist the elder in admin- istering the Lord's supper. It is his duty also to seek after the sick and poor,, and administer to their comfort. " An elder, besides doing the duties above enumerated, has full authority to administer all the ordinances of God's house. These generally, whenever a sufficient number can be had, have the charge of circuits, and the administration of the several parts of the Disci- pline of the Church." — Bangs's " History of Methodism" vol i, p. 246. These extracts, it is hoped, will give a pretty accurate notion of a Methodist district in the American Church, and of the functions of its several officers. The gradation of orders, it is seen, is very strictly observed. The exhorter, the preacher, the deacon, the elder, the presiding elder, — all taking their place in conformity to law and order ; and no man, as appears, moving in any sphere without a com- mission. The recommendation of " a class," as to a man's qualifications, and the power exercised by the Quarterly- Meeting Conference, will appear novel to us ; but, on examination, the anomaly will not turn out to be very great, neither be found very much different from our own practice. PART III. — INSTITUTIONS OP THE M. E. CHURCH. 281 CHAPTER V. Subdivisions continued — The Episcopacy— Bishops, how appointed — Laws and Regulations — Reflections — The Division of Labour amongst the Bishops — Names of those who have received this Office — Purity of Election — Popu- larity. We now approach a grave question : we enter upon the consideration of that function by which the Methodist Church is distinguished. We are not here called upon to enter into the controversies which arose on the appointment of superintendents for the Methodist Church by Mr. Wes- ley, or the assumption of the title of " bishop," as we have seen, by these superintendents, first by themselves, and then as assented to by the Conference. Our task is rather to describe the nature of the office, and the manner in which this episcopacy has hitherto worked. We begin with the appointment to the office. We have already seen that Mr. Asbury refused to take upon himself the episcopate, on the nomination of Mr. Wesley, till he had obtained the suffrages of his brethren in Conference ; so that his assumption of the duties of the station assigned him was rendered valid by the election of the body in ques- tion, as well as by the nomination of the father of the family. This precedent, no doubt, has had its effect in all future appointments. The bishops have never been, from that time, elected to the office by the episcopacy itself, by the call of the bishops preceding them, but by the Con- ference. It is necessary to give the law itself on this case. The Conference enacts as follows : — " Ques. 1. — How is a bishop to be constituted 1 " Ans. — By the election of the General Conference, and the laying on of the hands of three bishops, or at least of one bishop and two elders. " Ques. — If, by death, expulsion, or otherwise, there be no bishop remaining in our Church, what shall we do ? " Ans. — The General Conference shall elect a bishop ; and the elders, or any three of them, who shall be appointed by the General 282 TOUR IN AMERICA. Conference for that purpose, shall ordain him according to our form of ordination. " Ques. — What are the duties of a bishop ? " Ans. — 1. To preside in our conferences. " 2. To fix the appointments of the preachers for the several cir- cuits, provided he shall not allow any preacher to remain in the same station more than two years successively ; except the presiding elders, the general editor, the general book-steward and his assistant, the editor and assistant-editor of the Christian Advocate and Jour- nal, the editor of the Sunday-school books, the corresponding secre- taries, editors, and agents at Cincinnati, the supernumerary, super- annuated, and worn-out preachers, missionaries among the Indians, missionaries to our people of colour, and on foreign stations, chap- lains to state-prisons and military posts, those preachers that may be appointed to labour for the special benefit of seamen, and for the American Bible Society, also the preacher or preachers that may be stationed in the city of New-Orleans, and the presidents, principals, or teachers of seminaries of learning, which are or may be under our superintendence ; and also, when requested by an annual conference, to appoint a preacher for a longer time than two years to any semi- nary of learning not under our care ; provided, also, that Avith the exceptions above named, he shall not continue a preacher in the same appointment more than two years in six; nor in the same city more than four years in succession ; nor return him to it after such term of service till he shall have been absent four years. He shall have authority, when requested by an annual conference, to ap- point an agent, whose duty it shall be to travel throughout the bounds of such conference, for the purpose of establishing and aiding Sabbath-schools, and distributing tracts, and also to appoint an agent or agents for the benefit of our literary institutions. "3. In the intervals of the conference, to change, receive, and sus- pend preachers, as necessity may require, and as the Discipline directs. " 4. To travel through the connexion at large. " 5. To oversee the spiritual and temporal business of our Church. " 6. To ordain bishops, elders, and deacons. " 7. To decide all questions of law in an annual conference ; sub- ject to an appeal to the General Conference ; but in all cases the ap- plication of law shall be with the conference. " 8. The bishops may, when they judge it necessary, unite two or more circuits or stations together, without affecting their separate financial interests, or pastoral duties. " Ques. 4. — To whom is a bishop amenable for his conduct 1 PART III. — INSTITUTIONS OF THE M. E. CHURCH. 283 " Ans. — To the General Conference, who have power to expel him for improper conduct, if they see it necessary. " Ques. 5. — What provision shall he made for the trial of a bishop, if he should be accused of immorality in the interval of the General Conference 1 " Ans. — If a bishop be accused of immorality, three travelling elders shall call upon him, and examine him on the subject ; and if the three elders verily believe that the bishop is guilty of the crime, they shall call to their aid two presiding elders from two districts in the neighbourhood of that where the crime was committed, each of which presiding elders shall bring with him two elders, or an elder and a deacon. The above-mentioned nine persons shall form a conference, to examine into the charge brought against the bishop ; and if two-thirds of them verily believe him to be guilty of the crime laid to his charge, they shall have authority to suspend the bishop till the ensuing General Conference, and the districts shall be regu- lated in the mean time as is provided in the third and fifth sections ; but no accusation shall be received against a bishop, except it be de- livered in writing, signed by those who are to prove the crime ; and a copy of the accusation shall be given to the accused bishop. " Ques. 6. — If a bishop cease from travelling at large among the people, shall he still exercise his episcopal office among us in any degree 1 " Ans. — If he cease from travelling Avithout the consent of the General Conference, he shall not thereafter exercise the episcopal office in our Church." — "Discipline" pp. 27-31. The real genius of the American Church comes out in these regulations. 1. We may remark, that the execution of the laws and discipline of the Church is invariably committed to men, not to Boards, to Committees. There is a great difference. A Committee is a thing : it is an amalgamation of many intellects, minds, hearts, consciences, just making — nil. A Committee can do no wrong ; because, as all are supposed to do the wrong thing, none do it ! And as a Committee can do no wrong, so it can suffer no punishment ! Who could hang a Committee ? Because business is done by many and not by one, some parties have the idea, that more freedom is secured by this arrangement, and that Commit- tees cannot play the tyrant, while a man may do so. A 284 TOUR IN AMERICA. greater fallacy never entered the brain of man than this ; and all experience, whether in Church or State, will furnish ample illustration. Surely, the Americans understand the question of liberty pretty well ; and, no doubt, it was this feeling*, in connexion with other reasons, — and, among the rest, the intention to have their work done, and not shelved from time to time, — which led them to commit its execution into the hands of living, tangible, moving men. 2. With the office and obligations of great duties, they consistently give ample power for the execution of the trust. In this we see no suspicions, no niggardly and petty jea- lousies, no fear. A frank and noble confidence in the men of their choice is manifested ; and these men, we see, are sent through the churches with full credentials and powers to execute their noble task. 3. This investiture with real authority is not nullified by the miserable bondage of a load of conditions. They are not sent to move through the country with a web of spi- ders'-work around them at every point ; or of nets, gins, pitfalls at their feet, into which at any moment they may tumble ; nor has any small creature the power, by means of some of these contrivances, to trip up their heels, or prevent them from moving. What saj^s the law? The bishops shall " travel through the connexion." This is all. It is not said how fast, by what routes ; whether on foot, on horseback, or in a carriage. The meaning is, they shall be free to go, to execute their commission, none hindering or putting obstructions in their path. There is this differ- ence betwixt a little and paltry, and a great and magnani- mous, policy : the former sends its agents forth bound hand and foot, as mere puppets, to execute its commission by the instructions received ; the latter selects competent men, furnishes the commission to act, and then gives freedom to the soul, — and in this freedom is strength. No human rules and canons can meet the exigences of the world ; man's soul alone, taught by God's own truth and Spirit, PART III. — INSTITUTIONS OF THE M. E. CHURCH. 285 can do this. It is this principle, we are persuaded, which has given American Methodism its strength, its elasticity, its expansion, and its triumphs. 4. With these powers and this freedom of action, then, we find connected the principle of responsibility. But this responsibility is, in the law, limited very much to the ques- tion of immorality. These bishops are not put upon their trial as to the observance of technical rules in their adminis- tration. Any dereliction in these matters is left to circum- stances, to the force of public opinion, and to the power of the constitution to rectify any existing evil. The absence of all fear as to any mischievous effects resulting from freedom, whether possessed by a bishop in the execution of his office, or by the private member in the enjoyment of his privileges, is very apparent in the whole economy. It may be as well to remark, at this point, that the bishops are not appointed to their respective provinces, or spheres of labour, by the conference. The practice is, for the bishops to meet after each General Conference, and settle among themselves the several parts of the work to be done by each, till the meeting of the next General Confer- ence. By this method the same bishop is not confined constantly to the same portion of the country ; they change as occasion may require, and the state of the Church may make expedient. Some may be curious to know how these dignitaries of the Church fare in the matter of living, episcopal palaces, and all which pertains to the external glory of a bishop. This, then, is the matter of fact : " The annual allowance of the married travelling, supernumerary, and superannu- ated preachers, and- the bishops, shall be two hundred dol- lars, and their travelling expenses." — "Discipline" p. 182. We find such notices as the following in Bishop Asbury's Journal : — " The weather has been unpleasant ; and our clothing needed improvement and increase." " The super- intendent bishop of the Methodist Church in America being 286 TOUR IN AMERICA. reduced to two dollars, he was obliged to make his wants known." This was in 1814, after he had been a bishop about twenty years. Under this constitution the following bishops have been appointed in the American Church ; namely, Dr. Coke, Asbury, Whatcoat, M'Kendree, George, Roberts, Soule, Hedding, Andrew, Emory, Waugh, Morris, Hamline, Janes ; and in the Methodist Episcopal Church South, Capers and Paine. Bishop Whatcoat was an Englishman, and was recom- mended for the work by Mr. Wesley. He was evidently a man of ardent piety ; a constant and successful preacher ; a most amiable man, and a faithful bishop ; and was, moreover, greatly beloved by his brethren and the people. Bishops Asbury and Whatcoat seem to have been kindred spirits, and greatly attached to each other. They travel- led much together, and Asbury constantly speaks in the most respectful and affectionate terms of his brother What- coat. Bishop M'Kendree is evidently, after Bishop Asbury, about the first man among the dead who ever belonged to the Church : angelically devout ; fervent, holy, and affec- tionate in his spirit ; an ardent, pathetic, and powerful preacher; constant, and indefatigable, and self-denying in his labours ; and a most upright, judicious, dignified, and faithful superintendent of the church. In his early days the bishops had to traverse the whole continent ; and we find Bishop M'Kendree taking his share in this painful toil. Often, in company with his noble-minded leader, we s*ee him suffering every kind of privation and inconvenience to win souls to Christ, and spread the savour of. his Divine Master's name. After the death of Bishop Asbury, being the senior, he was called to perform very onerous duties in the affairs of the Church ; and by his goodness, firmness, wisdom, and entire devotion to his Master's service, succeeded in rescu- ing it from many perils, as well as establishing it in PART III. — INSTITUTIONS OF THE M. E. CHURCH. 287 greater stability and order than when he entered upon his work. Bishop Emory was a different man to either of the above. Being educated for the law, his mind became sharpened by his studies, so that he possessed great acuteness and logical power. He was, however, an eminently good man, a very able preacher ; and during the short time of his continuance in office, displayed all the essential qualities of a most excellent superintendent. He was mysteriously called away (being killed by the overthrow of the vehicle in which he was travelling) in the prime of life, and the prospect of great usefulness. As far as appears, the conference has never been moved by party feelings in the choice of these important officers. No low or paltry motives seem to have entered into their views in conferring this responsible trust. They have invariably selected fine and excellent men ; the proof of this is in the fact, that no charge has ever been substantiated against any of them. But this is low praise ; they have shown themselves to be men of exalted character. With such bishops, there is no danger of episcopacy being sub- verted in America. This system, moreover, has been, on the whole, extremely well received among the people. It may, indeed, be said to have been popular ; and the few attempts which have been made to subvert the episcopacy, have been utterly fruitless. It is clear, that the people affectionately reve- rence these men of God ; and not the less, but the more, for their being bishops. There is, indeed, nothing in them to offend the most simple, the most republican, taste. Sacerdotal habiliments were attempted at first, but, meeting with opposition, were soon laid aside. It is not likely, in a country where the President of the States, the Speakers of the Senate and Congress, the judges and counsel of the courts, all appear in plain attire, that robes of office would be very palatable in the Methodist priesthood. Religion 288 TOUR IN AMERICA. itself is the power of these holy men ; the people know their character, and esteem them for their work's sake ; and were it not for this, coupled with great and disinterested labours, the Methodist episcopacy would undoubtedly soon come to an end. CHAPTER VI. Subdivisions continued — The Annual Conference — How constituted — Its Func- tions — Elects Delegates to the General Conference. The Annual Conferences are forty in number, and embrace the whole area of the United States. An Annual Confer- ence means, among other things, a territorial district, defined by the general laws. Each preacher of the body in America belongs, ministerially, to one of these Annual Conferences, and not to the general Church. In the ordi- nary course of things, he consequently moves within the limits of this ecclesiastical demarcation ; and if he remove to any other conference, he is transferred to the new sphere by the proper authorities. The conference assembly is composed of all the travel- ling preachers of the district in question ; and this meeting is presided over by a bishop. The business of this assembly consists of the ordinary routine, and it has no legislative functions whatever. The usual questions are asked as to " What preachers are admitted on trial ? Who remain on trial ? Who are admitted into full connexion ? Who are the deacons ? Who have been elected and ordained elders this year ? Who have been elected, by the suffrages of the General Conference, to exercise the episcopal office, and superintend the Methodist Episcopal Church in America ? Who have located this year ? Who are the supernumera- ries ? Who are the superannuated or worn-out preachers this year?" &c. If charges are found against any of the preachers, they are put upon their trial at this tribunal, PART III. — INSTITUTIONS OF THE M. E. CHURCH. 289 with the right of appeal against its decisions to the General Conference. Monetary matters are adjusted at this meet- ing 1 , and accounts received from the circuits and stations. The preachers here receive their appointments for the year, within the bounds of the conference, and always by the authority of the bishop. It is evident from all this, that the Annual Conference is chiefly an administrative body. It is the meeting of the preachers with the bishop, for the transaction of the busi- ness of the Church in that particular department. Of course, they have enough to do. The conferences often consist of one hundred, and sometimes near two hundred, preachers ; and to settle the business of their several circuits, and adjust what may be out of order, will require much time and talent. On the approach of a General Conference, these local bodies elect their delegates to attend, the proportion being one representative for every twenty-one preachers. These Annual Conferences, of necessity, exercise great moral influence within their own sphere ; and they possess certain constitutional rights, which the General Conference cannot annul ; and when these constitutional rights come in the way of that body, they cannot move without the con- currence of three-fourths of the votes of the preachers composing these Annual Conferences. CHAPTER VII. Subdivisions continued — The General Conference — Dr. Bangs's Account of its formation— Its Powers— Fundamental Principles— Reflections. The General Conference, as a distinct institution, did not come into existence for several years after Methodism had assumed great strength. The account given by Dr. Bangs will place this subject in its true light, which we now give. Under the date of 1*792, he says, — 13 ii90 TOUR IN AMERICA. " As has been seen in the preceding pages, the general affairs of the Church had been conducted heretofore chiefly in the several an- nual conferences, which were considered only as so many parts of the whole body ; for nothing was allowed binding upon all, unless it were approved of by each and every of these separate conferences. It is true, that the Christmas conference of 1784, at which the Church was organized, was considered a General Conference, because all the preachers Avere invited to attend, for the transaction of the im- portant business then and there to be submitted to them ; and, there- fore, the acts and doings of that conference were considered to be binding upon the whole Church. As the work continually increased, and spread over such a large and extended territory, it was found impracticable for all the preachers to assemble annually in one place, without too great a consumption of time and expense ; and hence the practice which had been adopted of appointing several conferences in the same year in different parts of the country, for the convenience of both the bishop and the preachers : but as one of these conferences could not make laws for all the rest, nor yet all the rest for that one without its consent ; and as it was not likely that so many indepen- dent bodies could be brought to harmonize in all things pertaining to the welfare of the Church ; there was danger from this state of things, of a dissolution of the body, and the establishment of a num- ber of separate and distinct communities, acting independently of each other. " To prevent evils of this character, and to create a centre of union to the entire body, the council had been instituted ; but this unpopu- lar measure, not answering the end of its organization, was, by gene- ral consent, dissolved, and a General Conference called in its place. This was, it seems, agreed upon by the several annual conferences which had been held this year. " This conference assembled in the city of Baltimore, on the first day of November, 1792, and was composed of all the travelling preachers who had been received into full connexion. As this was considered the first regular General Conference, and as those who composed ;t came together under an expectation that very impor- tant matters would be transacted, it seems proper to give a particular account of their acts and doings. Dr. Coke had returned from Europe, and presided, conjointly with Bishop Asbury, over their deliberations. " As there were no restrictions upon the powers of this conference, the entire discipline of the Church came up for review and revision ; but to prevent, as far as possible, any improper innovation upon ex- isting rules, or the premature adoption of new regulations, they PART III.— INSTITUTIONS OF THE M. E. CHURCH. 291 agreed that ' it shall take two-thirds of all the members of the con- ference to make any new rule, or abolish an old one ; but a majority may alter or amend any ride.' " They soon had an opportunity to try the strength of this rule in preserving them from an innovation upon established usage, in respect to the power of stationing the preachers." — Bangs's " History of Metho- dism," vol. i, pp. 342-344. "Another General Conference was held in 1796, and at this con- ference the discretionary power of the bishops to assemble as many annual conferences as they pleased was taken away, and the number limited to six. "In 1806, Bishop Asbury submitted a proposition to all the an- nual conferences, in which he proposed, for the first time, the estab- lishment of a delegated General Conference. As it was deemed proper to secure perfect unanimity on so grave a question, this was defeated by Jesse Lee, who induced the Virginia Conference to ob- ject." — Bangs's "History of Methodism" vol. ii, p. 177. "In 1808, this question was brought to a decision in favour of the measure, by the adoption, on the part of the General Conference, of the following recommendation of a committee appointed to consider the subject : — ' : ' Whereas it is of the greatest importance that the doctrine, form of government, and general rules of the united societies in America be preserved sacred and inviolate ; and whereas every prudent mea- sure should be taken to preserve, strengthen, and perpetuate the union of the connexion ; (i ' Therefore, your committee, upon mature deliberation, have thought it advisable, that the third section of the form of discipline shall be as follows' — adopting the principle." — Bangs's " History of Methodism" vol. ii, p. 229. It only remains to give the constitution of this supreme assembly of the American Episcopal Church : — i; 1. The General Conference shall be composed of one member for every twenty-one members of each annual conference, toJbe appointed either by seniority or choice, at the discretion of such annual con- ference ; yet, so that such representatives shall have travelled at least four fidl calendar years from the time that they were received on trial by an annual conference, and are in full connexion at the time of holding the conference. " 2. The General Conference shall meet on the first day of May, in the year of our Lord 1812, in the city of New- York, and thence- forward on the first day of May, once in four years perpetually, in 292 TOUR IN AMERICA. such place or places as shall be fixed on by the General Conference from time to time ; but the general superintendents, with or by the advice of all the Annual Conferences, or, if there be no general super- intendent, all the Annual Conferences respectively shall have power to call a General Conference, if they judge it necessary at any time. " 3. At all times when the General Conference is met, it shall take two-thirds of the representatives of all the Annual Conferences to make a quorum for transacting business. " 4. One of the general superintendents shall preside in the Gene- ral Conference ; but in case no general superintendent be present, the General Conference shall choose a president, pro tern. " 5. The General Conference shall have full powers to make rules and regulations for our Church, under the following limitations and restrictions, viz : — "(1.) The General Conference shall not revoke, alter, or change our Articles of Religion, nor establish any new standard or rules of doctrine contrary to our present existing and established standards of doctrine. " (2.) They shall not allow of more than one representative for every fourteen members of the Annual Conference, nor allow of a less number than one for every thirty : provided, nevertheless, that when there shall be in any Annual Conference a fraction of two-thirds the number which shall be fixed for the ratio of representation, such An- nual Conference shall be entitled to an additional delegate for such fraction ; and provided, also, that no Conference shall be denied the privilege of two delegates. " (3.) They shall not change or alter any part or rule of our gov- ernment, so as to do away episcopacy, or destroy the plan of our itinerant general superintendency. " (4.) They shall not revoke or change the general rules of the United Societies. " (5.) They shall not do away the privileges of our ministers or preachers, of trial by a committee, and of an appeal : neither shall they do away the privileges of our members, of trial before the soci- ety, or by a committee, and of an appeal. " (6.) They shall not appropriate the produce of the Book-Concern, nor of the Charter Fund, to any purpose other than for the benefit of the travelling, supernumerary, superannuated, and worn-out preach- ers, their wives, widows, and children. Provided, nevertheless, that upon the concurrent recommendation of three-fourths of all the mem- bers of the several Annual Conferences, who shall be present and vote on such recommendation, then a majority of two-thirds of the General Conference succeeding shall suffice to alter any of the above PART III. — INSTITUTIONS OF THE M. E. CHURCH. 293 restrictions, excepting the first article ; and also, whenever such alte- ration or alterations shall have been first recommended by two-thirds of the General Conference, so soon as three-fourths of the members of all the Annual Conferences shall have concurred as aforesaid, such alteration or alterations shall take effect." — " Discipline" pp. 21-24. Here, then, we have the Magna Charta of Methodism in the States. This document indicates the good sense and the diligent forethought of those who framed it. We see from it, that the American Methodists are no revolutionists, and that they desire to escape such a catastrophe. The legislative power is not at liberty to alter anything deemed fundamental. This limits the functions of the assembled ministers within what may be considered a settled and fully recognized constitution. This constitution supposes various points as already settled, to which all agree, and which are not to be disturbed. The doctrines of the Church are among these fundamental principles. Here innovation generally begins, when churches decline. The loss of vital religion always causes the truths of the evangelical system to become tasteless. Or, perhaps, rather, these truths being found antagonistic to a bad life, or a state of spiritual sloth, they are hated on account of the irritation and condemnation which they inflict. But, more than this, when religion is itself given up, in its expe- rience and holiness, these doctrines are not wanted ; no one needs the spirit-stirring instructions of the gospel to teach him to go to sleep, to live in sin. Besides this tendency, there is always found another, namely, that of adventurous speculation. One age is never satisfied with the past. While praising the great men of former times, yet still we generally think we can improve on their intellectual labours, and do something better for ourselves than they could do for us. The "go-ahead" principle, so rife in America, in political and social matters, is not absent from the genius of its theologians. They seem to be much tempted to drive criticism to something beyond its legitimate province, and 294 TOUR IN AMERICA. to push their inquiries into the spiritual world beyond what is revealed. The age and the circumstances of the country- favour this sort of adventurous spirit. It must consequently be considered a wise arrangement, that the great truths of the evangelical system, embodied in their Articles of Reli- gion, are not to be altered, — are not, indeed, to be discussed. Another fundamental point is the episcopacy. This, as we see, is not left an open question. The Church, through all time to come, is to be the Methodist Episcopal Church. This enactment, it must be recollected, was adopted after this form of church government had been upon its trial for several years. It had, consequently, been tested as to its working, in respect to the general ministry, the conserva- tion of order, and the progress of religion ; and in all these particulars had approved itself to general acceptance. It must be remembered also, that the men who sanctioned this principle as final, were the ministers themselves, — the parties most interested in the question ; and their approval is to be taken as complete evidence that, in their judgment, the episcopacy was considered both Scriptural and profita- ble. The overthrow of episcopacy would, consequently, perfectly revolutionize the Church. The " General Rules" of the society are equally held as sacred. These are not to be touched by the legislative body. This is important, and promises to be one means of perpetuating true religion for ages to come. The right of a " fair trial" of the preacher by his peers — which means, that liberty and an impartial treatment shall be secured — is equally inviolate. This point is not to be discussed or altered. Other subjects, which relate to property, are not deemed so sacred. But though left open to revision, this is to be effected in the most cautious manner, and numerous safe- guards are placed around the law. These are very import- ant provisions, and promise to check any rash tendency to innovation, which may from time to time arise. PART III. — INSTITUTIONS OF THE M. E. CHURCH. 295 CHAPTER VIII. Subdivisions continued — The Author's presence at the Pittsburgh General Conference — Impressions — The Bishops — The Ministers — Mode of Debate — Decorum and Order — Questions at Issue — Mode of conducting Appeal Cases — Reflections. In Pittsburgh, in the year 1848, it was the author's good fortune to be present at one of these General Conferences. It was an era in the history of Methodism in the United States. The great division of the Church between the North and the South had taken place four years before, and this had not produced satisfaction and peace. Strong feelings and passions prevailed ; the minds of the ministers were much agitated ; and business of great importance had to engage their attention. In this state of things, it might be expected that the assembly could not preserve its usual order and decorum ; that strong feelings would excite cor- responding language ; and that, consequently, some disor- der would ensue. Nothing of this kind, however, disturbed the proceedings for a moment. As a matter of course, the attention of a stranger would be first directed to the highest officers of the Church — the Bishops. They were all present, five in number — Hedding, Morris, Waugh, Hamline, and Janes. The three first named are men in years, especially Bishop Hedding ; the other two are in the prime of life. They preside in turn, begin- ning with the senior, whose business it is to open the Con- ference. This is usually done by reading a written docu- ment of considerable length, entering upon the general state, prospects, and duties of the Church — somewhat after the manner of the Message of the President of the United States. These grave and dignified officers constitute what might be fitly called " the Bench of Bishops," only they happen to sit in chairs. They are seated by themselves, facing, of 296 TOUR IN AMERICA. course, the assembly, on a platform, elevated, it may be, two feet above the common level of the floor. None share with them the distinction of this position. The secretary and his assistants are placed at a table on the floor of the house ; and no other officers, of any sort, or for any pur- pose, are tolerated in the assembly. The spirit and demeanour of the Bishops could not but excite attention. " How do they conduct themselves in their high office ?" was a natural question. It was soon answered. The bearing of these men of God was perfectly uniform ; there was no deviation. It is difficult to describe it ; just as what is pre-eminently beautiful, excellent, and morally sublime, refuses to submit to the touch of the most perfect artist. It is not enough to say, that it was digni- fied, grave, judicious, impartial, commanding. It was all this; but all this with much more combined. There is always in mental and religious excellence an intangible, an impalpable power, glory, of the soul, which cannot be de- scribed. It is this inward and spiritual force which gives to the several faculties their strength and elevation ; and when these faculties are so balanced as to receive the hid- den impulse equably, and transmit it to practical and useful purposes, then greatness is produced. This was manifest in these eminent officers : and it was. never the writer's good fortune to behold a class of men who gave him such an ideal of what bishops ought to be, as in these American kniofconoi. It is not customary for the bishops to take part in the debates, or in any way to interfere with the proceedings of Conference, except on questions of law and order. Two or three occasions arose in connexion with points of law, when one of the bishops expounded its meaning with great clear- ness and logical precision. The bishops seem to be perfect masters of all constitutional questions, and also of the com- plicated details of business. When they had occasion to interpret any matter of order, being appealed to for that PART III. — INSTITUTIONS OF THE M.E. CHURCH. 297 purpose, all parties invariably acquiesced ; not an objection was ever raised, or any infringement attempted. Some persons may imagine that all this must reduce these officers to mere ciphers. Not so. They possess great influence, and are treated with undeviating reverence and respect. Their moderation, in fact, is their power. By not attempt- ing to do too much, they possess the means of doing every- thing which their station requires from them. The great body of ministers appeared to be, on the whole, very able and good men. There was clearly an en- tire absence of party, and party spirit, and, consequently, of party leaders. No man appeared in this latter charac- ter. There is nothing answering, as far as could be seen, to Tory and Whig, in their church politics. No number of men were seen acting together as the type of any parti- cular class of opinions. They seemed alike desirous of pro- moting the common cause ; and persons who had given their votes together on one question, would give them against each other on the next. This absence of party spirit not only gave the appearance, but the reality, of per- fect independence. No man is bound to the opinions or the interests of another ; and, right or wrong in his judg- ment, certainly every one acts for himself, and gives a sin- cere and conscientious vote. There is no embarrassment in consequence of this state of things. No preacher ever thinks of impugning another's character as something ana- logous to radical, because he gives his suffrages in a parti- cular way. He speaks, votes, stands up, in perfect fearless- ness as to the consequences of the side he takes. There is no low Methodism and high Methodism, no ins and outs, no government and its partisans to keep in office, or to rer move. Methodism is one ; and every person seems intent on giving it his best support. The debates of the Conference, to an Englishman, are somewhat strange till the matter is understood. The fact of the existence of a constitution, designated " The Disci- 13* 298 TOUR IN AMERICA. pline," is always present in the mind of the speaker. A subject is scarcely ever discussed on its merits, but always in reference to this constitution. Every question falls under some law and rule ; and this is invariably the starting-point with the speaker. How the matter squares with the law, and how it may be disposed of constitutionally, are the subjects argued. This, of necessity, produces some amount of stiffness in the style of speaking, and the logical faculty is much more in requisition than that of impassioned ora- tory. These men certainly excel in the use of sound, sober, clear reasoning. This habit produces great self-possession. The calmness of the preachers in their debates is truly astonishing. Nothing hurried, perturbed, indistinct, or confused, ever appears — not even in the youngest. This is a remarkable characteristic of American debate, and is pos- sessed in an eminent degree by these ministers. Self-com- mand seems to produce distinctness of enunciation, so that every one is enabled to say what is in his mind to utter. These debates were invariably conducted, on the part of the speakers, in the spirit and manner of men having the most perfect respect for the understanding and capacity of their auditory. No clap -trap finesse, or attempt to play upon the passions or fancy of others, ever appeared. This, con- sidering that these debates take place in the presence of the public and the public press, is rather singular. But certainly no speech, while I remained, was delivered in reference to popular taste or prejudices, and the people were never mentioned with the idea of invoking their suf- frages ; indeed, for aught which appeared in the proceed- ings, they might not have been present at all. The rules of debate and good order are admirably pre- served. There was not, in my presence, an instance of the least confusion. No man ever interrupted another, except very occasionally, on a point of order, and the interposing party invariably did it in the most courteous manner ; the appeal was always to the chair, no third party ever inter- PART III. — INSTITUTIONS OF THE M. E. CHURCH. 299 fering ; and, when the chair had decided, no one ever dis- puting the award. In listening to these ministers of reli- gion for a fortnight, truth obliges me to say, that I never heard an angry tone, an uncourteous word, the employment of a single sarcasm, the use of any kind of personality, any, the least attempt, to throw odium upon an opponent, or refer to the opinions of others otherwise than with the most perfect respect. If good breeding constitutes a Chris- tian gentleman, then most certainly this assembly of minis- ters may be pronounced most emphatically as Christian gentlemen. We have said that the Conference did not indicate that they were divided into parties, or placed themselves under leaders. This is not intended to insinuate that they have no leading men. That is impossible. The master-spirits in any assembly are soon perceived. They could not be mistaken in the American Conference. It required no long time to find out who possessed the mastery of mind. This, however, in every case was borne with great modesty. No intellectual puppy appeared on the stage. I was surprised at this, because I understood that great numbers of young men attended these Conferences, and that, moreover, these scions of exuberant life often delivered themselves with sufficient confidence. It was said at the Pittsburgh Con- ference, that an unusual number of young men were present. There must be some mistake in this. Because the old men who used to take part in public assemblies are absent, some in the grave, and others from debility, it is often taken for granted that those who take their place must be young men. Ah, how easy it is to lose sight of the progress of time ! At this Conference there was present certainly a considerable number of old men; hardly one belonging to the delegates could be properly considered as young, whilst the greater number were men in or above middle life. Many of these are the princes of the people. It would be easy to mention their names ; there is a temptation to it ; 300 * TOUR IN AMERICA. nothing could give greater pleasure; but delicacy for- bids. The great subjects of debate at this Conference related to the division of the Church into the Methodist Episcopal Church, and the Methodist Episcopal Church, South. This division had taken place four years before ; but various points still remained unsettled. These divided themselves into the constitutional question, as to whether the Confer- ence possessed the power to make such a division at all ; — the boundary-line which had been agreed upon ; — the divi- sion of the property of the Book-Concern ; — and the fra- ternal recognition of the delegate who had been sent from the Southern Church. As the gentleman sent by the South was present, this latter question came on first for settlement. After con- siderable debate, it was unanimously agreed that, till the matters in dispute were finally arranged, he could not be received. The persons who took part in the debate were very firm and decided, but perfectly calm and courteous in their language. And though, for the present, the Confer- ence could not fraternize with their brethren in the south, Dr. Pierce, their representative, was invited to take a seat, as a private gentleman, with them. This he did not deem it right to do ; and when he appeared in Conference at all, he took his place among the strangers. The boundary question, after being sent to a committee, was disposed of by abolishing the settlement altogether ; so that each party is at liberty to make reprisals upon the other, and extend their operations as best they can. This must lead to painful collisions. The ministers upon the borders will be brought into perplexing and miserable dis- putes with each other ; it is to be feared, to the great in- jury of true religion and Christian charity. Both parties seem determined to exert their utmost strength, and are confident of the ultimate triumph of their principles. The Book-Concern dispute was settled, so far as the ac- PART III.— INSTITUTIONS OF THE M. E. CHURCH. 301 tion of the Conference was concerned, by referring the mat- ter to — I think — four gentlemen, not of the Methodist communion, whose arbitration was to be final.* But the constitutional point which had been raised could not be decided.f How was it possible that the supreme legislative body could agree that a former act of the same body was unconstitutional ? The difficulty, however, gave rise to a proposition, on the part of Bishop Hedding, as the organ of his colleagues, to appoint a body of men whose office should be to determine on the constitutional nature of the enactments of the legislature, (that is, the Confer- ence,) with a power to arrest the progress of any such enactments. I confess I was greatly surprised at this pro- posal for the moment ; till, recollecting that a similar prin- ciple prevailed in the civil constitution of the United States, the astonishment ended. This power in the civil state be- longs to the judges of the Supreme Court. The idea seems to ground itself on the sovereignty of the people. The people, universally considered, are supposed, in convention, to have framed and assented to the constitution by which they are governed ; that the legislative bodies are not om- nipotent, but subordinate to the sovereign power, this power being the people ; and that they have not, and can- not have, the right to infringe on the principles and provi- sions of this constitutional system so agreed upon by the sovereign power. But, to secure this provision inviolate, it was found necessary to deposit a power of judging of the acts of the legislature somewhere ; and it was determined [* By a provision for arbitration, should it be found practicable and legal ; if not, the question of arbitration was ordered to be referred to the Annual Con- ferences.] [t It was decided that, in view of the fact that one of the provisions of the Plan of 1844 had been made dependent upon the concurrence of three-fourths of the members of the several Annual Conferences, and had failed to obtain that concurrence ; and in view of the fact, also, that the boundary provisions, which formed a condition of the resolutions adopted, had been violated by the Church, South ; that the General Conference was not bound to observe the provisions of said Plan ; and it was, therefore, declared null and void.] 302 TOUR IN AMERICA. to give it to the highest judicial functionaries in the land ; that is, to the Supreme Court, answering, in some sense, to our Court of Chancery. This power not only ex- ists, but has, on some occasions, been exercised; and acts of the American Parliament have been arrested by this authority. In like manner, constitutional difficulties having sprung up in connexion with the division of the Church, and the legality of the enactment by which it was effected being disputed, the bishops found themselves in a dilemma, and, to prevent future perplexities of the same sort, they pro- posed the above-mentioned court. The subject had not come on for decision when I left, and I believe the pro- position fell to the ground ; probably for the want of a suitable body to whom to refer questions of such grave importance. The General Conference is a court of appeal, as well as a legislative body ; and, of course, numerous appeals come up for adjudication every four years. The practice is, that the appellant, either in his own person, or by the employ- ment of one of the preachers as his counsel, shall have the privilege of an impartial hearing and settlement of his cause. I witnessed two of these appellant causes, conduct- ed, in one case, by the appellant in person, and in the other by one of the ministers. In order clearly to understand this, it is necessary to give the rule on the subject. " In all the above-mentioned cases, it shall be the duty of the se" cretary of the Annual Conference to keep regular minutes of the trial, including all the questions proposed to the witnesses, and their an- swers, together with the crime with which the accused is charged, the specification or specifications, and also preserve all the docu- ments relating to the case ; which minutes and documents only, in case of an appeal from the decision of an Annual Conference, shall be presented to the General Conference, in evidence on the case. And in all cases, when an appeal is made, and admitted by the Ge- neral Conference, the appellant shall either state personally or by his representative (who shall be a member of the Conference) the PART III. — INSTITUTIONS OF THE M. E. CHURCH. 303 grounds of his appeal, showing cause why he appeals, and he shall be allowed to make his defence without interruption. After which the representatives of the Annual Conference, from whose decision the appeal is made, shall be permitted to respond in presence of the appellant, who shall have the privilege of replying to such represen- tatives, which shall close the pleadings on both sides." — "Disci- pline" pp. 73, 74. The first case to be mentioned is that of an unhappy wight, not accused of immorality, but of embroiling the people, and throwing the Church into a state of perfect confusion. This had taken place again and again ; and at length it was found necessary to arrest the evil, and put the culprit upon his trial. He had been found guilty, and sentenced to suspension. This case came on by appeal, and the appellant appeared in person. He had been, among other things, a great mesmerist, and something else which I did not understand, connected with the same sci- ence. It was my fortune to listen to this odd subject for half a day ; that is, during the morning sitting. He con- ducted his defence with great ability, of its kind. We had from him a profusion of wit, raillery, sarcasm ; he dealt heavy blows against his judges ; but all with that sort of sang froid which indicates the absence of malice. It was evident enough, from his defence, that he could not live without throwing around himself the smoke and fire of all manner of confusion and mischief. But, with this tendency, he was not devoid of great acuteness and powers of reason. The Annual Conference to which this scapegrace be- longed, had sent his case to a committee, and on their report had formed their decision. It will be seen by the law, that the secretary of the Annual Conference is required to preserve " the questions and answers." The secretary, in this case, was not a member of the committee ; and in his absence they had appointed one from their own number. The documents were perfectly regular, and had been de- posited with the secretary, but had not been taken down 304 TOUR IN AMERICA. by that officer of the Annual Conference. With great tact, the appellant pleaded this in bar of the decision against him. But he did not rest his cause on technical questions. He went through the whole case, lampooning everybody who came in his way ; and berating the parties among the people with whom he had quarrelled in a most un- merciful manner. All this was done, it must be recollect- ed, in the presence of the public, and the public press. Had it taken place in this kingdom, it would have thrown the whole Church into confusion from one end of the coun- try to the other. Such, however, is the difference of man- ners in the two communities, that nobody seemed to care anything about it. But, during all this outpouring of invective, no human creature ever interrupted this man. And he was not only unassailed, but not the least confusion or disorder took place. The Annual Conference delegated their defence to one of their members, who very ably replied. The contrast was great. The harshest thing he said — what everybody could easily perceive — was, that brother so and so possessed " all manner of sense but common sense." The argument of the appellant on the law question was submitted to the decision of the bishops. They, like impartial judges, gave the prisoner the benefit of a doubt, and pronounced that the omission of the secretary's copy, according to rule, was fatal to the trial ; and that the case must go back to the Annual Conference. The other case was not conducted by the appellant in person, but by Dr. Holdich. The form of the argument, the appeals to law, the technical objections raised, the eloquence and zeal evinced, might have led a spectator to suppose himself listening to an appeal case before the Privy Council, or in the House of Lords. The whole subject was managed with an ability, regularity, and order, both on the part of the counsel and the court, which would have done credit to any tribunal of justice in the world. PART III. — INSTITUTIONS OF THE M. E. CHURCH. 305 These cases impressed me with the idea, that the personal rights and privileges of the Methodist preachers, in the American body, were held as very sacred things. One other matter remains — the privilege of petition. Numerous petitions were presented on various subjects, and great numbers were read at length. The most numerous class related to the division of the Church. Many societies on the borders of the division, which held anti-slavery views, had, by the arrangement, been placed on the South side of the line of demarcation, and handed over to the pro-slavery church. These parties felt greatly aggrieved. They remonstrated not only in energetic terms against the impropriety of being incorporated with the South, but they argued the question in all its breadth ; and some of them with great force and ability. These, and all other petitions of the people, were received with great deference, and many of them read in full, and sent for investigation to their appropriate committees. One word on these committees. They are appointed on the opening of the Conference, and embrace all the subjects which can come before the attention of that body. They sit concurrently, during the whole period of the session, and usually meet in the afternoon of each day. We had Committees on the Episcopacy — on the State of the Church — on the Itinerancy — on the Missions — on the Sunday- Schools — on the Temperance question — on the Boundary subject — on the Book-Concern, &c. ; so that, instead of ap- pointing a committee to consider separate matters of inter- est, everything needing the examination of such a body was sent to one of these standing committees. Such, in substance, was the Pittsburgh Conference. There was much to admire in the parties present, merely considered as men. They exhibited, with religion, the real American character. Individualism is one of its obvious characteristics. But this is not selfish, egotistic, or flippant and vain. It is rather the exhibition of the freedom of the 306 TOUR IN AMERICA. soul, connected with calm judgment and conscious strength. Deliberation in the movements of the mind, in speech, in coming to a decision, is an evident feature of American character. Nobody seems to be in a hurry, to indulge in fidgety feelings, impassioned exclamations, or haste, either in mind or body. This affects the character of their oratory. There is infinitely less of the impassioned, the figurative, the ornate, than among us ; but much more of the force of reason, of natural logic. I was surprised at this, after hearing so much of American violence and passion ; and also considering the exciting atmosphere in which some of them live. There appears, indeed, some difference betwixt the northern and southern men ; but the latter were less fiery than might be expected. In its aggregate character, the Conference may be con- sidered as near what is desirable as it seems possible to carry the order of a large deliberative assembly. All things combined to produce this effect. The dignified impartiality of the presiding bishops on the one hand, and the willing deference paid to them on the other ; the establishment of exact and well-digested rules of debate, not only in written codes, but as carried out in practice, and the scrupulous regard paid to them by all parties ; the avoidance of all irri- tating modes of address in reference to each other, toge- ther with perfect courtesy in language and bearing constantly manifested ; the absence of all party strife, and the appa- rently simple purpose of every one to bring his best facul- ties to support the common cause of Christ ; the religious spirit blending, like heavenly unction and influence, with all things, and impressing them with purity and piety ; — in fine, the fear of God, and the love of each other, all tended to present a picture such as the mind loves to dwell upon, and desires to see prevail everywhere. Were there, then, no blots and drawbacks? no dark shades? I only report what I saw, and the impressions left on my own mind. Illusions are common, sometimes plea- PART III. — INSTITUTIONS OF THE M. E. CHURCH. 307 sant ; but what one sees with one's eyes, can hardly be an illusion. This, then, is the Church of John Wesley. He did not consider Methodism in England, in his days, as a Church, but as Christian societies. He felt himself free to act in respect to America ; and we have a right to infer, that had he entertained any other notion of what a real Christian Church ought to be, he would have attempted its estab- lishment. He gave them the platform of their present episcopacy ; and, consequently, this was his " ideal of a Church." He, indeed, refused to call his superintendents bishops ; but that is of no consequence ; he gave the order and the office, and the name followed as a matter of course. No doubt this agreed with his most cherished and ma- ture opinions. At the period he established this order of things, he could have little temptation to falsify his own convictions by doing a thing repugnant to his judgment. He was nearly at the end of his eventful journey ; the opinions of men could be of little consequence to him, and he heeded them as little ; he expected constantly to be called to give his account, and yield up his spirit to God ; — in this state it is impossible to conceive that he would per- petuate a practical falsehood, and finish his life by estab- lishing a system which he did not fully believe to be ac- cordant with the truth of God and the good of man. But, besides, these convictions were the mature judgment of a minister of religion who possessed all the means of study- ing the whole question, of acquainting himself with the voice of antiquity, of observing the operation of all reli- gious systems, almost in every part of the world ; and the conclusion, we find, was, the establishment of the episcopal order. The progress of the American Church is only the devel- opment of this idea. History must judge whether the an- ticipations of Mr. Wesley have been realized. Time has 308 TOUR IN AMERICA. now been given for this. The trial has been made, and made on a most magnificent scale. Has this trial failed, or has it succeeded ? Facts must answer this question. And, in order to meet this important query as fairly and fully as possible, we now go to the consideration of our next point — the territorial progress of the American Methodist Epis- copal Church. TERRITORIAL PROGRESS OF THE M. E. CHURCH. 309 PART IV. TERRITORIAL PROGRESS OF THE AMERICAN ME- THODIST EPISCOPAL CHURCH. It is desired, in attempting to give some account of the territorial progress of the Methodist Episcopal Church in the United States, to notice such educational and other institutions as are found existing in the several localities hoping by this to attain to a pretty accurate notion of the practical operations of the entire system. And, moreover, as the different States and churches have each something: characteristic and peculiar, it is intended to notice, briefly, these circumstances, by way of enlivening the narrative of details. These details, in themselves, are necessarily dry, as statistics must be ; but we have always something inter- esting, where living men are found, to give vivacity to sub- jects in themselves tedious and barren. It is hardly necessary to say, that the investigation has been found beset with difficulties. It has, indeed, cost much trouble and research ; and even, after all, exactness and perfect accuracy cannot be claimed for these state- ments. All that can be hoped — all which is possible un- der the circumstances — is, to give a general outline of a great work. It would require an American, with much leisure, great experience, and a command of documents, to do justice to such a subject. And it is a subject well worthy of the attention of some master-mind in the United States. The authorities possessed have been consulted with much attention ; and the whole ground has been carefully examined and gone over, so far as these guides could lead the way. By the kindness of my friends in the States, I have been put into possession of most valuable historical 310 TOUR IN AMERICA. — FART IV. documents ; and with more time and leisure, a much better digest and analysis would have been possible. To secure order and precision, as well as to render our survey intelligible, it is proposed to take certain lines of country separately, making the Annual Conferences the basis of our statistical calculations. By this it is hoped, that something clear and tangible may be kept before the mind of the reader ; whereas, if we allowed ourselves to wander at large on a space so great as the American con- tinent, we must soon find ourselves lost in a perfect laby- rinth. Adopting this principle, w r e propose to examine the state of Methodism. 1. On the Atlantic seaboard. 2. By the line of the Hudson and the Lakes. 3. Along the Ohio and the adjoining country. 4. The Mississippi. I— THE ATLANTIC CONFERENCES. It seems natural that we should begin our survey where population had its commencement. The Atlantic States em- brace a line of seacoast extending eighteen hundred miles from north to south, and stretch into the interior for a dis- tance constantly varying, but in some places amounting to between three and four hundred miles. These States are filled with great cities ; possess the most magnificent bays and harbours in the world ; a considerable amount of manu- facturing industry, in various branches ; a great and flour- ishing commerce, and the country parts are occupied by beautiful villages and a prosperous agriculture. The people of these States, being the descendants of the original set- tlers, constitute the elite classes of society ; and the living mind of these people has always predominated. I. We begin our survey at the northern point of the Atlantic line — the Maine Conference. In connexion with this division we find six districts, namely, Portland, Gardiner ; Readjield, Bangor, Thomaston> and Bucksport. One hun- TERRITORIAL PROGRESS OF THE M. E. CHURCH. 311 dred and sixty-four circuits and stations ; one hundred and sixty-one ministers, with one hundred and sixty-seven local preachers ; and twenty thousand two hundred and eighty- one church -members. Methodism was introduced into Maine in 1*793, by the indefatigable Jesse Lee. " A few weeks after the adjournment of Conference, he entered upon what, in those days, was a journey of considerable magnitude. Leaving Lynn, he passed through Newburyport into New-Hamp- shire, Greenland, and Portsmouth, preaching as he went, and thence, on the 16th of September, entered Maine, and, at a little village called Saco, on the same night preached in a private house, crowded with attentive hearers, on Acts xiii. 41. As the most of his time, until the Conference of 1794, was employed in the formation of a circuit in Maine, we may very properly give a brief narrative of his labours, abridged from his History of the Methodists. From Saco, he went to Castine, at the mouth of the Penobscot River ; thence along the river to the upper settlements near Old Town, and returned by the way of Twenty-Five Mile Sand to Kennebeck Eiver ; thence up to Sandy River, and back to Hallowell, and through to Portland. ' Although I was a perfect stranger, and had to make my own appointments, I preached almost every day, and had crowded assemblies to hear. After viewing the country, I thought the most proper place to form a circuit would be on the west side of the Kennebeck.' Here the first circuit in Maine was formed, and it is known in the Minutes of the period as Readfield. It was nearly two hundred miles beyond the circuits already formed in New-England. It extended from Hallow- ell to Sandy River. It Avas not long after the formation of this cir- cuit, and the establishment of regular preaching, before God merci- fully vouchsafed his blessing to those who went forth sowing precious seed. Sinners were converted, and sought church-fellowship with those from whom they had received the ' good word of God.' Socie- ties were soon formed, churches were erected, and Methodism started out upon a wider career of usefulness, with stirring zeal and vigorous hope." — Dr. Lee's "Life and Times of the Rev. Jesse Lee." The progress made from the above date will be seen to be very great, if the whole case is considered. It must be kept in mind, that the church -members mentioned are persons meeting in class, communicants ; and do not include the congregations attending the ministry of the word who 312 TOUR IN AMERICA. — PART IV. are not members, nor the children of either of these classes. Judging from the common rules of proportion betwixt communicants and hearers in both countries, it seems pro- bable, that the number of persons and families which are found under the ministry and influence of the Methodist Church in this region, will amount to four or five times the numbers enumerated above. On this principle, which, it must be admitted, is a perfectly sound one, the souls under the religious care of the Maine Conference will amount to some- thing like one hundred thousand. II. Adjoining Maine we find the State of New-Hamp- shire ; and the Methodist Church has established one of its local centres in this place, bearing the name of the State. The New-Hampshire Conference, like the territory itself, does not appear to be large, compared with many of the other conferences ; and yet it is evident, from the extent and numbers of the Church, that successes much the same as in other places have crowned the efforts of the servants of God. We have three districts ; namely, Dover, Concord, and Haverhill. Seventy-seven circuits and stations ; eighty-two ministers, with sixty-four local preachers ; and ten thousand three hundred and eighty-four church-members. We have the following extra appointments : — Osmon C. Baker, Professor in the Biblical Institute; Richard S. Rust, Principal of the New-Hampshire Conference Semi- nary ; William D. Cass, Agent for the New-Hampshire Conference. The work in New-Hampshire began about 1 794 ; the pioneer evangelist being Mr. Hill, who seems to have had little success in the beginning. But the mission soon fell under the care of Mr. Lee, he being appointed presiding elder for several districts of country, of which this was one; and progress was soon manifested. TERRITORIAL PROGRESS OF THE M. E. CHURCH. 313 III. Descending the coast-line from this northern point, we arrive at the state of Massachusetts ; and here we find a Conference, bearing the name of the New-England Con- ference. This Conference embraces such places as Bos- ton, Cambridge, Newbury port, (the burying-place of George Whitefield,) Lowell, the famous cotton-manufacturing Manchester of America, Worcester, Springfield, together with their adjacent towns and villages. We have here three districts; namely, Boston, Worcester, and Spring- field ; one hundred and twenty-one stations and circuits ; one hundred and eight regular ministers, with seventy-six local preachers ; and thirteen thousand three hundred and eighty-one church-members. This portion of the country may be considered as the cradle of the American system. Here the pilgrim fathers landed ; here, in the midst of the wilds and tempests of nature, and the wars of the Indians, these brave spirits cherished the love of freedom, for which they had aban- doned their native land ; here, left very much to themselves by the mother country, the people fostered the habits of self-government, elected their own council, officers, and even governors ; and here, in the performance of the func- tions of a tiny, but actually independent, society, were laid the foundations of the existing state of things ; here the stern Puritanism, founded partly on the rigorous dogmas of a Calvinistic creed, and partly on the jus-divinum prin- ciple of Church order and government, which characterized the rigid opinions of early times, took entire possession of the hearts of the people ; here, strange to say, an ecclesi- astical power, as exclusive, as undivided, as repulsive even as Popery itself, became the established and dominant reli- gion ; here, on this spot, the obtrusive Quakers and Bap- tists, when they dared to adventure, and all others not of the church of the prevailing sect, were expelled ; here a number of poor old, and some young, women were merci- lesslv put to death for witchcraft ; and here the Mathers 14 / 314 TOUR IN AMERICA. — PART IV. and such men preached, ruled, put up and put down at their pleasure ; — blessed, cursed, and did many other things which look very strange to us in these days. But though homogeneous and awfully stern, this was a great religion. The faith of the men was vividly realizing. The nearness and majesty in which they beheld God, in- spired them with inflexible principles ; their habit of con- necting the divine decrees and providence with all the events of life, led to the idea that, in all things, they were the agents of the sovereign will of Deity ; and their admis- sion of, their belief in, the supreme and paramount import- ance of pure, spiritual religion, as they understood it, caused them to expel from their society " all the sons of Belial," and, indeed, every opinion and sentiment which they con- sidered heretical and injurious. Animated by this strong belief in their call and destination, connected, moreover, with the bitter persecutions they had endured in their own country ; — their banishment for conscience' sake ; the sufferings and hardships they had passed through ; the labours, privations, and terrors of the wilderness, and the solitude in which they lived ; their habitual converse with the invisible and spiritual world ; — these men were pre- pared to become the pioneers of a great religious and social creation. The love of freedom of these heroic Christians lived through all their generations, down to the period of Inde- pendence. It is a strange coincidence that the animus, the spirit, of real Americanism, should have its root and its final development, its catastrophe, on the same spot. It was these very Bostonians, the descendants of the pilgrim fathers, and many of them bearing their names, who first resisted " taxation without representation ;" who opposed the coercive power of the mother country, and threw the tea into the sea ; it was these very people who raised the shout of liberty, proclaimed the claim of independence, marshalled themselves into military bands, and fought the TERRITORIAL PROGRESS OF THE M. E. CHURCH. 315 first battle — now commemorated by the "Bunker-Hill" monument. They were what the Americans call " strong men," these. And let the pseudo-philosophers of the age know, that it was the religious sentiment which produced this power, and led to these results. Let the Americans themselves remember the fact, keep it as a sacred truth, treasure it up as an heir-loom in their houses, and teach it to their children, that it was the Christian religion, em- braced and held by men now deemed fanatics, which laid the foundations of their freedom, their social happiness, their political greatness, their advancement in all the bless- ings of civilization ; and that the moment they either neg- lect or renounce this religion of the Bible, then, that mo- ment, they lay sacrilegious hands on the foundation which supports the entire fabric of their power. We see, from the above statement, that Methodism has taken considerable hold of this interesting population. It can, however, be a matter of no surprise that, at its com- mencement, it was looked upon with some amount of jealousy, and that the first evangelists met with much annoyance and opposition. The details are curious and interesting, especially so far as they relate to the labours of one man of eminent piety, originality, simple but effective eloquence and glowing zeal. We refer again to Jesse Lee.* This eminent Christian minister seems to have been won- derfully fitted for the work assigned him by the great Head of the Church, and he made full proof of his minis- try. How changed is the scene now, as compared with the beginning of the work of evangelization by this zealous champion of the truth ! There is some resemblance between the character and history of Jesse Lee and John Nelson. Soon after his conversion, and while his heart was glowing with love, the * See his " Life," by his nephew, the Rev. Dr. Lee. See also Bangs's " History," Asbury's " Journal," and Stevens's " Memorial of the Introduc- tion of Methodism into the Eastern States." 316 TOUR IN AMERICA. — PART IV. revolutionary war then raging, he was balloted for the militia. He continued four months in the array, bearing witness for his divine Master. " ' Many of them,' he says, ' on one occasion were very solemn, and some of them wept freely under the preaching of the word. I was happy in God, and thankful to him for the privilege of warning the wicked once more. It was a great cross for me to go forward in matters of so much importance, where there were few to encourage, and many to oppose ; but I knew that I had to give account to God for my conduct in the world. I felt the responsibility laid upon me, and was resolved to open my mouth for God. I often thought I had more cause to praise and adore him for his goodness than any other person. For some weeks I hardly ever prayed in public, or preached, or reproved a sinner, without seeing some good effects produced by my labours.' " — Stevens's " Memorials of Methodism" pp. 22-25. Such, in part, was the training, and such the character, of Jesse Lee, the founder of Methodism in the New-England States. It may be proper at this point to remark, that other moral agencies besides the existence of church organiza- tions will often be found to exist within the limits of these local conferences. We notice one or two in connexion with the New-England Conference. Besides a Book-Depot found at Boston, a branch of the general Book- Concern, we find amongst other things a local newspaper conducted at this place, called Zion's Herald, and possessing great influence. This paper has been established for a number of years ; and, amongst other services for religion and humanity, it has been probably the most powerful instrument in the States, amongst the Me- thodists, in favour of the abolition of slavery. It opened its columns for the discussion of this great question some dozen or more years ago, and continues the discussion to the present time. It was this paper which first broke ground on this question amongst our people; thus com- mencing, in the old locality, a new movement in favour of TERRITORIAL PROGRESS OF THE M. E. CHURCH. 317 freedom, — but on this occasion that of the African race. Boston in this stands out in honourable distinction, as true to her original spirit, her traditions, her love of liberty. To us it seems a strange thing that any difficulty should be connected with a question of this sort. But the matter of fact is, that the opening of this debate was like the fall of some mighty Alpine avalanche into the peaceful regions below. Without harshness, or any design to impute im- proper motives to any parties, it will be admitted by all who are tolerably acquainted with the facts of the case,, that the Methodist Church feared the agitation of the ques- tion of slavery ; and endeavoured, as much and as long as possible, to stave off the subject for the sake of peace. In consequence of this state of things, it became a sort of heroic, not to say desperate, adventure for the Herald to take up the cause. It did so, however, not in the one- sided manner of the public press in general, but admitted both sides of the argument, and left the public to judge. That the impression was deep, and the sentiment against slavery powerfully excited, we have sufficient proof in the fact, that this circumstance, this very discussion in the Herald, led to a painful secession, and the establishment of a new community of Methodists. These parties, think- ing that the spirit and action of the Methodist Episcopal Church were not sufficiently decided against slavery, after miserable altercations on both sides, and debates upon the subject, ultimately left the body, and formed themselves into what they call the Wesleyan Methodist Church ; the main distinction of this new organization being the non- admission of slaveholders into the Christian fellowship.* A. history of this affair is not intended ; and the subject is introduced merely to give some notion to the English reader of the nature and the power of these local papers. Society is greatly influenced, and it is to be hoped, on the * Those who wish to see a more detailed account of these matters, may find information in Matlack's " Life of the Rev. Orange Scott." 318 TOUR IN AMERICA.— PART IV. whole, greatly enlightened and benefited, by this mode of producing an impression. It must be clear to every intel- ligent and thoughtful person, that in such a community as that of the New-England States, it is impossible for any body of Christians to hold up their heads, to make any progress, to possess any standing at all, unless they con- nect literature with religion. Every human creature above eight years of age, whether man, woman, or child, will be found reading some daily newspaper. Whether this is a good, a wholesome state of things, may be a question of difficult solution. But, right or wrong, it is a fact, a habit. With this condition of society to deal with, it became ob- vious to the leaders of the respective religious bodies, that they must accommodate themselves to the public taste, or otherwise abandon the ground altogether to a secular, po- litical, and occasionally infidel, press. Necessity originally led to this mode of influence ; and certainly this Zion's Herald has done its work on the point in question with great ability and force ; and in other labours has, no doubt, performed its share of duty in sustaining and carrying out the designs of the Church. IV. Immediately contiguous to the New-England is the Providence Conference. Providence being the capital of the State of Rhode Island, of course the territory within the limits of this conference will include that locality. The religious history of this State is exceedingly interesting. It was settled very early, chiefly by the wisdom and perse- verance of Roger Williams, about the most remarkable man of his age. Mr. Williams was a minister of religion, and first went to the Plantation of Massachusetts in that capa- city ; but embracing the notions of the Baptists, he was harshly banished from his adopted home, and, to hide him- self from his persecutors, and perhaps to save his life, he was obliged to throw himself amongst the Indians. These poor savages, more merciful than his countrymen and fellow- TERRITORIAL PROGRESS OF THE M. E. CHURCH. 319 Christians, admitted him to their settlements, and protected him for a length of time. He became a great favourite, (as who does not, who treats the sons of the forest with kindness ?) and gained great ascendency over them. This influence he was called upon to use on many occasions afterwards for the security of those very men who had driven him from their society. Whether from the effects of persecution, or from the strength of his own genius, does not appear ; but Roger Williams attained to a just perception of the appa- rently difficult question of religious liberty. He is nearly the first, if not the very first, man in modern times who acquired this knowledge. He boldly taught, as well as firmly held, in all vicissitudes of fortune, the precious truth he had attained. But the notions of the times regarding the legitimate connexion betwixt spiritual and secular things — if the reader please, betwixt Church and State — are shown in his case ; for this Baptist pastor became one of the first governors of the community he had been the instrument of establishing. (See Bancroft's " History of the United States") In connexion with the Providence Conference we find three districts ; namely, New-Bedford, New-London, and Sandwich ; one hundred and twelve stations and cir- cuits ; one hundred and twelve ministers, with seventy-two local preachers, and fourteen thousand four hundred and twenty-nine church-members. Here we find the following extra appointment : — Samuel C. Brown, teacher in Providence Conference Academy. So it seems this conference also possesses the patronage of an academy, and is promoting the intellectual advancement of their people. V. By reason of its extent, its population, and its wealth, New- York is called the " Empire State." It is worthy of this name. Besides all its other advantages already re- ferred to, — its central position, and easy means of commu- 320 TOUR IN AMERICA. — PART IV. nication to every part of the continent, and the great extent of country lying in its rear, and to be reached chiefly through its port, for all commercial purposes, must unite to make this city the great emporium — in fact, the metropolis — of the United States. These great centres of life, wherever found, have not only an important local position, but an equally important relative destiny. They form the great moving power in the societies of men ; they constitute the reservoirs whence the waters flow, to irrigate, with good or evil sentiments and influences, the whole surrounding country. This city must, in the nature of things, give a mighty impulse to all politi- cal, social, intellectual, and religious interests existing on the whole of the continent. This is the natural result of its population and wealth. Men of certain classes, either in pride or in ignorance, will discard everything as alien not found in their own department ; but all this is a vain imagination. Political speculators may repudiate the idea of religion having anything to do with politics ; and, vice versa, religious men may repudiate the notion of what is purely spiritual being brought in any way into contact with the secular. All this is pure fiction. The world is made up of two great elements, the secular and the spiritual ; they cannot he separated ; they lie by the side of each other ; it is impossible that either should exist in a healthy state in isolation ; action and re-action must be constantly going on ; — and, as in nature, the only safety for society is found in the equitable balance of the two powers. On this principle it follows, that the existence of large cities presents a favourable sphere for religion ; inasmuch as they constitute an ample theatre for its development, and also furnish the means of its extension. The state of Methodism in New- York must, on these grounds, not only be important in itself, but deeply affect its condition in other places. For these reasons it will be interesting to give the best TERRITORIAL PROGRESS OF THE M. E. CHURCH. 321 view in our power of the progress of the Methodist Church in the city itself. It may be proper to say, that Brooklyn is to New- York what Southwark is to London ; or, more properly, what Birkenhead is to Liverpool, because the channel is too broad to be crossed by a bridge. In the two places we find no fewer than thirty-six churches, thirty- seven ministers, and eleven thousand tAvo hundred and seventy-four church-members. But if our former principle of calculation is adhered to, namely, that the congregations and children belonging to these several churches amount to something like four or five times the number of communi- cants ; then it will appear, that fifty thousand of the popu- lation is under the influence of the Methodist Episcopal Church. Having given the statistics of the city separately, it is now proper to add the numbers furnished by the confer- ence. This will include the city. We find eight districts ; namely, New- York, Long Island, New-Haven, Hartford, Poughkeepsie, Rhinebeck, Delaware, Newburgh : two hundred and fifty-five stations and circuits ; two hundred and fifty-four ministers, with two hundred and twenty local preachers; and forty-six thousand nine hundred and seven church-members, three hundred and seventy-nine being people of colour. But, in addition to these general items, we find the fol- lowing : — Editor of the Quarterly Review and Books of the General Catalogue, George ^eck ; Assistant Editor of the Christian Advocate, George Coles. These entries are connected with the literary labours of the body at New- York. Another most interesting minute is found in connexion with this conference. We find the Middletown Wesleyan University, with Stephen Olin, President ; Joseph Holdich, Professor ; John H. Lindsey, Tutor. The " Repository of Useful Knowledge" adds the following particulars respect- ing this collegiate institution; — Founded in 1831; in- 14* 322 TOUR IN AMERICA. — PART IV. structers, 7; alumni, 283; ministers, 104; students, 125; volumes in the library, 12,000. The estimable President of this University, Dr. Olin, is not unknown in this country, and, being known, is highly esteemed. Like many of his countrymen, he has been a great traveller, and given to the reading world the results of his investigations on the most interesting and historically sacred countries of our globe. And by general consent it is allowed, that his " Travels " rank amongst the most instructive and edifying books of the age ; and that his Biblical criticisms, derived from a careful examination of the topography of Jerusalem and the Holy Land, are invaluable to the student of the Bible. But as a theologian and preacher, Dr. Olin is equally esteemed ; and must be classed not only amongst the brightest lights of his own body, but as one of the men of his country, and, indeed, of the age. Dr. Holdich is an Englishman, and is full of tender recol- lections of the scenes of his boyhood, and of his own and " his father's friends." His attainments, his urbanity, and, moreover, his business capacity, unite to make him a most valuable man. It was my happiness to see a good deal of this gentleman ; and everything tended to produce in me a perfect admiration of his talents and character. With such leaders as these, it is fair to suppose that the youth educated at this University are fully fitted to take a useful and honourable post in society. We have one other item in, this New- York Conference worth noticing : — State-prison at Wethers field, Nathaniel Kellogg, Chaplain. So it seems the State [Connecticut] is not indisposed to intrust the care and instruction of its prisoners to a Me- thodist minister. But it may be imagined by some, that prisoners do not excite much concern amongst the states- men and citizens of the New- World. This is a perfect mistake. If any one thing more than another engages the attention and interests the philanthropy of the Americans, TERRITORIAL PROGRESS OF THE M. E. CHURCH. 323 it is the reformation of prisoners. They speculate on this point of progress and government with their accus- tomed fearlessness and energy. It is not our business to pass any opinion on their silent system, their solitary con- finement, and other modes of reformation or punishment ; with but this one exception, — namely, that there can be nothing on this side the bottomless pit more horrible, more repugnant to human nature, or more completely calculated to break the heart and crush the powers of the poor wretch, who unfortunately gets immured in one of these prison- houses, than these appliances. They are no half-measure men, these Americans. If they punish, they do punish with a vengeance ; if they set about the task of reformation, they do not for a moment hesitate about the feelings, the tastes, the likings and dislikings of the miserable culprit, or the sentimentalism of the public. They strip him, flay him, place him on a Procrustes's bed, and crack every bone in his body. Lovers of liberty as they are, they reduce the souls of these poor prisoners to a state of perfect passive existence. The system is found effective enough ; for many of the inmates are driven mad ; and the most fortunate amongst them lose the proper, the manly tone of their faculties ; . and, crushed beneath the iron despotism of their discipline, they appear as mental automata, moving just as they are moved. Those who wish to gain an idea of the inexorable justice of Tartarus, where, it may be, the lost soul is left no choice, but bends to the ever-varying torments of his condition, in passive pain and hopeless misery ; — those who desire to gain an idea of this, had better go to one of these State-prisons. We cannot but think this mode of reformation is some- what opposed to American ideas and opinions. As a general principle and rule, they seem to seek the correction of the evils of human nature and of society by ameliora- tions, by developments, by advancement ; — but here all this is reversed. 324 TOUR IN AMERICA.— PART IV. It is, indeed, a most effective way of dealing with a diseased man, at once to kill him. This is a certain remedy in his case. When buried, he can no longer need the nurse's assiduity, or be a medium of contagion. But this is not the American way in general. They set about the cure, not by annihilation, but by calling forth the remaining powers of life. They unfold, expand, invigorate, all the functions of humanity. They endeavour to improve and exalt every person, and, indeed, the whole of society, by calling forth the latent energies, the hidden virtues, the mental and moral power, of every living creature. Their prison-system is the contrast of all this. As far as the dis- cipline goes, it is perfectly crushing ; it is an attempt to hill the seeds of vice, to put the evil propensities to death. We have no faith in the scheme. It may be possible to change, to modify, to turn and twist the evil nature of man this way and that ; but it is never changed but by divine truth and grace. Indeed, we generally find, as in the case of this Wethersfield, that some religious teacher is con- nected with these prisons ; and a plentiful supply of Bibles is furnished. No doubt good is done ; there is something alleviating in this arrangement. But it is to be feared, that, in most cases, the religion of the prison will, in the mind of the poor sufferer, be connected with the system itself. It does not come to him as daylight to his dungeon, — as a salvation, — a redemption, — an emancipation, — but as a branch of the discipline under which he groans. We can- not have much confidence in the efficacy of religious appli- ances, when attached to so horrible a scheme as the silent and solitary systems of the American prison-house.* VI. The New-Jersey State joins that of New- York, and we find a local conference bearing this name. The New- Jersey Conference contains six districts ; namely, New- [* Dr. Dixon's acquaintance with the American prison-system seems to be purely theoretical.] TERRITORIAL PROGRESS OF THE M. E. CHURCH. 325 ark, Paterson, Railway, Trenton, Burlington, and Camden : one hundred and fourteen stations and circuits; one hundred and fifty-five ministers, with one hundred and ninety-four local preachers ; and twenty-nine thousand five hundred and ninety-two church-members. VII. Our progress towards the south now leads us to Philadelphia. This city and State are celebrated as having descended from the Quaker colony of William Penn. Its history is profoundly interesting. Like the establish- ments of the pilgrim fathers in the New-England States, this also originated in religion. But the type was very different, the Quaker regime being mild and liberal. Wil- liam Penn himself was, no doubt, one of the most eminent Christians of his day, or, indeed, of any day ; his com- panions and followers, many of them at least, partook of his own spirit ; and, as a consequence, the Christian element became the predominant one in the settlement of the colony. But the religious power brought to bear on the interests of the settlement was only spiritual, and, consequently, perfectly mild and gentle. The law of love was that which was relied upon by this eminent man, both in the manage- ment of the affairs of the infant State, and in his dealings with the Indians. The site of the settlement was a subject of treaty and purchase, not of robbery ; the rights of the natives of the forest were recognized, as well as those of the white man ; equity and truth towards the children of the soil were deemed as binding as the exercise of the same virtues in all other relations ; and, moreover, the law of God, whether found in the written word or in the living soul, was fully believed in as obligatory in matters of social life. The purchase of the land, the treaty with the Indians, the re- cognition of the principle of religious liberty, government without coercion, and a perfect confraternity of rights and interests, were remarkable developments for the times. 326 TOUR IN AMERICA. — PART IV. happy world, if Quaker sentiments could find a conge- nial existence ! (See Clarkson's "Life of William Penn," and Bancroft's "History") This happy beginning soon became beclouded. William Penn's own life was embittered, towards its close, with in- finite trouble and vexation. His beautiful fabric broke down beneath the pressure of man's sins and follies ; and the Quaker colony of Philadelphia stood in as much need of the awakening and revivifying influence of Methodism, in the early days of its enterprise in America, as other places. Quaker neatness and love of order are, however, still impressed on what is visible in the city ; and this is nearly all of Quakerism which remains. It was at this place that Francis Asbury landed on the 27th day of October, 1771 : a memorable day this, both for himself and America. His words on the occasion are simple and touching : — " "When I came near the Ame- rican shore, my very heart melted within me, to think from whence I came, where I was going, and what I was going about. But I felt my mind open to the people, and my tongue loosed to speak. I feel that God is here ; and find plenty of all we need." Poor missionary ! he did not "need" much, if he possessed all he desired. He tells us just before, when relating his journey and voyage : "When 1 came to Bristol, I had not one penny of money ; but the Lord soon opened the hearts of friends, who supplied me with clothes, and £10." Thus were our predecessors equipped for their work. We suppose his passage had been paid, or gratuitously furnished by some kind-hearted captain ; but as to himself, we see that his wardrobe and pocket were both alike empty. It required some faith in those days to do the work of the Lord. This blessed man does not seem in the least to falter or shrink at the" idea of landing in America without a penny in his pocket, with- out any treasury to draw upon at home ; — or to have enter- TERRITORIAL PROGRESS OF THE M. E. CHURCH. 327 tained the least conception how his supplies were to be furnished in a strange land, and amongst a strange people. But he drew on a Bank which never fails to honour those who rely upon its resources. This has been a much-favoured city and State with re- spect to the progress of Methodism. We find in union with this conference six districts ; namely, Philadelphia, South Philadelphia, Reading, Wilmington, Easton, and Snow-Hill : one hundred and thirteen stations and circuits ; one hundred and fifty-six ministers, together with one hun- dred and fifty-eight local preachers ; and forty-two thousand two hundred and eighty-nine church-members : ten thousand and forty-two of the above number are coloured people. Pennsylvania is not now a slave State. In 1840, only sixty-four remained in bondage ; and it is to be presumed, that by this time the evil has become entirely extinct. From this it will follow, that the coloured people above mentioned are free. It may be as well to explain here, that those States which have adopted the principle of abolition, have never done it as an instantaneous emancipation. The law has always made provision for a prospective and gradual ex- tinction of slavery, by enacting that all children, born after a certain date, should be free ; and in some cases, also, in passing measures to enable masters to manumit their slaves by their own free choice ; or to allow the poor creatures to work out or purchase their freedom. In consequence of these prospective enactments, it sometimes happens, as in the above instance, that a State will have a few old slaves within its bosom, for many years after the act of emancipation has been passed. We believe, in general, these poor relics of a discarded system are looked upon with great kindness, and are sufficiently provided for in their old age. VIII. We now come to a real slave-holding State, Mary- 328 TOUR IN AMERICA.— PART IV. land, containing the Baltimore Conference. It is thought by some, having, by the by, good means of information, that Methodism has made greater progress, and holds a more commanding position, in the city of Baltimore, than in any other part of the United States. Certainly, external appearances favour the opinion, that it has taken hold of large masses of the population, and occupies a very influ- ential place in the midst of the religious denominations of the city. Whether it is the predominant interest, it is not for me to say ; but this is the opinion of some of the esti- mable ministers and people of the place. If spacious and beautiful churches, large and most respectable congrega- tions, Christian and kind-hearted families, — connected with all the marks and evidences of intelligent piety, — are to be taken as proofs of progress, then, most assuredly, Balti- more must be considered as ranking very high in a religious point of view. The Baltimore Conference numbers eight districts; namely, Baltimore, North Baltimore, Potomac, Rocking- ham, Winchester, Carlisle, Huntingdon, Northumberland : one hundred and forty-three stations and circuits, two hun- dred and twenty-eight ministers, with two hundred and eighty local preachers ; and fifty-two thousand three hun- dred and thirty-eight church-members : sixteen thousand three hundred and eighty-seven of these are people of colour, many of them, no doubt, slaves. Dickinson College is located at Carlisle, within the limits of this conference. Of this institution the Repository states that it was established in 1*783: instructers, 10; alumni, 531 ; students, 108; volumes in the library, 12,000. The late amiable, pious, and talented Dr. Emory was, at the period of his death, in May, 1848, the president of this college. Dr. Emory was the son of Bishop Emory, who is remembered in this country with admiration on account of his eminent character and talents. Dr. M'Clintock, pro- fessor up to the last General Conference, is a gentleman TERRITORIAL PROGRESS OF THE M. E. CHURCH. 329 of high reputa^ir-;. as a scholar and minister, and was ap- pointed by the above-mentioned body as the Editor of the Quarterly Review. From the date of its institution, it will be perceived that this college was not originally founded by the Methodist Church, but by some other parties ; who, failing to realize the objects designed, turned it over to its present occupants. This has been the case with several others. We hope the fact does not indicate any decay of zeal in the case of other friends and patrons of education ; but certainly it does indicate the growing power and influ- ence of Methodism in this department. But the metropolis of America, the city of Washington, is within the limits of this conference. Under the head Wesley Chapel, we have the following appointment : Henry Slicer. This is all which is said. Now, no one would know anything remarkable about Henry Slicer by this sim- ple insertion of his name, in connexion with Wesley Chapel. The matter of fact is, that this gentleman is one of the chaplains of Congress, and is called, in the course of his duty, every Sunday to preach Christianity to the President of the United States, and to many of the senators and mem- bers of Congress. In this country the idea of a court chaplain, or a preacher to the House of Lords or Commons, is connected in- stinctively with the notions of a great ecclesiastical digni- tary, or a divine of the first pink of religious fashion. Probably some such notion may fill the reader's mind re- specting this chaplain to the Congress. Nothing would be more fallacious or untrue than such a fancy. I found Mr. Slicer one of the plainest Methodist preachers I saw in America. I do not mean vulgar ; but in his garb, manners, bearing, and entire demeanour, he retains all the charac- teristics of the simple, pious, unsophisticated Methodist minister. So, at any rate, I have seen one clergyman who has lived long in the precincts of a court, who has held constant intercourse with the chiefs and great men of the 330 TOUR IN AMERICA. — PART IV. nation, and yet who still remains uncorrupt. By the kind- ness of our good friend, I enjoyed many advantages in my visit to Washington, which could not have been attained in so easy a manner without his intervention. But my object in this part of our investigation being merely to trace out the position and influence of Method- ism, I must refer the reader to another part of the narra- tive for information on these matters. I was informed that several Methodists were members of Congress ; and, as we have seen, had the pleasure of hearing one, a local preacher, of the name of Hilliard, speak in the House of Representatives. He appeared a man of good talents, practical mind, an agreeable address, and possessing very respectable elocution. This good friend, I understood, often took the pulpit in one of the churches at Washington ; so that he was not a preacher at home, and a silent Chris- tian at the seat of government ; but fearlessly maintained his religious character and vocation everywhere. The fact is, however, that he suffered nothing from this. A man is not sent to Coventry for being a Methodist, nor loses rank, or anything else, by maintaining his principles. Freedom in religion is no fiction in the States. Men are estimated by their character, their talents, their capacity to serve the pub- lic ; and not by their creed, or by denominational distinctions. Two or three facts, having a religious bearing, connected with the State of Maryland, are worth mentioning. The first is, that Lord Baltimore, as we have seen, from whom the city is named, was a Roman Catholic, a convert from Protestantism, and an eminent statesman, of the age of Charles II. Romanist though he became, yet he retained his attachment to religious liberty ; and notwithstanding many persons of his own creed constituted the first bodies of settlers, yet the stringent doctrines of Popish intolerance were never countenanced. In point of fact, Popish Mary- land was the first colony in America where a system of practical toleration and religious freedom obtained a foot- TERRITORIAL PROGRESS OF THE M. E. CHURCH. 331 ing. (See Bancroft.) As might be expected, the Popish Church is still in great power in Baltimore. A second fact is, that though Maryland is a slave State, yet slavery itself is decreasing. In 1*790, the number of slaves amounted to 103,036 ; and in 1840, to only 89,737. The same dates give for the white population, in 1790, 319,728 ; and in 1840, 1,239,797. From some causes, of which I confess myself to be ignorant, it is very evident that slavery, in this State, is not favoured by the general population. A process of extinction is evidently going on. The balance on the side of the white and free population is clearly increasing rapidly ; whilst, instead of the slave por- tion augmenting in a proportionate ratio, we find that their numbers are rapidly decreasing. It is cheering to see that in a short period, by the natural process of things, the evil must end itself. I, indeed, found many estimable men, no friends to slavery, looking forward to this with some degree of confidence, as a good which they ardently anticipated. It was thought by these gentlemen, that such States as Mary- land, having ceased to cherish and uphold slavery, in fact, would soon be led to renounce it by a legislative enactment. Well or ill founded, it is the opinion of these parties, that two or three of the other States would have done so before this, had it not been for abolitionist agitations. It is certain that, of all men in the world, Americans are the least likely to yield to an external pressure ; and it is very possible that the majority, in particular States, may have been roused to a reaction by what they consider the unauthorized and im- pertinent interference of other people with their affairs. In this I am not delivering opinions of my own ; I am merely stating an alleged fact, as it was often represented to me by thoughtful men, and friends of abolition. However this may be, it is delightful to have ocular demonstration, from the diminished and diminishing numbers of slaves in Maryland, that the free men of the State are not, in general, the patrons of slavery. 332 TOUR IN AMERICA. — PART IV. IX. In our descent along the Atlantic coast, we now enter the South division of the Methodist Episcopal Church. The Virginia Conference is the first on the line. "We have, belonging to this conference, six districts ; namely, Richmond, Charlotteville, Lynchburgh, Randolph Macon, Petcrsburgh, and Norfolk : seventy-six stations and cir- cuits ; ninety-one ministers, with one hundred and sixty- five local preachers : and twenty-eight thousand four hundred and fifty-seven church-members ; of these mem- bers, five thousand six hundred and ninety-one are people of colour. The slavery of this State has greatly increased ; the numbers being, in 1790, 203,427 ; and, in 1840, 448,987. It is to be presumed from this, that the people are really in favour of the system. They would probably say they are not so, in reality ; in the abstract, that they consider liberty, freedom, human rights, as ossential and divine. But then they think that the poor blacks are better off as slaves than if free ; and, moreover, that the system is so dovetailed into their social condition, that it is impossible, in the present state of things, to change it. These are the apologies I often heard. One thing surprises me on enter- ing into a statistical examination of this first Southern Con- ference : it is the very limited number of coloured people belonging to the Church as compared with the slave population in the State. I am aware that the Virginia Conference may not, and indeed does not, include the whole of the State ; but still, it is very evident that it em- braces a considerable proportion ; and if this proportion is no more than half its extent, it still leaves but a very small fraction of the slaves as members of the Methodist Church. What are 5,600 slaves, compared with even half 448,987 ? The most cogent reason, and, as it struck me at the time, the most legitimate, for the neutrality of the Method- ist Church in the South on the subject — in fact, for its present separation from the North — was, that the ministers TERRITORIAL PROGRESS OF THE M. E. CHURCH. 333 might have permission to seek the salvation of these poor outcasts, lead them to Christ, ameliorate their condition, and thus prepare them for freedom. But really, is it worth while (I say nothing of the lawfulness of the thing) to sacrifice a principle, to lay aside a great truth, to bend be- fore the great Moloch, for such a result as this ? Virginia is one of the oldest fields of enterprise belonging to the Methodist Church ; on this ground it has been at work almost from the beginning ; and see the issue, as regards the slave population. Why, if Christianity is to prepare these people for liberty, and Methodism is to be its agent, ages and ages must intervene betwixt these wretched people and the mighty boon. From this investigation one cannot help believing, that this accursed evil stands in the way of the religious good — the salvation — of the poor Af- ricans, to an extent but little apprehended. The Book-Room belonging to the Southern Church is established at Richmond, within the limits of this confer- ence : John Early, Book- Agent, and L. M. Lee, Agent and Editor of the Richmond Christian Advocate. Dr. Lee, the nephew of Jesse Lee, is, as we see, Editor of the Richmond Christian Advocate. These Christian Advocates, in these times, are fearful things. One cannot help deploring, that talents competent to the highest studies and investigations of theological and sacred truth, should be devoted to parti- san warfare. This is unhappily the case now. This fine young man, Dr. Lee, and another at New- York, not as young, but of equally excellent spirit, Dr. G. Peck, must now be pitted against each other in deadly warfare, on the points at issue between the North and the South.* It makes one's heart bleed to think of men like these spend- ing their time and their talents in service so wretched. We have another appointment to notice. It is William A. Smith, President of R. M. College ; B. R. Duval, and Nathaniel Thomas, Agents. Now, as R. M. College is * See Note page 432. 334 TOUR IN AMERICA. — PART IV. placed under the Randolph Macon District, I suppose it must mean a college bearing that name. Our good breth- ren across the Atlantic are so fond of abbreviations, that it is really difficult for a stranger, not well acquainted with them, to make out their meaning. But the fact indicated is of importance, namely, that in this place a college is found for the purpose of advancing the interests of general and sacred knowledge. We may see, from the number of these institutions, and their frequent occurrence as we traverse the continent, that the attention of the Church is intently fixed upon the subject of education. Results of great im- portance to religion and civilization must arise out of this potent agency. X. The North Carolina Conference is the next in our line. This conference has within its limits five districts ; namely, Raleigh, Salisbury, Danville, Washington, New- hem : fifty-seven stations and circuits ; seventy -five minis- ters, with one hundred and thirty-nine local preachers ; and twenty thousand three hundred and eight members : out of this number, seven thousand seven hundred and fifty are people of colour. This, as every one knows, is a slave State, and the evil is increasing. In 1790, we find 100,572 slaves; in 1840, 245,817. But the progress of Methodism among the Afri- can race is much more satisfactory than in Virginia. The total, 7,750, in the midst of a population of 245,817, will give a proportion much more than double, or treble, that of the other State. This, however, is a very poor average on the whole population ; and indicates that the progress made has not been very extraordinary. We have the following appointments in the Conference : B. T. Blake and J. Jamieson, Professors in Greensborough Female College. We shall be under the necessity of no- ticing these female colleges elsewhere; and may conse- quently omit any particular remarks here, further than to TERRITORIAL PROGRESS OP THE M. E. CHURCH. 385 entreat the reader to notice the fact, that the planters of the South — a very different race — are no more negligent of this subject of education than the sturdy citizens of the North ; being willing, it seems, to send their daughters for training to religious schools. XL We now come to the South Carolina Confer- ence. On the territory of this ecclesiastical division, are found six districts ; Charleston, Cokesbury, Columbia, Wil- mington, Fayetteville, JAncolnton : seventy -four stations, circuits, and missions ; one hundred and seven ministers ; (no return of local preachers ;) sixty-five thousand one hun- dred and sixty-seven church-members : in this aggregate, thirty-eight thousand and eighty-two are people of colour. This is a splendid result. South Carolina is a plantation country, and consequently in favour of slavery. The numbers have increased in the following ratio : — In 1790, there were 107,094; and in 1840, no less than 327,038. But it is delightful to find so large a number of them as 38,082 members of the Method- ist Church. Religion is the only real mitigation of the miseries of this condition ; and let us hope that it may please God to confer it upon an increased number, and thus prepare them, by its influence, for all the rights of the social state. But still we must keep it in mind, that these ecclesias- tical boundaries are not those of the State ; and it is very likely, that this South Carolina Conference stretches into the northern State of that name. The religious history of the two Carolinas is very inter- esting, inasmuch as it is connected both with great princi- ples and great men. The territory was granted to propri- etaries by Charles II., the most distinguished of whom were the famous Ashley Cooper, Earl of Shaftesbury, and John Locke. The constitution which these eminent men framed for the government of the plantation — but which, by the by, did not last long — recognized the principle of 336 TOUR IN AMERICA. — PART IV. religious toleration to the fullest extent ; and, at the same time, conceded that all free men had an absolute right of property in their slaves. Even Locke adopted this theory, made this a provision of the constitution which he drew up himself, and secured this as an indefeasible right to the emigrants. The one provision drew to these sunny shores unfortunate religionists from every country ; and the other filled the settlements with enslaved Africans. What a mystery is man ! Here, on this very soil, refu- gees from England, driven by the persecutions of Charles and James ; from Scotland, by that ruthless ruffian, the brutal Lauderdale ; from Ireland, by its chronic miseries and woes; from France, expatriated by the rescinding of the Edict of Nantz, and the ferocious cruelties of Louis XIV., then in his dotage, and under the power of his mis- tress ; from Holland, the Low Countries, and Germany : — all these people, from so many nations, came, smarting under the lash of tyranny, to seek a home in the wilder- ness of America, for the sole purpose that they might enjoy personal and religious freedom. And yet, one of the first things they did in their new state, was to subject the Negro to the degradation, not of political, not of religious, bondage — but of personal slavery ; implying the absolute forfeiture of his manhood, and his reduction to the condition of goods and chattels — the absolute property of his master.* But interest may be pleaded in favour of these planters ; it may be imagined that the want of labourers for the cul- tivation of the soil made it essential to employ the African race. But what are we to say of Locke ? No such tempta- tion could lie in his path. His speculations were those of the philosopher ; the constitution he provided was the pro- duction of his studious reflections ; he was, as is well known, profoundly acquainted with the laws of nature, the principles of jurisprudence, and with the word of God. This great man may be considered as one of the apostles * See Bancroft TERRITORIAL PROGRESS OF THE M. E. CHURCH. 337 of liberty, both political and religious ; and yet lie delibe- rately makes provision, in his constitution for Carolina — the matter is not left to accident — for 1jje white popula- tion, the free men from Europe, to enslave the African. Could he believe these poor Negroes to be men ? If so, on his own principles — the principles of nature's laws, the principles of inalienable, immutable, eternal equity and justice — these parties, being men, have as much right to liberty, personal and religious, as any other men. How little, according to the Scriptures, "is man to be accounted of?" The only solution of this wonderful enigma is, that the philosopher, by some means, allowed himself to get under the influence of Shaftesbury, the wily politician. But, then, what are eternal truths, principles, laws — fixed as the universe — worth, if they are to be sacrificed at the shrine of political expediency ? Even Locke, as Ave see, made truth partial, limited its range, confined it to classes. Liberty, even with its greatest champion, only meant liberty for men of a certain colour ; while these sons of freedom themselves might be permitted to perpetrate the most cruel wrong within the power of man, by enslaving their fellow- creatures. Here, then, strange to say, we have reli- gion and philosophy uniting to inflict this most execrable of all villanies — religion in the persons of expatriated Puri- tans, Calvinists, Huguenots, and Quakers ; and philosophy in the embodied sentiments of Shaftesbury and Locke. Truth comes slowly to man ; and it should seem that neither deep misfortunes on the one hand, nor profound knowledge on the other, can be a sufficient guarantee of its claims and rights. XII. The next Annual Conference is that of Georgia. Within the boundaries of this conference we find eight dis- tricts : Augusta, Athens, Gainsville, Marietta, La Grange, Macon, Columbus, Jeffersonville : one hundred and one sta- tions, circuits, and missions ; one hundred and twenty-six ministers ; (local preachers not given ;) fifty-seven thousand 1 338 TOUR IN AMERICA. — PART IV. one hundred and sixty-seven church-members. Among these church-members we find sixteen thousand and sixty- two people of colour. This is gratifying. The slavery of Georgia has been progressing. In 1790, the numbers are reported as 29,264 ; and in 1840, they are swollen up to 253,532. This is fearful ; but the horror is mitigated by the fact of so many being, as we hope, free- men in Christ. Georgia is interesting to all the followers of John Wes- ley, inasmuch as it is the place to which he went as a mis- sionary to the Indians. Poor Indians ! where are they now ? No missionary is needed in Georgia for their benefit. He says, in the first paragraph of his Journal : — " Mr. Benjamin Ingham, of Queen's College, Oxford, Mr. Charles Delamotte, son of a merchant in London, who had offered himself some days before, my brother Charles Wesley, and myself, took boat for Gravesend, in order to embark for Georgia. Our end in leaving our native country, was not to avoid want, ( God having given us plenty of temporal blessings,) nor to gain the clung or dross of riches or honour ; but singly this, to save our souls, to live wholly to the glory of God." — AVesley's Works, vol. i, p. 17. He tells us, under the date of February 6th, 1736 : — u About eight in the morning, we first set foot on American ground. It was a small uninhabited island, over against Tyber. Mr. Ogle- thorpe led us to a rising ground, where we all kneeled down to give thanks." — Wesley's Works, vol. i, p. 23. This act of religious worship consecrated the commence- ment of his interesting sojourn in this place. He remarks again, under date " February 29th — When I left England, I was chiefly afraid of two things ; one, that I should never again have so many faithful friends as I left there ; the other, that the spark of love which began to kin- dle in their hearts would cool and die away. But who knoweth the mercy and power of God ? From ten friends I am a while secluded, and he hath opened me a door into a whole Church. And as to the very persons I left behind, his Spirit is gone forth so much the more, teaching them not to trust in man, but in Him that raiseth the dead, and calleth the ' things that are not, as though they were.' " — Wesley's Works, p. 26. TERRITORIAL PROGRESS OF THE M. E. CHURCH. 339 There is much to interest, much to meditate upon, in these few words. This apparent accident mentioned, — u He hath opened me a door into a whole Church," — is, in truth, the germinant fact of all Methodism. He refers to the Moravian Church, many of whose members he sailed with from England, observed their spirit with more than admi- ration, conversed with them on matters of experimental religion, and engaged in some of their services. These were among the circumstances which led to his own conversion. And now, in the wilds of Georgia, he had the opportunity of seeing their church order, witnessing their religious exercises, and entering into a free conversation with many of their best and holiest ministers, on questions of doctrine — and especially on the most vital of all — that of justifying faith. This connexion of Mr. Wesley with the Moravian Church, constituted the providential instrumentality in leading him to adopt his most fondly cherished notions of personal piety, and the religious life ; to see much of the most elevated and spiritual portions of religious practice, which he afterwards adopted as essential, and embodied in his various institutions ; and to embrace from their model most of the disciplinary and organic portions of his own system. It led, no doubt, to the idea of the societies which he established, and which became so important an element in his work, and so mighty an instrumentality in the progress of religion ; — all these things, so vital in Methodism, were, evidently, more or less, connected with his partial union with the Moravian Church in Georgia. He had, indeed, formed a small soci- ety, as he calls it, in Oxford, in 1729 ; but this consisted of members of the University only ; and though religious exercises were connected with their meetings, yet they par- took very much of a literary character. The first Method- ist society ever formed among the people, and for their benefit, was in Georgia. On this subject, he says, under date 340 TOUR IN AMERICA. PART IV. " Saturday, April 17th. — Not finding as yet any door open for the pursuing our main design, we considered in what manner we might be most useful to the little flock at Savannah. And we agreed, 1. To advise the more serious among them to form themselves into a sort of : little society,' and to meet once or twice a week, in order to reprove, instruct, and exhort one another. 2. To select out of these a smaller number for a more intimate union with each other ; which might be forwarded, partly by conversing singly with each, and partly by inviting them all together to our house. And this ac- cordingly we determined to do every Sunday in the afternoon." — Wesley's Works, vol. i. p. 30. Accordingly, in his " Short History of the People called Methodists," we find him saying, — " On Monday, May 1st, 1738, our little society began in London. But it may be observed, the first rise of Methodism, so called, was in November, 1729, when four of us met together at Oxford; the second was at Savannah, in April, 1736, when twenty or thirty per- sons met at my house ; the last was in London, on this day, when forty or fifty of us agreed to meet together every Wednesday eve- ning, in order to a free conversation, begun and ended with singing and prayer. In all our steps" (he means in this last organization) " Ave were greatly assisted by the advice and exhortations of Peter Bolder, an excellent young man, belonging to the society commonly called Moravians." It is evident from this that the first Methodist society, in the popular sense of the expression — that is, a society of the people themselves — was formed by John Wesley himself in America. The historical fact is interesting, though no doubt the "little society" soon became extinct on Mr. Wesley's departure. Whitefield, indeed, laboured in these parts afterwards, and founded his celebrated Orphan- House ; but it was not the practice of this eminent preacher to institute or foster societies. Conceiving his mission to be .rather prophetic than pastoral, he contented himself with the delivery of his message, without attempting to constitute church organizations. The effect of this has been disastrous to the permanency of his work. The mighty impression made by his powerful ministry often evaporated, like " the dew of the morning," for the want TERRITORIAL PROGRESS OF THE M. E. CHURCH. 341 of a conserving power in the form of religious societies. When this was not the case, as in individual awakenings and conversions, the parties were obliged to seek commu- nion in otter churches ; so that their numbers were swell- ed, and their power greatly increased, by the itinerant labours of this eminent man. We are naturally interested in the religious history of Savannah, where, as we see, the first popular Methodist society was formed. The traditions of the place respecting Mr. Wesley would be interesting, and probably not favour- able either to his fair name or his cause. He had greatly offended the people by his rigorous conduct in relation to the rubrics, canons, and services of the Church ; insisting on baptizing their children by immersion, and compelling them to observe the very letter of the law on all points of ceremony. This would have been sufficiently burdensome in an old, well-trained parish ; but in a new place, made up of emigrants from every quarter, of every kind of senti- ment, and, it is to be supposed, of somewhat lax habits, such sort of discipline became intolerable. He gives the following account himself: — " Observing much coldness in Mr. C 's (probably Mr. Causton, the chief magistrate of Savannah) behaviour, I asked the reason of it. He answered, ' I like nothing you do. All your sermons are satires upon particular persons, therefore I will never hear you more ; and all the people are of my mind, for we won't hear ourselves abused. Besides, they say they are Protestants : but as for you, they cannot tell what religion you are of. They never heard of such a religion before. They do not know what to make of it. And then your private behaviour : all the quarrels that have been here since you came have been long of you. Indeed, there is neither man nor woman in the town who minds a word you say. And so you may preach long enough ; but nobody will come to hear you.' " There is no doubt much exaggeration and passion in this, but some truth. Mr. Wesley was now " under the law ;" his preaching and entire conduct, public and pri- vate, were such as to produce exasperation. A conviction of sin, without any antidote, any remedy — law without 342 TOUR IN AMERICA. — PART IV. gospel — can only irritate, produce wounds which it cannot heal. It is possible that the traditions of the place may- have something to do with the antipathy manifested against Methodism, as related by its historian, Dr. Bangs. He says : — " After hard toiling, they finally succeeded, by soliciting aid from various parts of the country, in erecting a house of worship in 1812, which was dedicated to the service of Almighty God by Bishop As- bury, and was called Wesley Chapel. This took place about seventy- five years after the town was visited by John Wesley ; and the spirit which vented itself in opposition to him seems to have descended to their posterity, and shown itself in similar acts of hostility to his fol- lowers : yet, by patient perseverance in well-doing, this prejudice has been measurably overcome, and the cause of Methodism has taken firm stand in Savannah, and is exerting a salutary influence on its citizens." Yet this " salutary influence" seems very limited to this day. Dr. Pierce, who is well acquainted with Savannah and the whole of Georgia, told me that the society and congregation still remained very meagre ; that the opposi- tion to Methodism is still most decided ; that the people continued to worship in a small and poor place, the one probably above referred to ; and that, altogether, the work continues in a depressed and languishing state. But notwithstanding this hostility, of Savannah, we find that Georgia, in general, has received the gospel at the hands of the followers of John Wesley on a pretty large scale. We have the following in connexion with this Confer- ence : — Emory College, Aug. B. Longstreet, Alexander Means, George W. Lane, 0. L. Smith, William I. Parks, Agent for Emory College. It is gratifying to find another of these institutions, and so well and efficiently manned with officers. But we have another minute : Thomas C. Stanley, chaplain in the United States' navy. I heard that this is a sinecure. The gentle- TERRITORIAL PROGRESS OF THE M. E. CHURCH. 343 man occupying this post is required to make a sham voyage or two, to qualify himself for the office of chaplain of the United States' navy ; but when the post is attained, very little duty is expected. As chaplain, Mr. Stanley is not re- quired to go to sea ; his quarters are somewhere on shore ; and if he performs any duty at all, it is in connexion with some dockyard or naval station. The design in noticing this appointment is not, however, to point out these circumstances, but to show how Method- ism stands with respect to the State. At Washington we found a minister of this Church occupying the position of chaplain to the Congress, and now we finjl another chap- lain to the United States' navy. The good people of Eng- land would be astonished if the Gazette should announce that some Methodist preacher was appointed chaplain in the royal navy, having his residence at Deptford, with pay, rations, and rank as an officer ; and, moreover, having the right to be saluted as such by every jack- tar and sentinel on duty. This would look strange indeed. Such is the difference betwixt the position of Methodism in America and in England. We say nothing respecting which is right and which is wrong ; but the difference is palpable enough. XIII. The Florida Conference follows that of Georgia. We find in this ecclesiastical boundary four districts, namely, Quincy, Tallahassee, Newnansville, and St. Mary's : thirty-three stations, circuits, and missions, thirty- two ministers, with seventy -four local preachers ; and six thousand seven hundred and twenty -nine church-members, two thousand seven hundred and thirty-six of whom are people of colour. It will be seen by these numbers, that no very great pro- gress has been made in Florida. This will be accounted for by the fact, that this region was originally colonized by the Spaniards ; and the bulk of the population must, to 344 TOUR IN AMERICA. — PART IV. this day, be of that nation. These people are, wherever found, ignorant, besotted, superstitious Roman Catho- lics. Their superstition, indeed, seems to be a part of themselves. It is a question whether there exists a single church of real evangelical Spanish Christians in any part of the world. Whether they are paying the penalties due to infinite justice and outraged humanity, for the crimes of the Inquisition ; whether Popery has so seized all the pow- ers of their intellectual and moral nature, by its traditions, dogmas, and confessional, as to render them incapable of receiving the truth of God ; or whether the Spaniard is naturally and ^essentially a superstitious animal — seems difficult to say. But in the whole world, wherever he is found, he is true to his idolatry. Had we the complete history of the case before us, no doubt it would be found that the Popery of Florida had, as in other places, proved impervious even to the energetic zeal of American Me- thodism. We present the result of our inquiries with respect to the several conferences on this line of coast, in a tabular view. All the following tables contain, in the different columns, an enumeration of the conferences, districts, circuits, (in- cluding stations and missions,) ministers, supernumeraries, local jyreachers, and members. Conferences. Dist. Circuits. Ministers. Local Pr. Members. Maine 6 162 161 167 20,448 New-Hampshire 3 78 81 64 10,448 New-England .. 3 117 108 76 13,381 Providence 3 112 112 72 14,429 New- York 8 216 254 220 46,748 New-Jersey ... 6 112 152 194 29.590 Philadelphia . . 6 112 156 208 40,289 Baltimore 8 140 229 280 68,725 Virginia 6 77 96 165 28,457 North Carolina 5 58 75 139 20,308 South Carolina 6 75 108 Not given 65,160 Georgia 8 102 126 Not given 57.161 Florida 4 33 32 74 6,729 72 1,394 1,690 1,659 405,541 TERRITORIAL PROGRESS OF THE M. E. CHURCH. 345 Two facts appear on the face of this tabular view : the first is, that the number of local preachers in these confer- ences, as compared with the same class of agents in this country, is very small. How this is to be accounted for, I do not exactly know ; but believe that the American Me- thodists support a regular ministry on a much larger scale than is done in this country. For instance : in the English Minutes for 1848, we have reported, as the aggregate num- ber of members in England, 338,861 ; short of the numbers on the Atlantic seaboard conferences, by 66,680. In con- nexion with these 338,861 members in England, we have 886 ministers engaged ; while the pastoral oversight of 405,541 members in these American conferences engages 1,690 ministers, which is nearly double the ratio among ourselves. The second fact is, that two or three of the confer- ences in the slave States present a much greater number of members, taking population as the rule, white and coloured, than any other. This throws some gleams of light upon the state of things, and holds out the promise that at some period or another, if the gospel itself does not become enslaved, a change will take place, and Christianity will enfranchise this class of our fellow-believers in the rights of freedom. This territorial extension, we must recollect, is not an ideal thing, a scheme to be accomplished, a project exist- ing in the brain, or in the books and calculations of some theorist ; a platform or basis on which to erect a building. It is a reality, a positive occupancy of four hundred thou- sand square miles of country by the institutions of a living Church. But how occupied ? By men holding this parti- cular faith in the numbers specified. Men constitute the power of the Church, as they do that of the State. In case these persons are really imbued with the spirit of true religion ; with the great conceptions of the gospel ; with a strong and vivid faith in the divinity of Christianity, and its high and glorious destiny ; — if they are so actuated, can 15* 346 TOUR IN AMERICA. — PART IV. they live in the midst of the general population without producing a mighty impression ? But are these individuals so influenced, so actuated ? If activity in religion, devoted - ness to its interests, self-denying exertions and sacrifices, costly contributions and zealous support, are evidence of a profound conviction, then they certainly present this proof of sincerity and sound faith. But we have not only men devoted to God and his cause, but institutions calculated in every way to consolidate this living thought, this active piety. Institutions are essential to the stability and permanency of any interest ; and with- out them the work of the mind, and even the feelings and sentiments of religion, must soon evaporate. There have been, at different times and places, noble fruits of religious feeling ; blessed visitations from God ; profound movements on the minds and hearts of large masses of men : but, for the want of suitable institutions, all this has passed away, sometimes in one generation. We may judge pretty accurately of the probable desti- nies and progress of a people by their organizations. Everything which has obtained any footing or strength in the world, has gained these advantages by these means. That which has distinguished Methodism in all places is, among other things, its uniform and universal attempt to institute means for the consolidation and progress of its work. It never reckons on anything permanently useful, except with the preaching of the gospel it can establish its polity. This, it must be confessed, is wise, and in perfect agree- ment with the primitive practice of the Church, as well as with the analogies furnished from other quarters. But it is one of the conditions of our state that things in them- selves good, proper, and even divine, by excess become mischievous. The Church has invariably, in all ages, ruined itself. And the ruin has generally approached through an excess of tinkering at its polity. Institutions, in the begin- TERRITORIAL PROGRESS OF THE M. E. CHURCH. 347 ning both Christian and necessary, have become, in the hands of thoughtless, often of designing, occupants, snug, tight, circumscribed things ; the centres of power, instead of light ; the means of oppression, instead of blessing ; the machinery of depression, of suppression, and of immoderate and universal control, instead of expansion and progress. Whilst institutions are retained in their freshness, purity, and vigour, they are of infinite service ; but when they lose these qualities, and become the instruments of selfishness and ambition, they not only lose their power for good, but they become absolutely ruinous. In passing, it may be as well to say, that in a system of religion such as ours, in which Societies, Committees, Con- ferences, and all manner of institutions are so much in use, a danger will arise, perhaps has arisen. There is the dan- ger of trusting in them. This cannot be done without such an affront being offered to God as must cause him to frown, to perplex, to chasten, and, if persisted in, to forsake. There is the danger of destroying individual power, intelli- gence, and activity. The tendency of government by insti- tutions is to cut all men down to one common level, to make them work within the limits of some miserable line of cir- cumvallation, and to press them within the dimensions of the Ganons and laws of the institute. Hence, in this state of things, there is no scope for faith, for any teaching of God, for any inspirations of love, any bursts of ardent zeal. The best men are those who creep along the line, who serve God and their generation by the human canons thus prepared, who study their duties, not in the light of Scrip- ture, the visions of eternity, the great designs of the gos- pel, or the miseries, groans, and dangers of a suffering world ; but in that of the code, the pandects of a society. All this is mischievous, is absolutely destructive. Insti- tutions ought to be a focus of diffusive light and intelli- gence, not of darkness and death ; they ought to contain in them the pulse, not of stagnation, but of life, beating con- 348 TOUR IN AMERICA.— PART IV. stantly, and sending out its vitality to every part of the body; they ought to encourage and foster everything spi- ritual, pious, holy, designed for the spread of truth, and the evangelization of the world, and not discourage and quench the zeal of good men. By some means, a Church ought to possess two great elements at the same time, — order and liberty. Institutions which secure order without giving liberty, gain their point, so far as this one thing is considered ; but it is the order of death. Thought, genius, principle, faith, love ; — all, in fact, which makes the man, or constitutes the Christian, is buried in one grave ; and then the inactivity is called " order." It is, indeed, order with a witness ! So is the silence of the churchyard. The dead trouble nobody, except the affrighted child and wo- man, who, as they trip along in the dusk of the evening, imagining the appearance of a ghost, " whistle to keep their courage up." These sons of order and men of business in Christianity are always a second-rate set. They are never found guilty of a noble conception, a fine flow of feeling, a generous sym- pathy, an heroic act. Whether their one idea has origin- ated in themselves, or whether it is the offspring of another brain, (which is generally the case,) they are a perfect uni- ty. The idea is the man, find him where you may, and the man is the idea. Let this man of business be followed any- where, and he is still at his task. He gives his jaded soul no respite. He is poring at his accounts, mending his ma- chinery, examining how his appliances will answer, trying whether he can fit in some new stave to the wheel ; and, with all his dexterity, is ever endeavouring to make his grap- pling-irons sharp, and long enough to reach and torment everybody. " What, then," it is exclaimed, " are we to have no order?" Yes; such order as comports with the development of the faculties, the exercise of all the graces of religion, the supremacy of the word of God. The laws of God are all true and exact ; but they are so made to TERRITORIAL PROGRESS OF THE M. E. CHURCH. 349 operate as to give expansion to every created thing, up to the full elevation of its nature. The institutions of the Church ought to embrace this principle. It is infinitely- better to have some disorder, with piety and life, than to have the most perfect order without progress. Every one of the things above mentioned, may be consi- dered in the light of an institution. Each building, called a church in America, is secured to the people by law ; while these people themselves will be found to exist as a little community, with their rights, duties, and interests all defined and represented, and, moreover, managed by com- petent officers. A station, a circuit, or a mission, is not a place of resort for a migratory tribe of rambling religion- ists, who just assemble now and then, as inclination or caprice may dictate. One of these ecclesiastical depart- ments — parishes they would be called in ancient times — is, in fact, an organization for promoting the service of God on the one part, and the spiritual happiness of the people on the other. We see that there are thirteen hundred of these institutions scattered up and down in this portion of the American population. These centres of living Chris- tians, of gospel light, of intelligent piety, of active zeal and aggressive energy, cannot be without power. In fact, it is at this point that we must look for the real, the living influence of the system. Other arrangements may blend the masses, link the separate societies together, lock the arms of the trees into one immense and widely extended forest ; but the real life and force of the organization will be found to exist in the several stations and circuits. Whilst these belong to the whole Church, to the great aggregation* they are free in their individual action. From their union with the body, they derive encouragement and moral support, as is always the case when societies feeble in themselves inhere in some large and vigorous confedera- tion ; but then they possess a capacity for much separate usefulness from their individual freedom. 350 TOUR IN AMERICA. — PART IV. We have only to look at this question by the light of other interests. In case some general theory or doctrine, of political or any other science, had succeeded in organiz- ing for its support and propagation some thirteen hundred separate institutions, with three parts of a million of the people ; whilst these people devoted their intelligence, their labour, and a good portion of their wealth, for the support and extension of this cause, should we not imagine it to possess great advantages, and the prospect of perma- nent success ? So it is, as we think, with these churches. They rest on a solid basis, they have become a part of the spiritual and moral life of society, they are dovetailed into its other arrangements, they belong to the soil itself, they communicate and receive nutriment from all things around them, and they are rendered vital by the truth which is in them. We generally speak of the institutions of a Church as something distinct from the Church itself; whereas, the view just given supposes any local church to be a religious institution. And yet it must be conceded, that some things connected with the Church look like institutions growing out of its organization. What is either the district or the conference but an offshoot of this sort ? Of course, we speak of the conference proper, the assembly of ministers, and not of the topical use of the term as applied to territory. This conference is an institution of the Church, contrived as an organ of its action, under certain conditions. But the Church might exist without it, just as an empire might ex- ist under one chief, instead of being organized under king, lords, and commons. The tendency, nay, the very genius, of Methodism, is to build institutions upon the truth it holds. In some sort, it is a religion of institutions ; it finds an organization for every purpose ; it deposits everything in an institution. Its doc- trines, so far as man is concerned in their conservation, are intrusted to the care of institutions ; its church-membership TERRITORIAL PROGRESS OF THE M. E. CHURCH. 351 is an incorporation founded on rules and laws ; its ministers constitute a common brotherhood, resting on reciprocal rights, all defined, and understood ; its government is in the hands of various bodies, either bearing the name or analo- gous to committees or conferences. The world is not more fully and completely parcelled out into governmental de- partments, whether named counties, parishes, hundreds, tithings ; and these, again, are not more perfectly pervaded with various centres of anthority and power, for purposes of administration and government, than is Methodism. It is not a religious opinion loosely floating on the breeze ; it is not a random and eccentric flow of feeling and zeal ; it is not a wide-spread moral wave, ebbing and flowing with the seasons ; it is not the casual and disconnected existence of many thousands of enthusiastic people, flying here and there through society, like George Fox and the old Friends, delivering their testimony, and then departing. No ; it is not this. In its best state it is full of feeling, of energy, of faith, of holiness, of good works. It is soul as well as body. It is animated by a living, thrilling, beating pulsa- tion of piety. Its love is of the most ethereal as well as practical kind ; embracing the Saviour and the souls of men. But, then, while Methodism is spirit and life, it has shown itself to be wise and judicious ; inasmuch as it has every- where done its best to render its truths, its spirit, and its work permanent, by connecting the whole with appropri- ate institutions. Then, in looking at the territorial position and power of Methodism in the States we have had under review, a most inadequate conception on the subject would be attained, if the mere numbers of the people were alone regarded. This would be to consider them an unarmed and helpless set of savages ; like the Indian tribes, to be driven from their territorial possessions by the force and influence of some future aggressive movement of Christianity. Their connexion with the country is of a very different nature 352 TOUR IN AMERICA. — PART IV. to this. They have taken root in the soil, in the social state. Men die off, human life is a fleeting vapour, gene- rations pass away ; but institutions outlive these ravages of time. But they not only continue, they collect around them, — they rather embrace within their enclosure new generations as they come into being. Individual man, in his isolation, solitude, and sorrows, looks abroad for some resting-place, and is glad to connect himself with a Church which promises him permanent help and guidance in his passage to eternity. In some sense, truth, knowledge, religious ideas and sentiments, — which are embedded in permanent institutions, — may be said to be fastened to society, as the trees of the forest to their earthy home. It is true, all this may exist in a very inert and lifeless state, as has often been the case ; and yet, when the seed is found in the earth, there is some chance that the genial rains and sun- shine of heaven may reach and bring it to maturity ; where- as, if not there at all, these powers of nature could not draw forth the ear or ripen the harvest. Where institu- tions are not established, everything depends on individual character and exertions ; and when living men are not found to maintain and propagate the truth, it must be alto- gether banished ; but when they exist, though in them- selves insufficient, yet still a basis is found, a testimony is borne, a standard continues unfurled ; and, although the depression may remain through a long and dreary winter, yet still, in time, a season of " refreshing will come from the presence of the Lord." The point of interest, then, is, that, besides the thousands of living men professing the Methodist faith on the Atlantic seaboard, these people have adopted means to conserve and propagate their doctrines ; to carry on a constant aggressive evangelization amongst the unconverted and thoughtless ; to promote and extend, by the vigorous use of the press, their sentiments and views on religious ques- TERRITORIAL PROGRESS OF THE M. E. CHURCH. 353 tions ; and to raise the standard of intelligence and know- ledge by a collegiate course of education ; and then to govern and direct the whole to a good and useful practical result, by a minute and local or a general system of govern- ment, as the case may be. This form of Methodism shoAvs that it has taken root in the country, and is not likely soon to be destroyed. For good or for evil, this form of the Christian faith is likely to remain an element of American society in all time to come. Its principles, its men, its or- ganization, and its institutions, must have their share in fashioning the destinies of the American people. A wild outburst of religious effervescence will soon be over ; and, like the course of the vessel on the sea, no trace be left be- hind in a very short period. This has been considered the character and the destiny of Methodism by many erroneous and bigoted observers. Its history has not shown it to be of this ephemeral nature anywhere ; and whatever may be its destiny in the Old World, most assuredly it is not likely to have this fate in the New. In the aspect in which we are considering it, the Method- ist Church is now favoured beyond anything we can con- ceive by the conditions of the country. In establishing territorial institutions, it will be seen at once, that the sue cess must depend very much upon the occupancy or the non-occupancy of the soil. Where a territorial Church is found with prescriptive rights, ecclesiastical arrangements, embracing the whole country, a numerous clergy, strong public prejudices in its favour, and a long traditional ce- lebrity, — where all this is found, it is evident that a new territorial organization must meet with great obstructions in its progress. Nothing of this sort existed, in the com- mencement of Methodism, at all in some parts of America, and in the old States only to a very limited degree. What, then, in this state of things, should prevent Methodist institutions from obtaining a permanent footing in a country so circumstanced ? In themselves they possess 354 TOUR IN AMERICA. — PART IV. a conservative principle, which tends to consolidation ; so that the only question is, as to whether they are adapted to the civil state, the genius of the people, the spirit of the age, and the wants of the country. Religion, it is true, as a divine and spiritual dispensation, will continue in all its freshness and glory forever, in despite of anything exter- nal and human. But it is different with organizations. These must be adapted to the circumstances adverted to, or otherwise they will be abandoned by the people, and, as a consequence, decay. For the want of this principle of adaptation, many great combinations of social, political, and religious power have fallen beneath the pressure of changes and revolutionary tendencies, which the progress of time and events has rendered inevitable. As this has been the fate of so many massive edifices, it is but too pos- sible that, at some time or another, it will be the case with the polity of this Church. But this day has not yet ar- rived, and is not likely soon to appear. One of the main features of our system hitherto has been its power of adaptation, its elastic spring. This, again, arises from keeping clear of divine-right theories and max- ims in matters which have been left as indifferent. Method- ism holds nothing but the truth, the gospel itself, as pro- perly divine. Having never considered one of its conclaves, like a Popish council, as in possession of inspired wisdom, it has never held that the decrees of these bodies are in- fallible, and consequently divine. Popery has split on this rock. Its infallibility, it is true, has been a great power in its hands : it has done prodigious service in its time. But it entirely annihilates the principle of adaptation, except by evasions. The papacy is fastened to this dogma ; it cannot alter, and must, sooner or later, be destroyed. This free- dom is one of the safeguards, as well as one of the mightiest instruments of Christianity itself. Holding the doctrines of the gospel firmly, tenaciously, faithfully ; yet still we con- sider ourselves at perfect liberty respecting the mode and TERRITORIAL PROGRESS OF THE M. E. CHURCH. 355 means of making them known. The conduits, the pipes by which the waters of life are conveyed to an arid world, have never been confounded with the waters themselves. By just adhering to this simple maxim, a freedom of action is secured, that enables the Church to do the work of the Lord in any place, and in the midst of every variety of con- dition in which a people may be found. But the aggressive spirit of the system is admirably fitted to meet the wants of a new country. This one character- istic has carried it to its present point of progress, and must carry it much farther. Besides, a body which is always in motion must possess the habit of activity. Nothing can be well stagnant in a Church which is constantly ebbing and flowing, like the tides of the ocean, by reason of its itinerancy. But this wonderfully agrees with the American spirit. To aim at progress, onward adventure, new acqui- sitions, greater scope, unexplored territory, are the very elements of American character. These passions and tastes seem almost to belong to his being, to be a part of himself. What kind of church-order or ministry can be so perfectly fitted to meet all this as an itinerant system ? The two things might have been made for each other, they so ad- mirably fit. Even the episcopacy of the Church is con- ceived in the same spirit. The Methodist bishop is, of all men, full of enterprise, and is constantly in motion. He is a bishop that he may oversee. Instead of being confined to any particular locality, he is found everywhere, to the very extremities of the country, seeking the scattered flock of Christ, and looking diligently after those who are within the fold. The distant prairies and settlements of the " far west," the wigwams of the Indians in their far-off territories, the huts and the plantations occupied by the negro race — all witness the presence and labours of the bishop. His business is to lead on the militant host of God's elect to new enterprises and labours. His prerogatives are not de- signed to exact obedience, to subdue and intimidate, but to 356 TOUR IN AMERICA. — PART IV. inspirit to fresh zeal and devotion to the cause of God. It is not his calling to " eat the flesh and warm himself in the wool of the flock," but to go before them in the wilderness, allure them to green pastures, and "feed them with the finest of the wheat." Thus, as far as can be perceived, the institutions of this Church, and the wants and spirit of the country, are in perfect harmony. Only let the truth and Spirit of God imbue and live in these institutions, and then they are not only safe from decay, but they must accom- plish their purpose in diffusing true religion and virtue through the entire country for ages and generations to come. II.— THE HUDSON AND LAKE LINE. In prosecuting our territorial survey of the Methodist Church, we now enter upon the line of the Hudson and the Lakes. By an examination of the map, it will be seen that this marks out a distinct portion of the States, and furnishes a convenient division for our purpose. In passing from the seacoast into the interior, by this route, the results will be found much the same as on the Atlantic line. The country itself is amongst the most beau- tiful and fertile portions of the States. Many parts of it are highly cultivated ; fine arable and meadow land, water- ed, as is usual in America, by innumerable rivers and streams, everywhere meets the eye ; hills of every eleva- tion, covered with trees and foliage, rich with various hues and fragrance, rise to adorn the landscape ; and as far as such a fact can be attested by appearances, a thriving and happy population is rapidly filling the country. All this territory is occupied by the Methodist Church. Its enterprising evangelists have entered every open door. A little time ago the whole presented the aspect of a mis- sion, an enterprise, a trial for occupancy; but now the Church presents the appearance of a quiet, peaceful, and settled power. Along this line, and the country adjacent, TERRITORIAL PROGRESS OF THE M. E. CHURCH. 357 it will be found, on examination, that a complete ecclesias- tical organization has been formed, and that the ministry and religious ordinances of the body pervade the entire country; and, moreover, as the system is everywhere voluntary, it follows that great numbers of the people be- long to the community, else its institutions could not exist. I. About six miles north of Albany stands the city of Troy, which gives its name to a conference. Why Troy, instead of Albany, should have been fixed upon, when the latter is the metropolitan city of the State of New- York, and much larger than Troy, it is difficult to say. Connected with the Troy Conference we find seven dis tricts, — Troy, Albany, Saratoga, Poultney, Burlington, Plattsburgh, St. Alban's ; one hundred and thirty- eight stations, circuits, and missions ; one hundred and ninety ministers, with one hundred and thirty-eight local preach- ers ; twenty-five thousand three hundred and twenty-seven church-members ; ninety-seven only of whom are people of colour. We find the following stations : — Troy Conference Aca- demy, J. T. Peck, principal ; R. Q. Mason, teacher. The above Dr. Jesse T. Peck is brother of Dr. George Peck, now editor of the Christian Advocate, and is a gentleman of fine talents and much energy. He was chosen one of the secretaries of the last General Conference at Pitts- burgh, and discharged its duties with excellent tact and ability. The work in this locality commenced in 1*788. I find a conference was held in Albany in 1*791 ; but the term " conference," at that time, does not seem to indicate a territorial division — a diocese — but simply a meeting of preachers, for the transaction of business. II. The Vermont Conference is the next in topographi- cal order in our line. This is a small ecclesiastical section, 358 TOUR IN AMERICA. — PART IV. and only embraces a few places. We have three districts; namely, Montpelier, Danville, Springfield : sixty-four sta- tions, circuits, and missions ; seventy-one ministers, with forty-six local preachers ; and seven thousand nine hundred and fifty-three church-members. We have the following appointment noted : H. C. Wood, Principal of the Springfield Wesleyan Seminary. Methodism was introduced into this State in 1794. III. We now come to the Black River Conference. In connexion with this conference we have six districts ; namely, Rome, Syracuse, Oswego, Adams, Watertown, and Pottsdam : ninety-three stations, circuits, and missions ; one hundred and thirteen ministers, with one hundred and forty- five local preachers ; and fifteen thousand nine hundred and seventeen church-members ; twenty only being people of colour. It will be seen that this conference, like that of Troy, does not take its name from any State; and, to a stranger, there is some difficulty in fixing its exact locality. The names of the stations are so curious, and so few of them can be found on the best maps, that were it not just for the discovery of one or two of the most prominent, one might be left in the dark altogether respecting this Black River Conference. Black River empties itself into Lake Ontario, and flows in a somewhat northerly direction from the interior of the State of New-York. Sackett's Harbor, one of the stations of this conference, is nearly opposite Kingston, on the Canadian side of Lake Ontario, as are Mexico and Oswego, two other stations. This ecclesiastical division of the terri- tory of the State of New- York skirts the above beautiful lake at a point which brings the American and Canadian bodies into pretty close contiguity to each other. We know of no bitterness or strife ; all is harmony and concord be- twixt the two Churches. TERRITORIAL PROGRESS OF THE M. E. CHURCH. 359 The numbers found on this conference division, — fifteen thousand nine hundred and seventeen, — just at a point where the northern extremity of the State of New- York abuts upon the Ontario Lake, and exactly opposite to the Canadian shore, indicate a fact which has been before referred to, and may be worth looking at again. It relates to the contrast in population and progress in the two coun- tries. It will be found, on examination, that, in the same space in Canada which is occupied by this Black River Conference, there are scarcely as many hundreds of mem- bers as there are thousands on the American side. How is this ? Certainly not because the Canadian preachers are less laborious, or that there is a less disposition in the peo- ple to embrace their doctrines and fellowship. The case is to be accounted for on a perfectly different principle ; namely, the wonderful difference betwixt the population, the activity, and the progress of the American State, as contrasted with the British colony. The soil, the climate — indeed, all the elements of social improvement, are as great on the Canadian side as on that of America ; but the differ- ence, in point of fact, is prodigious. It is not for us to speculate on the causes of this differ- ence. They are, however, easily seen and understood on the spot. We perceive, in this case, that population and Methodism in the States go on concurrently : considering the comparatively recent ingress of any large amount of peo- ple towards this frontier of the Union, it is amazing how great and mighty the amount of advancement they have made. The harbours and shores of these lakes — these inland seas — are being filled up by an energetic race, who are laying the foundations of an extended trade and commerce, only second to that which is seen on the Atlantic seaboard, or that which is carried on on the waters of the Mississippi. It is cheering to the philanthropist and the Christian to perceive, that this new population does not settle down in a state of heathenism. The preaching of the gospel, the 360 TOUR IN AMERICA. — PART IV. ordinances of the Church, and the appliances of education and knowledge, are all finding their way, and becoming living elements of the growing and expanding civilization. We have no fewer than three notices of educational in- stitutions in this conference : — Mexico Academy, to be sup- plied ; Gouverneur Wesleyan Seminary, J. W. Armstrong ; John Dempster, Professor of Theology in the Methodist Biblical Institute, Concord, New- Hampshire. It Avas the writer's happiness to meet with Dr. Demp- ster at Pittsburgh. The Biblical Institute, of which he is the professor, in point of fact, is a theological college. It is the only institution of the kind in the United States in any way connected with the Methodist Church ; for, though at the colleges and universities many of the professors have theological classes, they have not yet thought it advisable to establish separate and exclusive theological schools. This is a subject which the American Methodist Church has not decided. It seems to be an open question among them, and not likely soon to be settled. It must not be inferred from this, that they are indifferent to theological learning. Their energetic support of educational institu- tions, and their practice of connecting theological classes and lectures with their college and university courses, most clearly show the contrary of this. The matter of fact is, that a very deep, indeed, enthusiastic, conviction of the advantages of instruction, and, moreover, of a weii-trained ministry, exists almost universally amongst them. The only point on which there is any demur is, as to whether it is better, or the contrary, that the youth des- tined to the ministry should be educated in common with the rest of the Methodist community, availing themselves of the theological instruction provided, as above mentioned ; or, whether they should be separated altogether from the young community about them, and placed by themselves in a sort of monastic establishment. Much, it is clear, may be said on both sides of the question. The practice of TERRITORIAL PROGRESS OF THE M. E. CHURCH. 361 separate theological institutions is that which, in this coun- try, has prevailed amongst the Dissenting and Noncon- formist bodies ; but it is not the practice of the national universities, whether in England, Scotland, or Ireland. In these great seminaries of learning the lay youth, and those who are designed for the ministry, are educated in common. There are no theological institutions having a national cha- racter : these all belong to the separate Christian sects. Which is the better system, it may be difficult to say ; and which turns out the greater men, it might be considered invidious to pronounce. There are obviously benefits pecu- liar to both modes ; but they must be different in their kind. To young men shut up from all contact with others, there is the advantage of preservation from the evils of bad example ; and then the discipline brought to bear upon them, can be much more stringent than if they lived in common with others. But, on the other side, an educa- tional course in union with the lay youth of the community, and, for this reason, a much more numerous body, must tend to produce a more generous, manly, catholic, and national character than the other. Better denominational divines will be made, so far as sectarian theology is con- cerned, by a merely isolated education. When this is the main object, it is evident enough that separate schools, placed under strict surveillance, will be the best. But if the design is to expand the faculties, to produce generous and catholic feelings, to attach the soul to truth on a uni- versal scale, to make the youth a citizen of the nation, to strengthen his sympathies with all God's universe, — then an open education seems the thing. Whether a sound knowledge of theology can be attained in connexion with this general system, must be judged of by facts. Are old Thomas Jackson, Barrow, Pearson, Butler, divines of any learning and religious acquirements ? because they were educated and trained in the national universities, in common with the lay youth of their age. 16 362 TOUR IN AMERICA.— PART IV. Are Rutherford, Gillies, Chalmers, of the Scotch nation, theologians of any distinction ? for they were brought up in the open schools of their country. Are Usher, Skelton, Magee, of the Irish nation, names of any consideration ? these also were educated in common with the laity. These are amongst the great teachers of the Christian Church. They belong to all parties, to all ages, to all nations. They are the instructors of all communities, and will be so to the end of time. But it would be unjust to the other side not to say, that the theological college system has pro- duced great names : Drs. Watts, Doddridge, and Pye Smith, will live as divines, and diffuse the fragrance of their pious and eminently useful labours through the Church, in all time to come. How the American Methodist Church may settle this question, and whether they will ever be led to adopt the plan of a separate theological training for their young min- isters, it is difficult to say. Besides the usual prejudices against an isolated and separate education, on the grounds of spoiling the students for enterprise, and the endurance of toil and hardship, — it strikes me that the nationalism of the American preachers will be found to stand in the way of the adoption of this system. These ministers are thorough citizens ; they feel themselves of the people ; they identify themselves fully and entirely with the nation ; and though they possess the ministerial office and function, yet there is little affectation of the clerical caste. I should say, that, next to piety to God, a full belief in Christianity, and the love of the Gospel, the leading characteristic of the American minister is, a full and perfect identification of feeling and principle with his country : it will be difficult to bring about any plans of instruction, in case they should be attempted, the tendency of which is in any way to alien- ate the minister from the citizen, the priest from the Ame- rican. It is clearly seen by these sagacious men that the institution of exclusively theological colleges, which should TERRITORIAL PROGRESS OF THE M. E. CHURCH. 363 detach the youth of the Church from the body of the people, is, in spirit, directly opposed to the genius of general citizenship, and must tend to create a class whose feelings, tastes, and habits, will necessarily be, in some sort, sectarian. At any rate, at present, the idea has very little favour and countenance amongst either ministers or people. IV. The Oneida Conference joins that of Black River. It includes eight districts, — Cazenovia, Oneida, Chenango, Otsego, JVeioark, Cayuga, Susquehannah, and Wyoming : one hundred and twenty-seven stations, circuits, and mis- sions ; one hundred and sixty ministers, with two hundred and two local preachers ; and twenty-five thousand seven hundred and seventy-six church-members, eighty-six of whom are coloured people, and ninety Indians. We have the following appointments in this conference : — Henry Bannister, Principal of the Oneida Conference Seminary ; Edward Bannister, Professor ; Nelson Rounds, Editor of the Northern Christian Advocate ; Alonzo Wood, Chaplain of State Prison at Auburn ; R. Nelson, Principal of Wyoming Seminary. Here, then, we find the usual agencies at work. Two seminaries, one Christian Advocate, and one chaplain to a state prison. This does not look like an inefficient church system. V. The Genesee Conference abuts upon Oneida. We have nine districts belonging to this division of the country ; namely, Ontario, East Rochester, Genesee, Buffalo, Niagara, Rushford, Dansville, Wellsborough, and Seneca Lake : one hundred and fifty-nine stations, circuits, and missions ; one hundred and eighty-seven ministers, with two hundred and fifty-three local preachers ; and twenty-six thousand six hundred and twentjr-four church-members, fifty-eight of whom are coloured people. 364 LOUR IN AMERICA. — PART IV. The manner of the commencement of the work in this part of the country, is given by the historian of Me- thodism : — "As early as 1792, Mr. Garrettson had travelled through various parts of this new country, preaching to the people in their log-houses, in barns, and often holding his quarterly-meetings under the foliage of trees. Aided as he Avas by those zealous young preachers, who entered this field of labour, he was instrumental in extending the gospel and its attendant blessings into these destitute places. By these means those societies were established which have continued to flourish and increase to the present time. Along the Mohawk River, as far as Utica, as well as the Chenango and Susquehannah rivers, those pioneers of Methodism penetrated, and laid the founda- tion for those extensive revivals of religion which have blessed that region of the country. We may form some judgment of the good effects of these labours and sacrifices from the fact, that there were returned in the Minutes for this year, including Tioga, Wyoming, Saratoga, and Seneca circuits, eight hundred and ninety-two members of the Church. Had equal zeal been manifested at this early period in building suitable houses of worship, as the work enlarged with the progress of the settlements, Methodism would have taken a stand here more firmly, and have exerted a much more hallowed and ex- tensive influence over the population." — Bangs's " History of Method- ism" vol. ii, pp. 66, 67. See Asbury, vol. iii, p. 293. Nothing can well be finer than the work above described. For the evangelist to place himself by the side of the ad- vancing population, to make himself one of them, to share their privations, — to enter their log-huts with messages of mercy, — to hold his meetings for preaching and prayer under the spreading foliage of the trees of the wilderness ; — to encourage the woodman in his aggressions upon the forest, and the farmer in his efforts to turn up the virgin soil, for a first crop ; — then to see these primitive families erecting their altar, like Abraham in the desert, to the God of the lonely waste, as well as of the crowded city ; — to listen to the echoes of praise and prayer reverberating in the midst of solitudes, made vocal for the first time since time began ; — all this is infinitely beautiful. This was the TERRITORIAL PROGRESS OE THE M. E. CHURCH. 365 work of that glorious evangelist, Freeborn Garrettson, and his young men. The seed they sowed has indeed sprung up, and produced a plentiful harvest, notwithstanding the somewhat mournful tone of our good friend Bangs about the " preaching-houses." How everything could have been done at once, it is difficult to divine. How great "preaching-houses" are to be built, whether in America or anywhere else, before there is a people to build them, or money to pay for them, one cannot well imagine. But it is always the fashion for the present to find fault with the past. Why were our forefathers so very foolish as to build such little paltry chapels, — " houses of worship," — as they did ? How much more rational and religious it would have been, if they had erected edifices which would have held, say, a couple of thousands ! Besides, these miserable little shabby temples only stand in the place of great ones ; just as a rotten tree, till it is blown down, fills the space which might be occupied by a grace- ful, majestic, blooming young son of the forest. This is the way people talk on this subject. But how the "preaching-houses" in the American wilderness were to be built, almost before the timber was felled, — certainly before the soil was cultivated, — is puzzling to know ; and how, nearer home, the spacious, elegant, costly edifice is to rise, except from a previous beginning, perhaps of a very humble and homely description, is equally difficult to com- prehend. Let not the great despise the little ; they would never have held their own elevated position, had not some- body laid the foundation. And let not the citizen gentle- man despise the woodman ; his city had never risen, had not the pioneer cleared the ground. VI. The Erie Conference. A narrow strip of country, belonging to the State of Pennsylvania, stretches to Lake Erie ; and a town, named after the lake, stands on this narrow neck of land. This ecclesiastical division contains 366 TOUR IN AMERICA. — PART IV. six districts ; namely, Ravenna, Warren, Meadville, Erie, Jamestown, and Franklin : eighty-five stations, circuits, and missions ; one hundred and twenty-eight ministers, with one hundred and ninety-three local preachers ; twenty thousand one hundred and forty-three church-members, fifty-eight of whom are people of colour. We have the usual appointments and agencies in this conference : — Asbury Seminary, G. B. Hawkins, Principal ; Alleghany College, G. W. Clark, Calvin Kingsley, Pro- fessors ; M. G. Briggs, Agent. Besides the north-western point of the State of Pennsyl- vania, above referred to, this conference embraces portions of the New- York and Ohio States bordering on Pennsyl- vania. But the greatest point of interest is its connexion with Lake Erie. It was the author's privilege to touch at one of the most important stations, Cleveland, in this con- ference, and to witness, as in many other cases, the rapid development of the resources of the country. The harbour is both spacious and safe ; and the city presents a beautiful appearance from the water. The Cuyahoga River empties itself into the lake at this point ; and the Ohio canal termi- nates here. This city is destined to hold a high position amongst the cities of the lakes. VII. The North Ohio Conference joins that of Erie. This conference contains seven districts, — Delaware, Mount Vernon, Wooster, Norwalk, Tiffin, Maumee, Sidney : eighty stations, circuits, and missions ; one hundred and thirty-three ministers, with forty-two local preachers, and twenty-six thousand and forty-three church-members, fifty- six of whom are coloured people. We find the following special appointments : — Ohio Wes- leyan University, Edward Thompson, President ; H. M. Johnson, Professor ; E. B. Gurly, Agent. Baldwin Institute, Lorenzo Warner, Principal. Chaplain to Western Seamen's Friend Society for the port of Toledo, Thomas Cooper. TERRITORIAL PROGRESS OF THE M. E. CHURCH. 367 The above university, which is located at Delaware, was founded so recently as 1844. Dr. Thompson, like some other eminent men in the ministry, is an M. D., and has been selected for his present onerous post on account of his abilities and learning. The State of Ohio stretches from the river of that name to Lake Erie ; and this North Ohio Conference touches its beautiful waters. There remains much land still to "possess;" but the country is rapidly filling up with a thriving and prosperous population. VIII. The Michigan Conference is the next in our present line. This name, it is to be presumed, is taken from the State, and this latter from Lake Michigan. This con- ference gives us seven districts ; namely, Detroit, Ann Ar- bor', Marshall, Monroe, Kalamazoo, Grand River, and In- dian Mission : seventy-nine stations, circuits, and missions ; one hundred and eighteen ministers, with one hundred and ninety-one local preachers ; sixteen thousand and seventy- one church-members, eight of whom are coloured people. The special appointments are as follows : — John A. Baughman, Agent of the American Bible Society ; D. D. Whedon, Professor in the Michigan University ; F. C. Kin- near, Principal of the Wesleyan Seminary at Albion. Michigan University, in which Mr. Whedon is a profes- sor, is not a Methodist institution. It is located at Ann Arbor, and was founded so lately as 1837. But the fact that this gentleman is appointed to his present office by the authorities of the university, shows that neither Method- ism nor its ministers occupy a low position in public esti- mation. IX. The North Indiana Conference unites with the Michigan. This division contains nine districts, — Green- castle, Craiofordsville, Lafayette, Indianapolis, Centreville, Peru, Logansport, Laporte, Fort Wayne : eighty-six sta- tions, circuits, and missions ; one hundred and thirteen 368 TOUR IN AMERICA.— PART IV. ministers, with two hundred and fifty-seven local preach- ers ; and twenty-six thousand three hundred and two church-members : of this number there are fifty coloured people. We find the following extra appointments : — Indiana Asbury University, William C. Larabee, Cyrus Nutt, Pro- fessors ; G. M. Beswick, W. H. Huffman, Agents ; B. F. Tefft, Editor of Ladies' Repository ; Aaron Wood, Agent of the American Bible Society. But though the Minutes report the above-named gentle- men as officers of Asbury University, by turning to the Indiana Conference we shall find four more appointments. The usage seems to be to place every minister in connexion with his own conference, let his official post be what it may. Hence a person may belong to a conference at any dis- tance, and yet have an appointment in one of the public institutions in another place. The four additional appoint- ments referred to are, — Matthew Simpson, President of the Indiana Asbury University; Isaac Owen, Agent for the Indiana Asbury University ; Greenlee H. M'Laughlin, Agent for the current expenses of the Indiana Asbury Uni- versity ; and William M. Daily, Agent for the Agricultural Professorship of the Indiana Asbury University. It seems that agricultural science is connected with this school. Looking at the business of farming as one of the permanent callings of a vast population, this will appear a suitable subject of study. Who can say that farming ought not to have the advantages of learning as well as other de- partments ? Why should not the exterior world engage the recondite investigations of gifted men ? Surely, there is enough in the business of agriculture to make it most de- sirable that all the productions of mother earth should be scientifically examined, classified, and used. Be this as it may, the functions of Dr. Simpson are of a different order ; and no doubt he ably discharges his duty. Dr. Simpson is a man of mark. I had the privilege of TERRITORIAL PROGRESS OF THE M. E. CHURCH. 369 much friendly intercourse with this gentleman, and wit- nessed with great admiration the discharge of his public duties at the conference. He is a very able man in every way, and, being young, is likely, it is hoped, long to bless the Church and the world with the benefits of his valuable labours. X. We now come to the Rock River Conference, the last on this lake line. The district of country designated by this term, seems to lie betwixt the western shores of Lake Michigan and the Mississippi River. It contains ten districts ; namely, Chicago, Ottowa, Washington, Peoria, Bock Island, Mount Morris, Platteville, Fondulac Mission, Mihvaukie, and Racine : one hundred and seven stations, circuits, and missions ; one hundred and forty-one ministers, with three hundred and nineteen local preachers ; and eighteen thousand nine hundred and thirteen church-mem- bers, twenty-seven of whom are people of colour, and one hundred and sixty-one Indians. It cheers one at length to meet with some Indians. We have traversed a prodigious extent of country before over- taking any of them, except once. Here some of them are, it seems, driven to the extremity of the States, in this direction ; for this Rock River Conference joins the Wis- consin Territory ; indeed, embraces some of it : and, as the term indicates, it is a newly settled country, not yet formed into a State. When these Wisconsin people have filled the country, will any of the Indians remain ? It is certain they will not. What will be their fate, when the tide of popu- lation has reached the utmost limits of the country in the direction of the west ; when the inhabitants of the Atlantic shore, and those of the Pacific, are linked together in one unbroken chain; it is fearful to think. They will not be pushed into the waters of the mighty deep ; but the pressure, like that of disease and age, will crush the last of their noble race to the earth. 16* 370 TOUR IN AMERICA. — PART IV. We find the name of a station in this conference some- what familiar to the ears of English people ; but in a very different connexion : it is Nauvoo. Nauvoo, it will be re- membered, is, or was, the headquarters of the Mormonites ; who, on account of their fantastic and impious doctrines, have met, we are told, with no great favour from the Ame- rican people. They have been driven from this place, and are wandering in various directions ; and amongst other locations which they have selected, the parliamentary de- bates lately taught us, that numbers of them were squatting in Vancouver's Island. We know not whether the good and zealous Methodist preachers occupied this post of duty before or after the dispersion of these poor, deluded Mor- monites. It is likely they rushed in amongst them for the purpose of seeking their conversion ; but, failing to accom- plish this, they now occupy the quarters from whence these obstinate blockheads have been driven. Would it not be as well, if a name can be found, to change the old one ? Having now passed through this interesting portion of territory, it may be proper, as in the case of the Atlantic seaboard, to give a tabular summary. Conferences. Dist. Circuits. Minist. Supermini. Local Pr. Members. Troy 7 138 174 16 133 25.327 Vermont. ... 3 64 71 14 46 7.953 Black River .. 6 93 113 11 145 15^917 Oneida 8 127 160 27 202 25.776 Genesee .... 9 159 187 32 253 26.682 Erie 6 85 128 13 193 20J143 North Ohio . . 7 80 133 8 242 26.043 Michigan ... 7 79 118 10 193 16,5-14 North Indiana 9 86 113 7 258 26,302 Rock River . 10 107 141 20 319 20,143 72 1,065 1,343 153 1,984 210,790 It is extremely difficult to say which portion of the United States is the more important, or promises to excel in permanent prosperity, when, in fact, the whole is so rich in promise. But there are two things which appear very favourable in the regions now under review ; namely, the TERRITORIAL PROGRESS OF THE M. E. CHURCH. 371 climate and the lakes. It is in vain to deny that climate has anything to do with the characteristics of our race. Northern latitudes have always produced the most mus- cular, hardy, and masculine races. That some kind of in- telligence, such as develops itself in delicate, poetic, and refined sentiments, may be found in the more genial and luxuriant portions of the earth, will be allowed ; but the working and the governing races have always been found located in the midst of Borean tempests. The voluptuous south may cradle its generations of impassioned sons ; but the north will always produce the ruling class. This will probably be the course of things with the people we have been contemplating. They are, at present, but in their in- fancy of social life. Not more than something like one- third of the land belonging to the State of New-York is cleared, and even that not perfectly. Vast forests still await the woodman's stroke, and prodigious tracts of fruit- ful soil must some day reward the labours of the husband- man. This State is remarkably formed, probably at first without design, but in its effects very much for its own ad- vantage. Let the reader take a fan in his hand, just open it, and he has presented to him the form of the State of New-York. The narrow point which he holds in his hand is the city itself, and the spreading silk is the country stretching away to the lakes. The shores of these waters constitute the wide-spread circumference of the State. This is a great territorial and commercial advantage ; inasmuch as the Atlantic and the Lakes are linked together. New- York harbour is now one of the great commercial emporiums of the world, and it is destined to be the greatest. Its rivers, canals, and railroads, connect it with Lakes Ontario and Erie ; and these again with the St. Lawrence on the one side, and through that noble river with all the British do- minions and the Atlantic ; and then, in the other direction, with Lakes Michigan, Huron, Superior, and the Mississippi. All we have mentioned, and much more, makes it abso- 372 TOUR IN AMERICA. — PART IV. lutely certain that, as time advances, this State will grow into a great kingdom. The contiguous countries through which we have been passing, partake of the same features of prosperity and progress ; but we mark this one in par- ticular, that we may have something definite before us. Now, how stands the question with respect to Method- ism in this State ? We have already remarked on the sub- ject with respect to the city : what is its progress in the country ? We answer, that four of the conferences we have been examining lie principally in the State of New- York ; namely, Troy, Black River, Oneida, Genesee, and a part of Erie. In these conferences we find 93,702 church-members ; which, with 45,907 for New- York itself, gives a total of 140,609. If we suppose — which is a low estimate — that there will be four other persons, for every one of these, belonging to congregations, families, and schools, who are not members of the Church, but who are attached to Methodism as their religious system, then we shall have 562,436 persons under its influence in this one State. How long has this work been in progress ? When did it begin? Philip Embury preached his first sermon in New- York in 1766. Captain Webb followed in a year or two, and in 1769 Richard Boardman and Joseph Pilmoor were appointed by the British Conference. This is no very remote date. There must have been some life and energy in a Church which can present such a result in so short a time. But the nature of the power whence all this has sprung, is a matter of serious importance. Suspicions are enter- tained as to organizations of this sort. It is often imagined that self-interest, ambition, or enthusiasm, leads men to unite in these masses. In the early times of Methodism, as well as in the primitive ages of the Church, these con- fraternities were suspected of perpetrating, in their private assemblies, gross and revolting immoralities. All this has TERRITORIAL PROGRESS OF THE M. E. CHURCH. 373 passed away long ago. But still the problem remains un- solved, — What has led to this result ? We can entertain no doubt but that this church-organi- zation originated in real religious faith, convictions, and power. It w T as not in the beginning, any more than it is at present, produced by any mysterious gravitating in- stincts, leading men to unite together they know not why. And, moreover, it never imbibed the spirit, acted upon the principles, or proposed the ends, of communism — in any form or shape. The men who formed these first societies did so under the teaching and influence of religion alone. There is something very much akin to the progress of the first churches of Christ, in this great development of reli- gious power, from so small a beginning. With some per- sons, the insignificance of the instruments, and the ab- sence of all the supposed fitness for so great a work, will form a difficulty. Let it be remembered, however, that this objection lies as much against the apostles and first evangelists, as against these men. But when this class of difficulties is felt and objections raised, they always rest upon the implied principle, — not seen, not understood, per- haps, but certainly in the mind, — that the conversion of men and the spread of religion is a human thing. If di- vine, if of God, then, for aught which can be imagined, Peter and Paul, — Bunyan and Baxter, — Asbury and Lee, — might be very fit and suitable instruments. It is not learning without God, — not philosophy without the Holy Spirit, — not a polished exterior and worldly distinctions without faith,- — which can save the souls of men, or lay the foundation of churches. Then, if this work is begun in the grace and power of the Divinity, acting through the labours of men, it is easy to see that in innumerable cases the fittest instruments will be persons of plain, but pure and elevated, minds. Judging of the nature of the work to be done in Ame- rica, one cannot but admire the wisdom of God, in the se= 374 TOUR IN AMERICA.— PART IV. lection of his instruments. Would delicate and fastidious gentlemen have gone into the American wilderness to preach the Gospel, — to converse in familiar phrase with the peasant emigrant, in order to seek his salvation? Would this class have submitted to the privations of a new country ? have cheerfully taken their place in the log-hut, and been content with its fare and its lodging ? Nay, had this class of persons been disposed to enter the field, could they have done the work required ? The tone, dignity, and superiority produced by a high style of education and knowledge, are very beautiful and excellent, but rather be- long to society when formed and polished than to its wil- derness state. We may safely say that they could not, if they would, have accomplished the work assigned to our pioneer evangelists. But let it not be supposed that the plain Christian preacher is incapable of great service for religion because he is destitute of the ability to descant on its philosophy. Those who make history seldom write it. Those who per- form noble deeds are never the men to emblazon them. These classes are too busy with their enterprise to turn aside to talk about its progress. Their work, the temple raised, is their monument. Judging by this rule, we shall be led to see that the workmen selected by God were fit- ting instruments for his purpose. Their very plainness, their paucity of polish, might ope- rate in their circumstances most beneficially. They would, as one consequence, be kept from theorizing, from plung- ing into the abstract, from soaring into the ideal. But, better still, they would be kept to their work, and find their happiness in its success. They were eminently men of one business, and their calling swallowed up their whole soul. This principle is found to succeed in other things : why should it not in this ? Their oneness of purpose will account for their success, as far as instrumentality is con- cerned. But it will account for much more : — What led TERRITORIAL PROGRESS OF THE M. E. CHURCH. 375 to this entire separation of themselves from the world, and devotedness to such a cause as this? Certainly, religious faith. They had a firm and vivid belief in the Christianity which they went about to establish; they had confidence and certainty in their own vocation and calling ; they had no doubt as to the particular dispensation in which they were called to be workmen ; they entertained a full per- suasion in their inmost soul in the principle that God could " raise up children to Abraham" from amongst the scat- tered tribes around them ; and they saw, in the promised perspective, that the American " tvilderness and solitary place should be glad and blossom as the rose :" " be glad" in the privileges, blessings, and joys of God's salvation ; and " blossom" in all the beautiful fertility of Christian holiness and love. Yes, these men knew what they were doing ; they lived, and laboured, and suffered, under the full and plenary conviction that God had sent them, and they were accomplishing his will. But this of itself is not sufficient to account for the won- derful moral phenomena on which we look. There must have been something more than man's labours, to bring about these results, though performed in honest simplicity, and under the impressions of a strong belief in the " things of God." We refer to the direct influence of God the Holy Ghost. Nothing short of his influence and effusions could possibly produce this spiritual and moral creation. The beginning, the original impulse, the life, must have sprung from this source. How could human nature, or the politi- cal and social movements going on in this new country, produce this spiritual life ? Its first seed must have come from above. This being the case, all the rest would fol- low. The unsightly root, which out of the soil is lifeless and barren, no sooner finds a congenial element therein, than it bursts through the incrustations in which it is em- bedded, and, appropriating to itself the nourishing influen- ces of nature, soon appears a perfect tree, clothed with 376 TOUR IN AMERICA. — PART IV. foliage and laden with fruit. So it must have been with this " seed of the kingdom." How could the " word of the gospel," sown by these good but powerless men, have produced so rich a harvest, had it not been a divine seed, and been blessed by the fructifying rains and dews of God's Holy Spirit? We are chiefly contemplating this work in its organized form. But let us endeavour to understand it. We shall be in great error, if we imagine that the organization cre- ated the people. The people formed the system, and not the system the people. Nothing could be more simple than this process. The men who entered the wilderness in order to cultivate it took no theory, no plan, no platform. All they did was to preach the truth ; to deposit it in the soul ; and then leave it to its own development. They won the people to Christ, and then trusted them to his care and love, to be dealt with and to be employed as he chose. The rest followed. They obeyed the instincts of their new nature ; and, as in social life, sought union with each other. They felt the impulse of holy and divine affections ; and, as in the closest and most endearing friendships and rela- tions, they delighted to commingle with kindred hearts. Here is the origin, the plastic power of this fellowship, this brotherhood. Rules followed the life ; thev did not create it. The whole framework and machinery of the Church sprang from this antecedent power and holiness. Wants grew up with existence, as they do in all analogous cases. The most complex constitutional system is only the expan- sion of society in a state of high civilization. This is the case also, if we understand the question, of the American Methodist Church. But every religious organization must cherish and keep the spiritual alive, or otherwise the framework will soon break down. The same reviving " showers of blessing " from above, the same effusions of the Holy Ghost, the same presence of Christ, the same fulness of divine love, which TERRITORIAL PROGRESS OF THE M. E. CHURCH. 377 were sought and enjoyed by the first converts, must be constantly sought and received, or wintry barrenness must succeed the beauty and fertility of spring and summer. The walls of a palace may remain after its lord is dead. This is the danger of complicated, perfected organization. Through all nature we see, that as soon as the fruit is ripe, it falls ; and as soon as physical life is perfect, it begins to exhibit signs of decay. How different, now, at this mo- ment, is the political and economical state of America, as compared with some of the old, worn-out nations of Eu- rope ! — just upon this principle : the one is like a fine ath- letic youth, full of health, bloom, vigour, activity; the other, like a decrepit old man, worn down by years, and equally full of miseries ; not knowing which way to turn, or what expedient to adopt, to keep himself alive. Something like this comes to be the condition of churches. Perhaps there is no great danger of formality, languor, or decay, at present in American Methodism, — of the external, parasite- like growths, first embracing and then crushing the spirit- ual; the organization, with its complexities, superseding and pushing aside the vital and divine. But this danger must come. Everything, indeed, at present, favours the idea of pro- gress. The Church cannot well stand still while everything else is in motion. She must move on with the perpetually advancing tide, or be left, like a gallant ship, stranded on the shore. Nothing can continue stationary in the States. They are obliged to go on. The wilderness cannot remain as it is ; the gloomy solitudes must be peopled ; the dark forests, now that the Indian no longer prowls through their thickets in quest of game, must give place to the civilized man; and innumerable, untold, indeed, unimagined, multi- tudes of cities, with their teeming and busy populations, will, of necessity, occupy these silent and melancholy re- gions. The Church is obliged to advance with these ever- progressing multitudes. At present, the Methodist body 378 TOUR IN AMERICA. — PART IV. most certainly truly apprehends its duties and its destiny, and is nobly pressing on in the career of usefulness. We hope — we pray — that it may never lose its spirit ; never sink into inertness ; never be paralyzed by its own ponder- ous bulk ; and never forget or forsake the principles and the elevated faith of its founders. III.— THE OHIO LINE. By following another of the great lines of communica- tion into " the far- west," we shall meet with the same thing as we have done in the other routes. Pass the Alleghany Mountains, either from Philadelphia or Baltimore, to Pitts- burgh ; from thence to Cincinnati, and from the latter place to St. Louis ; and a distance something like from fifteen hundred to two thousand miles will be laid out to traverse. This is the journey we now propose. In all these States of the west, with their cities and towns constantly increasing in population, the Methodist Church has planted her insti- tutions. Besides the chief places already mentioned, which contain very large bodies of people belonging to our faith, the noble-minded servants of God have entered the wilder- ness wherever man is found to have pitched his tent, and have introduced the ever-blessed gospel. It was the writer's good fortune to meet with many of the humble, but courageous and enterprising, " backwood" missionaries, who had spent their lives in following their countrymen into the forests and prairies of these distant regions, for the purpose of winning them to Christ. A finer race of men it was never his happiness to see ; ath- letic, robust, muscular ; of noble and independent mien, open countenance, lofty and expanded brow, brave and resolute bearing ; and withal full of fine common sense, in- telligence, benevolence, and zeal. These men had, many of them, followed the Indians to their hunting-ground, and lived with them in their wigwams ; had borne with their childish weaknesses, and the storm of their fierce and fu- TERRITORIAL PROGRESS OF THE M. E. CHURCH. 379 rious passions ; — and all for the sake of their spiritual and eternal good. They had, as well, accompanied the white race in their endless peregrinations. They had lived, more- over, to witness the magnificent result. Many a race of " squatters" they had seen become a race of freeholders, substantial farmers, happy and prosperous in their circum- stances. Many a group of log-huts, letting in wind and weather, they had beheld changed into beautiful villages or substantial towns, the residence of civilization, opulence, and religion. Many a league of gloomy, almost impervious forest they had witnessed yield to the woodman's axe, to the ploughman's industry ; and, in the place of this, had beheld rich and abundant harvests waving beneath the breezes of heaven. Many haggard, care-worn, afflicted, and anxious matrons, dragged into the wilderness by their lords, surrounded by a wretched, squalid, fretful family, — they had lived to see rise above their difficulties, and be- come the centres of domestic order and peace, and cheered by beholding their sons and daughters pass into a happy and hopeful maturity. Yes, these "backwood" preachers have seen something of life ! They have done some work worth mentioning for God and for man ; and they now reap their reward in the fruits of their toil. Nothing can well exceed in importance the results of this success. What would these vast regions have become, had they been peopled by our profligate race, without the cor- rective power and influence of the gospel ? It is easy to anticipate. The people must have sunk into a state of per- fect barbarism, as well as unmitigated vice. To have pre- vented this is a great work. But the prevention of a pre- sent catastrophe of this kind is not the whole ; it is not half the case. These men have laid a foundation for the per- manent Christian and social progress of these new aggre- gations of people. They have succeeded in planting the ordinances of the gospel in what may be fitly considered the rudimental state of society. They have gone to the 380 TOUR IN AMERICA. — PART IV. bottom ; they have begun at the beginning ; throwing the salt into the very fountain, they have purified the stream. I, After passing the Alleghanies, and descending into the valley of the Mississippi, the first conference boundary we enter is that of Pittsburgh. In this division we have nine districts ; namely, Pittsburgh, Uniontown, Clarksburg, Mor- gantown, Wheeling, Barnsville, Cambridge, Steubenville, Bea- ver: one hundred and eleven stations, circuits, and missions ; one hundred and eighty-four ministers, with two hundred and sixty-five local preachers ; and forty-two thousand three hundred and seventy-eight church -members ; three hundred and forty-five of these being people of colour. We find the following appointments : — Editor of Pitts- burgh "Christian Advocate," William Hunter. North- western Virginia Academy, Gordon Battell, Principal ; Alexander Martin, Teacher. Alleghany College, H. J. Clarke, President ; F. S. De Hass, Agent. There is also something here which is not noticed ; namely, a very large and spacious Book- Concern, with a most excellent Agent at its head ; and inasmuch as his name is not inserted for Pittsburgh, he, of course, belongs to another conference. The progress of religion in Pittsburgh may be imagined from the state of things, as described by Bishop Asbury, in 1809:— " We reached John Wrenshall's," he remarks, " in Pittsburgh, on Friday evening. The Rev. Mr. Steel offered, unsolicited, in the name of the Presbyterian eldership, their large, elegant house for Sunday's exercises. I preached at Thomas Cooper's on Saturday. " Sabbatb, 20th. I accepted the offer made, and preached at three o'clock. It was an open time. Could we unite nations and lan- guages, as well as spirits and tempers, we might do great things here. A Baptist family of the name of Plummer receives us on Tuesday. Young Plummer is sick, a child is sick, and the whole family feel awful. Who will pray with young Plummer when we are gone % The young man is certainly under convictions." TERRITORIAL PROGRESS OP THE M. E. CHURCH. 881 Here we have dates and facts. In 1809, Bishop Asbury had no place of worship to perform divine service in ; he preached in Thomas Cooper's cottage on Saturday, and the Presbyterian church on Sunday. He had no Methodist family to entertain him, it seems ; and he was invited to a Baptist's of the name of Plummer ; and, when he was gone, he kneAV of no one who would pray with " young Plum- mer," who was " certainly under convictions." How amazing the progress of forty years ! We now find about ten large Methodist churches, and a corresponding number of people. II. The Ohio Conference joins that of Pittsburgh. We have in this division fifteen districts ; namely, East Cincinnati, West Cincinnati, Dayton, JJrbana, Hillsbo- rough, Chilicotke, Columbus, Zanesville, Marietta, Ports- mouth, Kanawha, Cincinnati German, Pittsburgh German, Indiana German, North Ohio German : one hundred and sixty-one stations, circuits, and missions ; two hundred and eight ministers, with five hundred and twenty-eight local preachers ; and sixty-two thousand one hundred and ninety- eight church-members, five hundred and fourteen of whom are people of colour. The number of special appointments for this conference will be found very great. We have the following : — Western Book Concern, Leroy Swormstedt, Agent ; West- ern Christian Advocate, Charles Elliott ; Christian Apolo- gist, William Nast ; Agent to the American Bible Society, William P. Strickland ; Wesleyan Female College, P. B. Wilbur, President ; M. P. Gaddis, Agent ; Ohio Confer- ence High School, Solomon Howard, Principal ; Augusta College, Joseph S. Tomlinson, President ; Oakland Female Seminary, Joseph M'D. Mathews, Principal ; Greenfield Seminary, James G. Blair ; Frederick Merrick and L. D. M'Cabe, Professors in the Ohio Western University; Worthington Female Seminary, Ezra M. Boring, Principal ; 382 TOUR IN AMERICA. — PART IV. Uriah Heath, Agent ; James B. Finley, Moral and Reli- gious Instructor to the Ohio Penitentiary. The above Charles Elliott is Dr. Elliott, the author of "Romanism Delineated," — republished in this country. Dr. Elliott is an Irishman ; and is possessed of the vivacity, acumen, logical power, and withal hatred of popery, which unite to distinguish the natives of the north of Ireland. In his editorial labours, as well as in his Delineation, he has done good service in the support of Protestantism. He is, besides, a perfect abolitionist. Slavery can have no favour in the sight of Dr. Elliott. It is an abhorred and detested O evil ; an unmitigated injury to the slaves themselves ; a crime in the slaveholder to exact this oppressive wrong ; and, moreover, an outrage against Christianity, and a sin against Almighty God, in the estimation of Dr. Elliott. These, if I understood him aright, are the sentiments he entertains on this subject. He is now removed from his office of editor of the Western Christian Advocate, and placed in another very responsible literary post ;* namely, to write the history of the great division which has taken place in the Methodist Episcopal Church ; and in the pro- secution of this task, of course, the question of slavery must, in some of its phases, if not in all of them, come before his attention. From the character of Dr. Elliott, his habits of research, his thorough acquaintance with his sub- ject, and the deep interest he feels in the points at issue ; it is not too much to expect a very able work on the subject. Dr. Tomlinson, the President of Augusta College, lo- cated at a place of that name in Kentucky, is equally adverse to slavery, — takes decided views, and does not hesitate to announce them. He is, also, in other respects, a man of talent, of energy, and of learning. Dr. Tomlinson appeared to great advantage in the Pittsburgh Confer- ence, in every question in which he took a part. But the establishment which will excite the most earnest * [Not as a separate " post :" Dr. Elliott has a regular station as a preacher.] TERRITORIAL PROGRESS OF THE M. E. CHURCH. 383 curiosity, in this long list of learned institutions, is the Fe- male College of Cincinnati. It is easy to anticipate many scruples as to this institu- tion. To give diplomas to young ladies may excite sur- prise in the grave dames of this country, and cause the gentlemen to shrug their shoulders in consternation, ex- claiming, " What next ?" But really, after all, why should not learning and good conduct be encouraged and stimulated in the female sex as well as in the other ? Do they occupy an unimportant position in communities ? Are their sons and daughters less likely to become respectable, pious, and useful members of society for the good training, attainments, and honourable distinctions of their mothers ? Is a well- disciplined mind, a cultivated intellect, a soul inspired with the noble sentiments which a knowledge of truth must give, less likely than others to govern a household with wisdom and discretion ? Have not mothers much more to do with the formation of the character of their sons than the father ? and, as a consequence, much more concern in laying the foundations of communities in all which concerns their manners and morals ? Are not families the light, the salt, the ornament, the salvation of States ? And are not women all this to the family ? And, moreover, cannot the vulgarity, the rudeness, the asperities of the world, be moderated and polished by the more delicate and milder nature of the softer sex ? This being so, how can it be improper to adopt means effectually to educate the young girls as well as the young boys of any generation ? But there are other reasons for these female colleges in America. The disciples of the Church of Rome, in all these matters, exhibit more practical sense than Protestants. In every part of the world, they have always striven to obtain the education of youth. This has been, amongst other things, one of the most remarkable vocations of the Jesuits. They are now at work in every quarter of the globe ; and, as might be expected, with indefatigable in- 384 TOUR IN AMERICA. — PART IV. dustry and perseverance in the United States. Hence these institutions are partly framed in self-defence. The very intelligent principal of the college informed me, that the Methodist body found it absolutely necessary to establish these schools, in order to prevent the children of their own people from being alienated from them by being educated at either a Popish or else some other school, alien in senti- ment to their own Church. Moreover, he gave me to understand that their establishment had commended itself very much to the public ; it was well supported, always being full ; and had answered the purpose of preserving the children of their flocks from going astray. We may be pretty certain that there is something valua- ble and vital in this novel establishment. Of all men, the Americans will be found to possess a clear perception of what is practically important and useful. Without examina- tion, if it is found that these people have established some- thing new, it may be assumed at once that some useful element may be discovered somewhere, that a valuable end is proposed. Being free from prepossessions and preju- dices, as well as free in other things, they do not scruple to adopt modes of action, which in this and the other old European societies would be laughed at. Many of their projects have been so treated by other people. This mat- ters little to the Yankee. You may laugh as long as you please ; but, generally speaking, he is sure of his game. This very institution will, undoubtedly, prove a most in- teresting auxiliary to the Church, and an element of great power for the conservation of the Protestant youth of the country. The " women"* are always the objects of atten- tion with the Popish Church ; and the Americans have no objection, in this affair, even to take a lesson out of their book. The moral force of Popery, so long exercised in the world, has been accomplished very much through the so- * See Michelet's remarkable pamphlet, entitled, " Priests, Women, and Families." TERRITORIAL PROGRESS OF THE M. E. CHURCH. 385 cieties formed in various ways to influence, to educate, and then to employ, " women," for the furtherance of its ob- jects. With us, generally, it is sufficient to know that the Popish Church adopts a certain line of policy at once to discard it. If it is Popish, that is quite enough ; we in- stinctively resolve that it must be wrong, and adopt a course as opposite as we can. This has been the case regarding female education. The Church of Rome has everywhere maintained an ascendency. Many of the nun- neries have always been set apart for educational purposes ; and now, the highest and the best female education which can be obtained is to be found in these establishments. We have nothing of this kind in Protestantism in this coun- try, or, as far as I know, elsewhere in Europe. The education of females is left to accident, to chance. The Americans have in this, as in other things, taken the initia- tive ; and, when we have done laughing and wondering at the notion of female colleges and diplomas, we shall imitate them. The sooner the better ; at any rate in spirit, in principle. Our opposition to Popery by declamatory harangues is just beating the air. The papacy is not an abstraction ; it is an organization of living souls ; and it will employ any kind of industry to train a child, to gain a proselyte, to attract another atom to the Church. Like the coral insect, they are busy in building their island in the ocean ; and, being constant in their labour, they consequently progress in every place. The priests of this sect care no more about the declamations of Protestants than the insect tribe — secure below the surface of the sea — care for the rumbling of the tempest on the surface. The only possible way of keeping out Popery is to occupy the soil. Let the world be filled with institutions, educational and religious, which shall embody, and set forth truth, — the truth of the Bible, and truth on all other subjects ; and then the falsehoods of this system will find no room. 386 TOUR IN AMERICA. — PART IV. With much less of asperity, as it struck me, than is found amongst ourselves, the American people have a full perception as to the evils of Popery. Their system of government, however, never allows them to think of op- posing it by any legislative enactment. The only means they ever imagine or think of adopting are moral. This very female college, so far as it is designed to be protective, is a measure of this sort. It occupies the space, it fills the vacuum ; and in this way it bars out the Popish nunnery. The American Methodist Church will, no doubt, aim at giving as good, and, if possible, a better, education, than the nunnery, and beat Popery even in its own favourite vocation. Certainly they will entertain no doubt on the practicability of this, or anything else which they see to be desirable. There is a spirit in them to cope with any difficulty, and to win any prize which may be within the reach of man. They indulge no doubt as to the excellency of their system ; and, this being the case, they set them- selves manfully to carry its embodied truths into living efficiency. Whilst we are bandying about our dogmas in fierce debate, and appealing to the legislature, the American is doing his own work ; he is putting his principles into practical operation, by forming institutions to give them development, and to bring them to bear upon society. I remember seeing in some Romish periodical, in a letter from a missionary-priest, employed in — I think — Oregon, that they met with more obstruction from the ignorant and fanatical Methodists than from any other people. If I am not mistaken, in future years, as the struggle thickens, and the belligerents come face to face on this continent, the Methodist body will present a noble front, to obstruct the progress of this ambitious and intrusive Church, — more re- solute and potent, perhaps, than any other power, not even excepting the civil government. There is another interesting incident connected with the Methodism of Cincinnati. It is, that four of the districts TERRITORIAL PROGRESS OF THE M. E. CHURCH. 387 enumerated are German. These four German districts, indeed, embrace much more territory than is included in this conference. It will be seen that they extend to Pitts- burgh, Indiana, and North Ohio, as well as to Cincinnati. The number of missions is thirty-four ; with forty-two mis- sionaries. Great numbers of Germans have located in these quarters ; and religion has spread amongst them in a most encouraging manner. This work began, in its present, its modern form, in the conversion of a learned native of Ger- many ; who, when he left Europe, and for some time after- wards, cherished skeptical notions. Being himself savingly converted to God, he instantly began to recommend the Saviour to his countrymen ; and, from this beginning, one of the noblest works of religion in modern times has sprung up and spread its hallowing leaven. It was my happiness to listen to the account of these things from this minister's own lips ; who, in company with two or three more Ger- man missionaries, detailed the interesting narrative. This gentleman having been trained at one of the universities of Germany, (as was the case with several others,) he en- joys the advantages of learning in connexion with piety. Dr. Nast sustains a literary as well as a ministerial relation to his countrymen, and is well able either to exhibit or defend the doctrines he has happily embraced. In fact, both these functions are well sustained by him. But the greatest ornament and beauty of these German Christians is their piety. They are eminently devout and holy men. It is impossible to hold intercourse with them without being impressed with the purity and affection of their spirit. They are, indeed, in happy circumstances. Religion with them is emphatically a new creation. They were all either Papists, or, what is quite as deadening to the soul, Ra- tionalists. Their escape is like getting out of hell into heaven. They feel all this. It impresses them deeply; so that, in truth, religion with them is enjoyed in all its virgin sweetness. They are in their " first love ;" and the 388 TOUR IN AMERICA.— PART IV. ardour and simplicity of their souls is perfectly refreshing to see — rather to feel. These Germans must live in the affections of all who come in contact with them. III. On the Ohio, in the State of Kentucky, below Cincinnati, stands the city of Louisville, which gives its name to a conference. The Louisville Conference contains five districts ; namely, Louisville, Harding sburg, Smithland, Hopkinsville, and Bowling -Green: fifty-four sta- tions, circuits, and missions ; sixty-six ministers, with one hundred and ninety-nine local preachers ; twenty thousand four hundred and seventy-two church-members, three thou- sand seven hundred and forty-two of whom are people of colour. We have one extra appointment : — Funk Seminary, J, Randolph Finley. Louisville, as the name imports, was originally settled by the French. It is no great distance below Cincinnati, on the Ohio, and is a place of great commercial importance. It belongs to the southern Church, and slavery obtains through the country around. It is clear, however, that great religious progress has been made. Louisville was visited by Bishop Asbury, when in a very infantine state, who, in 1811, says he preached "in great affliction of body ; but it was a liberal season." From that period it has risen, as we see, to great consideration. IV. Kentucky is skirted, through a part of its frontier, by the Ohio River ; and, consequently, the conference bearing that name joins the Ohio Conference. The Ken- tucky Conference belongs to the Methodist Episcopal Church, South. We find eight districts ; namely, ParJcers- burg, Guyandotte, Maysville, Covington, Lexington, Shelby- ville, Harrodsburg, Barbourville : seventy-five stations, circuits, and missions ; ninety-three ministers, with two hundred and forty local preachers ; and twenty-eight thou- TERRITORIAL PROGRESS OF THE M. E. CHURCH. 389 sand six hundred and twenty-four church-members ; five thousand one hundred and eighty-three of these are people of colour. We are now, as will be seen by the number of people of colour belonging to this conference, in a slave-holding State. The progress of the slave population is great. In 1790, it only amounted to 11,830; and in 1840, it had increased to 182,258. We find the following appointments connected with this conference : — Transylvania University, H. B. Bascom, Jo- siah L. Kemp. This institution is located at Lexington, and is, for America, an old establishment ; having been founded in 1*798. It is reported in the Repository as having seven instructers ; six hundred and ten is given as the number of its alumni ; three ministers ; one hundred and twelve students ; and four thousand five hundred volumes in its library. V. Adjoining Kentucky, to the south-east, in the State of Tennessee, the Holston River is seen emptying itself, after a pretty long course, into the Tennessee. This river and district of country gives its name to a conference. The Holston Conference contains seven districts ; namely, Wytheville, Abingdon, JRogersville, Knoxville, Cumberland, Alliens, Ashville : sixty-four stations, circuits, and missions ; eighty -four ministers, with three hundred and thirty -four local preachers ; and thirty-eight thousand three hundred and one church-members, three thousand nine hundred and fifty-seven of whom are people of colour. We find the following extra appointments : — Emory and Henry College, C. Collins, President; E. C. Wiley, Pro- fessor; Holston College, C. Fulton, President and Agent; Knoxville Female Institute, D. R. M' Anally ; M. Episco- palian, L. Patton, Editor ; Thomas Stringfield, Agent to the American Bible Society ; William H. Rogers, Agent to Sabbath-schools. 390 TOUR IN AMERICA.— PART IV. Emory and Henry College is located at Glade-Spring, in Virginia, and was established in 1839. This division of territory lies a little out of our line. It does not touch the Ohio at any point ; neither does it be- long to the Atlantic or the Mississippi lines. The Holston Conference embraces some small portions of North Caro- lina, Georgia, and Virginia ; but it cannot be classed with those conferences. We place it on the Ohio line, because it is nearer to it than any other. It belongs to the Me- thodist Church, South, and is a slave-holding territory. Good Bishop Asbury seems to have met with some cross providences in these quarters, in the early history of Methodism. He says : — " We crossed Holston to Smith's Ferry, and rode thirty miles to Ami's, where we were entertained for our money We turned out our horses to graze, and they strayed off: so here we are anchored indeed We are now in a house in which a man was killed hy the savages ; and 0, poor creatures, they are but one remove from savages themselves. I consider myself in danger ; hut my God will keep me whilst thousands pray for me. My soul is humbled before God, waiting to see the solution of this dark providence, (the loss of the horses.) The man of the house is gone after some horses sup- posed to be stolen by Indians. I have been near fainting ; but my soul is revived again, and my bodily strength is somewhat recovered. We loaded brother Anderson's little horse with my great bags, and two smaller ; four saddles : with blankets and provender. We then set out, and walked ten miles, and our horses were brought to us; and those who brought them were pleased to take what we pleased to give. Brother A sought the Lord by fasting and prayer, and had a strong impression that it was not the will of God that I should go with that company From December 14th, 1789, to April 20th, 1790, we compute to have travelled two thou- sand five hundred and seventy-eight miles. Hitherto hath the Lord helped. Glory, glory to our God!" — "Journal" vol, ii, pp. 70, 71. This is itinerancy in the wilderness. The following is an account of one of the first conferences, if not the very first, in this district : — "Our conference (April, 1793) began at Nelson's, near Jonesbo- rough, in the new territory. We have onlv four or five families of TERRITORIAL PROGRESS OF THE M. E. CHURCH. 391 Methodists here. We had sweet peace in our conference. There are appearances of danger on the road to Kentucky ; hut the Lord is with us. "We have formed a company of nine men, (five of whom are preachers,) who are well armed and mounted If report he true, there is danger in journeying through the wilderness ; but I do not fear : we go armed. If God suffer Satan to drive the Indians on us, if it be his will, he will teach our ' hands to war, and ' our ' fingers to fight ' and conquer. Our guard appeared fixed and armed for the wilderness. We came down to E 's, and were well entertained. Thence we proceeded to the main branch of Holston, which, being swelled, we crossed in a flat ; thence to R 's, where I found the reports relative to the Indians were true ; they had killed the post, and one or two more, and taken four prisoners. I had not much thought or fear about them." — "Journal," vol. ii, pp. 161, 162. Thirteen years after, in 1806, he says : — ' : We crossed Holston at the mouth of Watanga. I lodged at William Nelson's, (where the above conference was held,) an ancient house and stand for Methodists and Methodist preaching. Saturday the Western Conference commenced its sittings, and ended on Mon- day. We had great peace. There are fourteen hundred added within the bounds of this conference. Of the fifty-five preachers stationed, all were pleased. The brethren were in want, and could not suit themselves ; so I parted ivith my watch, my coat, and my shirt." — "Jour- nal," vol. hi, p. 206. These passages are given as specimens of the life of an American bishop in the early period of the work ; of the nature of wilderness itinerancy ; of the smallness of the commencement of this great church organization ; of the precautions and heroic spirit of these early missionaries ; and of the dangers arising from the hostility of the Indians. This latter feature is distressing. Poor Indians ! they felt the power which was pressing upon them, and took their revenge. They could not see their lands invaded and occupied by the stranger, — his villages rising, and harvests waving, on territory which used to furnish them with game, — without evincing the passionate instincts of a savage nature ; and sought, as we see, for every opportunity of aiming a deadly blow at their oppressors. The gospel which Bishop Asbury and his associates preached, seems not 392 TOUR IN AMERICA. — PART IV. to have reached these poor outcasts. Whether any attempt was made to save them, does not appear : they were left in their Paganism. Indeed, it is difficult to imagine that any effort, in their state of exasperation, would have proved successful. We must confess, however, that, in former times, the proselyting efforts of the Popish missionaries in these wild regions far exceeded the attempts of the Pro- testants. These self-denying men followed the Indians in their wanderings with untiring zeal, and sought to bring them over to the profession of their faith. Finer examples of devotedness are seldom to be found ; and in many instances they won the confidence and affections of the savage tribes. VI. We now come to the Indiana Conference, on the right bank of the Ohio, and belonging to the northern division of the Methodist Church. We find in connexion with this conference eight districts; namely, BrooTcville, Lawrenceburg, Madison, New- Albany, Evansville, Vincennes, Indianapolis, Bloomington : eighty-seven stations, circuits, and missions ; one hundred and fourteen ministers, with three hundred and nine local preachers ; and thirty thou- sand seven hundred and forty-five church -members, of whom one hundred and seventy-four are people of colour. Vincennes, above referred to as the head of a district, is one of the oldest and most interesting places, — historically considered, — in the whole of this part of America. It was settled by French emigrants from Canada, near the begin- ning of the last century, and long remained a solitary village. But few settlements were made in the country till the commencement of the present century ; since which time its increase in population has been very rapid. This, in the whole State, is given as, in 1800, 4,875 ; in 1810, 24,520 ; in 1820, 147,178 ; in 1830, 343,031 ; in 1840, 685,800. Methodism, we see, has progressed with the general population, and constitutes, no doubt, one of its TERRITORIAL PROGRESS OF THE M. E. CHURCH. 393 most potent moral elements. This continued, the State must become one of the most prosperous and well-ordered in the Union. Its situation is, in every sense, most favour- able for progress ; commanding the navigation of the Lakes on the one hand, and the Ohio on the other. VII. The Tennessee Conference is closely connected with the Holston. This ecclesiastical division of country comprises nine districts ; namely, Nashville, Lebanon, Cum- berland, Murfreesborough, Winchester, Huntsville, Florence, Dover, Clarksville: seventy-eight stations, circuits, and mis- sions ; one hundred and forty-seven ministers, with three hun- dred and seventy-eight local preachers ; and forty thousand one hundred and forty-eight church-members, seven thousand two hundred and forty-nine of whom are people of colour. We have the following extra appointments : — John B. M'Ferrin and Moses H. Henkle, Editors Nashville Chris- tian Advocate ; Columbia Female Institute, Jared 0. Church ; Tennessee Conference Female Institute, R. H. Rivers, B. H. Hubbard ; La Grange College, Edward Wadsworth ; Clarksville Female Academy, Joseph E. Douglass ; Philip P. Nutty, Agent for Transylvania Univer- sity ; William G. Gould, Agent for La Grange College ; Etbrelbert H. Hatcher, Agent for American Bible Society. Tennessee, as will be seen from the number of coloured people belonging to the Church, is a slave-holding State. And we are sorry to perceive that the slave population is constantly increasing. In 1790, the numbers were 3,417, in 1840 they had swelled up to 183,059. It is hardly necessary to say that this conference belongs to the Method- ist Episcopal Church, South. Having now travelled from the Alleghany Mountains, by the course of the Ohio, to the Mississippi, in the "far west," we shall, according to our practice, give a tabular view of the result of this territorial progress of the Method- ist Church in these regions. 17* 394 TOU R IN AMERICA. — PART IV. Conferences Dist. Circuits. Minist. Supernum. Local Pr. Members. Pittsburgh . . . 8 Ill 184 12 265 42,378 Ohio .... . 15 161 288 13 528 62,188 Louisville . . . 5 54 66 2 199 20,472 Kentucky . . . 8 75 93 9 240 28,624 Indiana . . . 8 87 114 8 309 30,745 Holston . . . . 7 64 84 8 334 38,301 •Tennessee - . . 9 78 147 4 378 40,148 60 630 876 56 2,253 262,858 As the country which we have now traversed is new ter- ritory, and is a part of the Valley of the Mississippi, it may be proper to give some notices of its settlement, in order that an idea may be formed of American progress. The earliest settlements in Tennessee were made between the years 1765 and 1770 ; in 1790 it was placed under a separate territorial government, under the name of the "Territory South of the Ohio«" and in 1796, the inhabit- ants formed a constitution, and Tennessee was admitted into the Union as an independent State. The permanent settlement in Kentucky began in 1775 ; and in 1792 it was admitted into the Union as an independent State. The first settlements in Ohio were commenced at Marietta, in 1788. In the following year the country was put under a territorial government, and called the " Western Terri- tory ;" and in 1802 it was erected into an independent State. In 1800, Indiana was erected into a territorial government ; and in 1816 it was admitted into the Union as an independent State. The mean length of Tennessee is said to be 400 miles, and its breadth 114, containing 45,- 600 square miles. Kentucky is about 400 miles in length, and its breadth is 170 miles, containing 40,500 square miles. Ohio is 200 miles long, and 200 broad, containing 40,000 square miles. The length of Indiana is 260 miles, and its breadth 140, containing 36,000 square miles. The aggregate of this territory is thus seen to contain 162,000 square miles. This western country consists of the finest land in the United States, and, perhaps, the most productive in the TERRITORIAL PROGRESS OE THE M. E. CHURCH. 395 world. It is capable of the highest possible cultivation, — of producing all kinds of grain and fruits, and, conse- quently, of feeding an indefinite number of inhabitants. Its population, at present, considering the length of time it has been occupied by a civilized race, is very great, and must soon become prodigious. The influx of emigrants from Europe, and the older States, is constantly going on : and their occupancy of the country is accompanied by a clear- ance of the soil, the erection of new villages, towns, and cities, and all the appliances and means of civilized life. There is amazing grandeur in this process. It is like a creation. A world of civilized men throwing around them all the garniture, the ornaments, and the blandishments of existence. Cities beautifully laid out on their rivers are springing up, almost as in a day ; finely situated for com- mercial purposes, and, as time progresses, evidently des- tined to become great and interesting centres of life. New villages, as the wilderness is passed through, appear at short distances from each other, embosomed in the forest, and surrounded by land only partially cleared ; but suffi- ciently so to provide richly for the wants of the new comers. Railroads are made to pass along in the midst of both the occupied territory and the gloomy forest ; whilst they connect, by perfectly easy means, the people of remote regions, and unite their rivers and lakes as one great thoroughfare. It is easy to see that this portion of America must ulti- mately, and at no remote period, become equal, if not supe- rior, to any part of the Union. It is, in one sense, far from the seacoast, and in this respect must lie under disadvan- tages. The means of transport, however, are perfectly easy, and the cost cannot be great. Such places as Pittsburgh, Wheeling, and especially Cincinnati, though the buildings are new, yet have the appearance of great manufacturing and commercial towns. They have the air of communities full of life and activity, of comfort and affluence, and of 396 TOUR IN AMERICA. — PART IV. perfectly established business habits. Their transactions cannot be less regular and orderly than those of long esta- blished entrepdts of trade. There must be master minds at work in every department; these things cannot be the growth of chance. And, from the peculiarities of the coun- try, and the great influx of people from Europe, we see the result is, that a great city springs up in a short period ; whereas, in old countries, many years have been necessary to their growth. We have no such places exactly as Pitts- burgh and Cincinnati, inasmuch as these cities lie on the banks of a river, forming an inland navigation, — and not on the seacoast. On this ground we cannot compare the latter with such a place as Liverpool, one of the most remarka- ble marts of commerce in the United Kingdom. But Cin- cinnati has progressed much more rapidly than Liverpool could have done at any period of its history. Less than fifty years ago it was a mere village, containing a few scattered huts, and its population only amounted to a few hundred souls ; whilst at present, as we have seen, it is not less than something like one hundred thousand. But it is not so much the social life of this country, as matters con- nected with the Church, which most demand our attention. The progress of religion has been as remarkable as that of society in general. The privations and sufferings of the first pioneers of these deserts, in introducing the gospel, must have struck eveiy one. If Bishop Asbury, the chief and leader of this noble band of heroic men, endured the difficulties which we have recorded, what must have been the condition of the humble missionaries, who were daily devoted to this enter- prise ? It is impossible to imagine the amount of mental, as well as physical, suffering, through which they were called to pass. But they have reaped a glorious reward in their work. Its massive grandeur stands out as the best monument of their wisdom and piety. Generations unborn — indeed, through all time — will be influenced in TERRITORIAL PROGRESS OF THE M. E. CHURCH. 397 their present and eternal destinies by what they have achieved. Much more than zeal has been exhibited in building up this great Church. There must have been connected with it from the beginning men of great practical wisdom ; of high talent in the management of business ; and also of enlarged Christian views as to the wants of their country- men, as well as devoted zeal. God must either have di- rectly given the pattern of this Church, as he did that of the old dispensation to Moses, or otherwise the men must have possessed great talents. The most rational solution will be found in the belief, that the Deity directed the movement by his own good Spirit ; but, at the same time, that the grace was developed in the high judgment as well as faith of the agency employed. The first office and duty of these early evangelists would, of necessity, be the preaching of the gospel ; the awaken- ing of the people to a sense of religion, and leading them to Christ; thus gathering the flock in the wilderness. Hence their " Camp " and " Revivalist " meetings. What could be more appropriate to the condition of a people living in scattered hamlets, and remote from each other ; having no " houses of worship" and sometimes none even for themselves, except the log-hut ; — what, we say, could be more suited to their state and wants than the creation of the "stand" under the umbrageous shade of the trees of the forest, and having crowds of people present to seek their conversion to God? But these services must have exercised other useful influences over a people so circum- stanced. Isolation is found to be favourable to the growth of the worst passions of our nature. Barbarism and bruta- lity connect themselves with the life of men and families, living remotely from their fellow-men. Hence, social ties, friendly feelings, virtuous friendships, brotherhood and kindness, — indeed, all the ameliorating characteristics of religion — must have been promoted by these assemblies 398 TOUR IN AMERICA.— PART IV. in the wilderness. Those who can see nothing but rant and fanaticism in these "camp-meetings," are shallow observers of the tendencies of human associations. For a great length of time, the evangelists of these western wilds could have no choice between the private dwelling, as a place of worship, and the forest. How few must have attended the log-hut service ! whereas, by calling the people to the worship of God under his own bright skies, making the wilderness his temple, they found space for the people, whilst their increased numbers would produce a wholesome excitement on the mind of the preacher, and call forth his utmost energies. There is something vastly fascinating and beautiful in these primitive, patriarchal modes of worshipping God. True, this is not religion. It is not the spirit — the essence — the hidden mystery — the abstract — belonging to the Christian system. But is there any harm in enlisting the sentiment, the sympathies, the poetry, in man's soul on the side of the spiritual ? Why has God made silence impres- sive, if we are not to be impressed ? Why has he put beauty in ten thousand forms, and hues, and tints, if we are not to taste the beautiful ? Why has he caused the grove, the forest, the wilderness, to speak in accents of awe or of joy, if we are not to indulge in corresponding feelings ? Why has he impressed the glorious sun, the blue sky, the retiring day, the rising morning, the dark night, with the grand and sublime, if we are to entertain no suitable apprehension of all this ? Why has he made it a law of nature that the winds, as they rustle through the leaves ; the sweet warb- ling of the birds, as they pour their carols through the thickets ; and, in truth, all things vocal ; why has God made it a law that all this should soothe, soften, and elevate the soul ; why, if we are not to listen to this muse, and enjoy the concert ? It has been objected against these "camp-meetings" that they are got up for effect. Why ought they not to be got up for effect, if the "effect" TERRITORIAL PROGRESS OF THE M. E. CHURCH. 399 is in harmony with religious sentiment and feeling ? God's beautiful world will remain hanging out its lamps of glory, speaking in its divine harmony, inviting all created intelli- gences to behold their Author in his works, in despite of this prudish cant. And, moreover, human nature will strike in with the design ; it will gaze and admire ; it will listen and send forth its echoes ; it will feel the attraction of the divinely delicate touch of the ten thousand influences around, in happy sympathies : — it will do all this, despite of any code of crabbed and mistaken godliness. God lives in the temple of the universe. Christianity teaches no lesson the contrary of this ; it is one of its great and fundamental truths. Why, then, attempt to obscure or obliterate what is immutable, whether in nature or in man ? Probably, without knowing it, these forest preachers obeyed a law of our being, and the voice of nature herself, when they took their stand in the woods for the purpose of preaching Christ crucified. We dare say the scenery, the occasion, the solemnity, aided the message — why not ? What are forms of speech, modes of address, — tropes, figures, poetry, logic, — everything belonging to the preacher's or the orator's art, — but so many means to produce effect ? The essence of the greatest truth lies in the shortest and most simple proposition. What is amplification, illustration, argument, ornament, but means employed to render this truth impressive, — in a word, to produce effect ? Man is made for this. He is not a piece of cold mecha- nism, neither is he a mental abstraction. The affections, the imagination, the taste, the sympathies, — the deep-toned emotions of man's soul, — as much belong to the domain of religion as what are called his mental faculties and his conscience. In point of fact, the whole man belongs to this kingdom of God ; — all his mind, all his nature. If, in the case we are considering, the truth should find its way to the depths of the soul through the feelings, where is the harm ? These avenues are much more accessible 400 TOUR IN AMERICA. — PART IV. than anything else in man. It is infinitely more difficult to reach the heart through the understanding, the logic, the judgment of nature, than through the passions. Every human being comprehends the language of love, — it meets with an instant response. And it may be fairly questioned, whether any progress can be made in the spread of the gospel, the triumphs of the cross, and the conversion of men, unless, in the first place, the human rebel is disarmed of his enmity against God, by a direct appeal to his feel- ings. It is by his passions, much more than by his un- derstanding and his conscience, that he stands out against the truth. These passions are the barriers in the way of the admission of the gospel message. Then, where can be the wrong in endeavouring to melt and subdue, to produce an impression, to elicit the feelings, on the side of the man's own happiness ? It ma,j, indeed, be granted that in case the matter was left here, it would be wrong, it would be useless. But then, if, with the impression pro- duced, the softening of the feelings, the emotions of the heart, by God's blessing on the scenery of a " camp-meet- ing," you declare the truth, and press it upon the under- standing and the conscience, then, instead of the practice being an evil, it must be considered a good. No doubt can be entertained but that this was the case with these forest preachers. Out of these first efforts, these small beginnings, these rude labours, the Methodist Episcopal Church, in these western wilds, has sprung ; and the real question for con- sideration is, How have the architects performed their task ? What sort of building have they erected? One thing must strike every one in surveying its territorial position, namely, that there is a desire and purpose that the whole should rest upon truth ; should be cemented by the means of knowledge and education ; that, in a word, the community should understand its own duties, and be pre- pared to bless the world by a course of enlightened conduct. TERRITORIAL PROGRESS OF THE M. E. CHURCH. 401 Hence, in agreement with this, we find their educational institutions growing up concurrently with church organiza- tions. This course of conduct not only indicates sound policy, but, in the circumstances of the country, it has the appearance of real patriotism. The number of colleges, academies, and schools of every kind, is, considering the shortness of the period in which they have existed as a people, quite astonishing. It is true, that some of these may be feeble establishments, only in their commencement, and having, as yet, no great claim to distinction for learn- ing and scholarship. But even these circumstances are very encouraging. There must be a beginning to every- thing ; and this commencement, in a career of great useful- ness, is not only valuable as a present provision, but it has also a prospective importance. It will be found, on exami- nation, that these collegiate institutions amount to sixteen in these several conferences ; and, considering the date of the work, and the difficulties to be encountered in a new country, this is very extraordinary progress. Some of these colleges, indeed, were not founded by the Methodist body, but have fallen into their hands from the want of patronage on the part of those who originated them ; but most of them have been reared by the fostering care and benevolence of our people themselves. It is evident that the Church rightly judges, that, in these times, it is hopeless to expect either permanency or advancement, otherwise than by connecting education and knowledge with religion. The day is certainly past for churches to build up their influence and power exclusively on the exercise of the priestly function. The instrumen- tality must be very different to the old craft of Rome, em- ployed, it is true, with great success for many ages, but now grown obsolete. There is too much skepticism, — philoso- phy, — speculation — literature, — in the world now-a-days to admit of anything of this kind. And even amongst classes who cannot, with any truth, be ranked amongst the enemies 402 TOUE IN AMERICA. — PART IV. of the gospel, there is such a spirit of inquiry and inde- pendence of thought, that any attempt at imposition upon them is at once detected. This spirit of free inquiry may be an advantage or a disadvantage, just as it is improved or neglected by the ministers of religion, and those who are intent on the promotion of its interests. Let priesthoods of all sorts and names scowl and complain at the " spirit of the age," as unbelieving, instead of buckling on the harness, and coming forth to discharge their duties ; and then, as a con- sequence, the world is inevitably filled with real infidelity. But if this tendency for progress, philosophy, and knowledge, operate as it ought on the minds and habits of priesthoods ; if it make them studious lovers of knowledge, " apt to teach," and leads them to a comprehensive view of the glorious truth put into their hands ; then, instead of an evil, "free inquiry" will be a good. Religion is knowledge. It is the highest intellectual re- gion which can be reached by man. It is a libel on the great truths and revelations of the word of God, to repre- sent them as merely dealing with the heart, whilst the higher faculties are left untouched. The intellect is, in point of fact, strengthened, expanded, and elevated, infinitely more by the teaching of the gospel than by anything else. What has the Christian system, as an economy, as the king- dom of God, to fear from light and knowledge, when it is in truth the perfection of light and knowledge itself ? What is there to alarm any one in the investigations of philoso- phy and metaphysics, as they pry into the spiritual, the hidden, the divine ; when, at the same time, the Christian philosophy, the metaphysics of the Bible, reveal and exhi- bit these objects to its disciples as their daily common les- sons ? What, in the profound and sublime researches of science, in its application to nature, — whether in the heights above or the depths below ; — when, in truth, they only amount to a commencement, a gloss, an illustration of truths which the Bible has taught its disciples from the be- TERRITORIAL PROGRESS OF THE M. E. CHURCH. 403 ginning ? What, in studies in history, in morals, in human relations, in jurisprudence and law ; in principles of equity and right ; in the well-being of States, and in the mundane destinies of mankind? Has the Christian code anything to apprehend from all this ? Is it not rather the great store- house of all which is true and certain on all these points ? What, again, in beauties of thought, forms of truth, and ideas and sentiments, whether expressed in prose or po- etry, — didactive speech or ornate language ? Have the books of Scripture anything to dread from a comparison with any, with all, of the productions of either ancient or modern times ? We have said nothing about inspiration, prophecy, miracles, — those things which are taken gene- rally as the proofs of divinity. But a divine system must be true and immutable, independently of the external manifestations which make it known as such. These are only the outward coruscations of God ; the voice which the truth uses to make known its own claims, not the truth itself: they are, so to speak, the hand- writing upon the wall, — not the essence, the qualities, the glories, of the spiritual and invisible Being, who holds out that hand, and inscribes the characters. The Christian religion is God, — is the glorious Trinity, — is the spiritual world, — is the es- sence and truth of all being, — as well as a mighty and mer- ciful remedy for the evils of sin, and the miseries of the human race. It is just as possible for infidelity to blow up the universe by its puny malice, as it is to uproot Chris- tianity. Then the teachers of our religion need not fear anything from knowledge, from investigation, from the ad- vancement of science and literature. But has not religion much to gain as to the character of outward development ; if all its ministers, instead of employing the language of complaint, came forward, and, as was the wont in the best times of antiquity, made themselves the high-priests of knowledge, of light, of progress ? These, it seems, are the notions of the ministers and people of the Methodist Church 404 TOUR IN AMERICA. — PART IV. in America. The establishment of their collegiate institu- tions indicates their desire to place their church-progress abreast of the advancing light of the age. But these efforts to establish a good and useful system of education must give the American Methodist Church a status in the country, which nothing else could possibly do. In despite of system and theory, human society must have its aristocracies ; and scholarship creates a sort of aristoc- racy in the United States. No people on earth, not even excepting the French, are better hero-worshippers than the Americans. Their great men are their gods. Political leaders, and the chiefs of war, it is true, create more ex- citement than any others ; but learning comes in for its share of public applause. It is difficult to estimate the real amount of intellectual culture existing in the country ; but the idea as to its value has undoubtedly gone forth, and is universally entertained. In this state of public feeling, it is impossible for any church to possess anything like an honourable standing in the country, without recognizing the necessity of scientific and literary instruction, and making provision for its at- tainment. Indeed, it is clear, in a nation where all the offices of law and the professions, all the dignities and honours of the State, are open to all classes, the fact that none can enter upon them but those who have been previously prepared, will, of itself, be an inducement to exertion. Hence the position of a church must be infinitely advanced by its progress in knowledge. What we see in these fine coun- tries, is only the beginning. But from these foundations must, as time progresses, grow up great establishments. Nothing is to be despised in which a principle of life is found, however feeble in its present state. Give it time, scope, and the means of growth, and it is certain to de- velop itself. This must be the case with these schools. They are in their infancy, but they possess vitality. The TERRITORIAL PROGRESS OF THE M. E. CHURCH. 405 progress of events, the increase of population, the accumu- lation of wealth, will bring with them multiplied demands for instruction ; and these rudimental colleges must grow into great universities. On the whole, then, this western Church is a fine illus- tration of the power of the grace of God ; of the energizing character of divine truth; and of the indefatigable zeal, industry, and piety of its founders. What is to follow, no one can tell. But it is to be hoped that the same mercy and power which enabled the fathers of the work to lay the foundations of a structure so noble, will continue to be manifested in carrying on the building through all succeeding generations. IV.— THE MISSISSIPPI LINE. We now enter upon a perfectly new route, the line of the Mississippi : — The Mississippi, " Father of Waters," is 3,300 miles in length ; rises from Lake Itasca, to the west of Lake Supe- rior, and flows south into the Gulf of Mexico. It receives in its course, besides innumerable smaller contributions, the following great rivers ; namely, on its left the Wis- consin, 400 miles in length ; the Illinois, 500 ; and the Ohio, 1,200. It receives on its right, St. Peter's, 350 miles in length ; Iowa, 350 ; Missouri, 3,200 ; White River, 450 ; Arkansas, 2,000 ; and Red River, 1,500. The Mis- sissippi, counting from the sources of the Missouri, is 4,300 miles long. This is the line we have now to explore ; and to ex- amine the territorial extent of the Methodist Church in these vast regions. The Wisconsin Territory, which forms the most northerly district on the line of the Mississippi, being a new territory, is not in possession of a separate conference ; but the Rock River Conference embraces this portion of country ; and, 406 TOUR IN AMERICA. — PART IV. no doubt, as population increases, a new organization will take place. I. But, on the right bank of the river, parallel, in point of latitude, with Wisconsin, we find the Iowa Conference. In this division are four districts, called mission districts ; namely, Burlington, Blooming ton, Dubuque, and Desmoines : forty stations, circuits, and missions ; fifty-four ministers, with ninety-seven local preachers ; and eight thousand four hundred and forty church-members. This is a new country, having been erected into a terri- torial government in 1838, and admitted as a State into the Union as late as 1846. In consequence, all the districts and stations are marked as missions. We have, strange to say, no Christian Advocate, and as yet no college of any kind, connected with this conference. This whole ter- ritory, more than a hundred years ago, used to be traversed by Jesuit missionaries from Canada. Their mission was then to the Indian tribes ; not, however, with- out political and territorial objects. The Jesuits and the Indians alike have disappeared, and now an Anglo-American population is springing up, and Methodist missionaries are everywhere found. II. In descending the Mississippi, on the left bank, we find the Illinois Conference, joining that of Rock River, and continuing the ecclesiastical line of posts towards the south. In this conference we have ten districts ; namely, Quincy, Bloomington, Springfield, Jacksonville, Lebanon, Sparta, Mount Carmel, Danville, St. Louis German Mis- sion, and Quincy German Mission : one hundred and six stations, circuits, and missions ; one hundred and thirty ministers, with four hundred and twenty-five local preachers ; and twenty-four thousand and ninety-eight church-members. We find the following extra appointments : — Conference Female Academy, W. D. R. Trotter, Agent ; M'Kendree TERRITORIAL PROGRESS OF THE M. E. CHURCH. 407 College, Erastus Wentworth, President ; A. W. Cuminings, Spencer Mattison, Professors ; William Goodfellow, Prin- cipal of Preparatory Department ; Georgetown Seminary, Jesse H. Moore. The German missions in the bounds of this conference constitute a very important portion of its work. These plodding, industrious, and sober people, fall very much under the care of the Methodist Church ; and, by suitable attention and culture, become excellent, and many of them eminent, Christians. Numerous ministers are raised up belonging to their nation ; and, for piety, zeal, devotedness, and ability, are exceeded by no other class. III. Missouri, on the right bank of the Mississippi, and only separated from Illinois by the river, is the next con- ference demanding our attention. It belongs to the Me- thodist Episcopal Church, South. We have five districts in this country ; namely, St. Charles, Columbia, Richmond, Weston, and Hannibal : thirty-five stations, circuits, and missions ; fifty-one ministers, with eighty-seven local preach- ers ; and ten thousand nine hundred and twenty-four church-members, eleven hundred and sixty-four of whom are people of colour. We find the following appointments : — Isaac Ebbert is President of St. Charles College ; Jeremiah F. Riggs is Agent for the College ; Richard Bond is Agent for the American Bible Society ; Nathan Scarritt is Principal of Howard High School. We are here, as the number of people of colour will indi- cate, in a slave State. In 1810, the number is reported as 3,011; and in 1840, as 58,240. Out of these only 1,160 are members of the Methodist Church. This cannot be considered as very encouraging success amongst this de- graded race. IV. St. Louis, very famous as a western first-class city, 408 TOUR IN AMERICA. — PART IV. which is found in the State of Missouri, gives its name to a conference. The St. Louis Conference contains six districts ; namely, St. Louis, Cape Girardeau, Potosi, Springfield, Lexington, Boonville : fifty-one stations, cir- cuits, and missions ; fifty-nine ministers, with one hundred and sixty-three local preachers ; and thirteen thousand seven hundred and fifty-five church-members, eight hun- dred and ninety-five of whom are people of colour. As this city and locality constitute an interesting por- tion of the Union, and is much visited and remarked upon by our countrymen, it may be proper to notice, that it was founded in 1*764, by the French, as the name indicates, when they were in possession of New-Orleans, and com- manded the waters of the Mississippi from the south. Me- thodism was introduced so recently as 1821. Twenty-seven years ago, it seems, the Methodist Church had no existence in St. Louis ; we have now a conference, numbering 13,755 members in the city and neighbouring country. About the time in question, namely, in 1820, the city itself numbered 4,598 inhabitants; in 1845, they amounted to 34,140. It appears from this, that population and Methodism have been concurrently progressing, and probably in pretty equal proportions. V. The State of Arkansas, on the right bank of the Mississippi, gives its name to a conference belonging to the Methodist Church, South. This conference contains five districts ; namely, Little Rock, Fayetteville, Washing- ton, Pine Bluff, and Helena : forty-one stations, circuits, and missions ; forty-three ministers, with one hundred and forty-eight local preachers ; and nine thousand seven hun- dred and thirty-six church-members, seventeen hundred and fifty of whom are people of colour. Agent for the Washington Seminary, Lewis S. Marshall. This is new ground, Arkansas having been separated from the State of Missouri only in 1819, and erected into TERRITORIAL PROGRESS OF THE M. E. CHURCH. 409 a territorial government. In 1836, it was admitted into the Union as an independent State. Its white population is stated to be 14,273 in 1820 ; and in 1845, to have in- creased to 145,000. Its slave population in 1820, con- sisted of 1,617 ; and in 1840, it had increased to 19,935. It will be seen, that the Methodist Church has rapidly- advanced in this new country. Its work, as is evident from the Minutes, is chiefly missionary. Time has not allowed of much consolidation, or of the introduction of seminaries of learning. Institutions of this description must follow evangelization, and no doubt they will appear in due time. VI. Memphis, standing on the left bank of the Missis- sippi, and in the lowest point of the State of Tennessee, gives its name to a conference. The Memphis Confer- ence contains six districts ; namely, Memphis, Granada, Salem, Somerville, Jackson, Paducah : seventy-one sta- tions, circuits, and missions ; one hundred and one min- isters, with three hundred and forty-four local preachers ; and thirty thousand nine hundred and forty church-mem- bers, six thousand and sixty-eight of whom are people of colour. Jackson Female Institute, L. Lea, President ; A. W. Jones, Professor ; G. T. Baskerville, Agent for the Jackson Female Institute and Centenary Fund. This ecclesiastical division, in great part, lies in the upper or northern portion of the State of Mississippi, though its head is in Tennessee. Slavery, it will be seen, abounds here ; and it is gratifying to find upwards of six thousand slaves belonging to the Church. VII. The Mississippi State, the south-east point of which touches the Gulf of Mexico, is occupied by another division bearing the above name. This Mississippi Conference contains seven districts ; namely, Clinton, 18 410 TOUR IN AMERICA. — PART IV. Natchez, Vicksburg, Yazoo, Lake Washington Mission, Sharon, Pearl River : fifty-four stations, circuits, and mis- sions ; seventy-three ministers, with one hundred and ninety-three local preachers ; and sixteen thousand five hundred and ninety-eight church-members, six thousand one hundred and eighty-three being people of colour. Centenary College, John C. Miller ; Joseph M'Dowel], Agent for Old Centenary College. VIII. The Louisiana Conference now demands our attention. We have six districts in this division ; namely, New- Orleans, Baton Rouge, Opelousas, Monroe, Shreve- port, Vidalia : fifty-three stations, circuits, and missions ; forty-seven ministers, with seventy-one local preachers ; and eight thousand two hundred and seventy-two church-mem- bers, three thousand seven hundred and forty-nine of whom are people of colour. D. 0. Shattuck, President of Centenary College ; Robert R. Read, Agent for the Centenary College. The above college is located at Jackson. This conference is important, because it includes New- Orleans, the great commercial mart of the Mississippi, and famed as the most profligate and wicked place in the Union. On examination, it will be found that the societies in this city are very small, which seems to corroborate the common report as to the dissipation of the place. Its inhabitants are, it is said, constantly changing, and consist very much of desperate adventurers ; and it should seem, that the sickliness of the place causes the people to push the pur- suit of gayety and pleasure to the utmost extreme ; as if the uncertainty of life led them to seek as much of what they consider enjoyment in a short space as possible. This is no unusual thing. The inhabitants of Vera Cruz are simi- larly distinguished ; and yet it is about the most pestilential locality in the world. Races of men, it should seem, have something to do with TERRITORIAL PROGRESS OF THE M. E. CHURCH. 411 both religion and solid freedom. Wherever, on the conti- nent of America, we find the basis of population to be French, as in New-Orleans ; — or Spanish, as in Florida ; — we perceive in this circumstance an effectual barrier against the progress of the gospel, as well as an incapacity for self- government and liberty, as demonstrated by their departed power. Romanism may, indeed, perform its part in all this. Its policy has everywhere been to attach man to a system, instead of educating him to walk and act for himself. But systems break down ; and when this takes place, and the people are found helpless vassals, they are sure to be inca- pable of acting for themselves, and necessarily fall under the dominion of stronger races. IX. Alabama is not exactly on our line. It lies betwixt the State of Mississippi on the one hand, and Georgia on the other ; having Florida, for a considerable extent, as its frontier towards the south, and yet touching the Gulf of Mexico by its south-west point. The conference of this name contains eight districts ; namely, Mobile, Gainesville, Colum- bus, Tuskaloosa, Talladega, Montgomery, Eufaula, and Summerfield : ninety-eight stations, circuits, and missions ; one hundred and eighteen ministers, with four hundred and forty-nine local preachers ; and forty -four thousand six hundred and three church-members — fifteen thousand two hundred and seventy-nine being people of colour. Macon Female Institute, Frederick G. Ferguson. Cen- tenary Institute, A. H. Mitchell ; Agent, G. Garrett. The white population of this State, in 1810, amounted to 20,845 ; and in 1845, it had increased to 624,827. In 1820, its slave population amounted to 41,879; and in 1840, to 258,532. This is a fearful augmentation. It shows that an active and distressing internal barter in the flesh and blood of man must be going on within the limits of the States. We have some relief in the fact above stated, that 412 TOUR IN AMERICA.— PART IV. 15,2*79 of these poor wretches are within the pale of the Church. We have two other conferences in this southern direction, which must be noticed, though they lie beyond our Missis- sippi route. X. The Texas Conference contains four districts ; namely, Galveston, Rutcrsville, Austin, San Antonio : twenty-nine stations, circuits, and missions ; twenty-nine ministers, with fifty -four local preachers ; and three thou- sand two hundred and thirteen church-members — seven hundred and ninety-nine of whom are people of colour. XI. The East Texas Conference embraces three dis- tricts ; namely, San Augustine, Marshall, ClarTcesville : twenty-seven stations, circuits, and missions ; twenty-three ministers, with seventy local preachers ; and four thousand eight hundred and three church-members — six hundred and thirty-seven of whom are people of colour. XII. In 1834, the Rocky Mountains were crossed by two or three missionaries, and the gospel was introduced into Oregon. This work has been progressing from that period to the present time. But as Oregon has not been formed into a conference, we are unable to report its exact state. Indeed, at the Pittsburgh Conference, I heard a mission- ary, who had spent several years in the country, give a most interesting account of the state of things, and the hopeful prospect of much good. He proposed the estab- lishment of a conference for Oregon and California ;* though at the time the treaty for the cession of the latter territory to the United States had not been signed. The arguments of the missionary were listened to very atten- [* The " Oregon and California Mission Conference " has since been formed.] TERRITORIAL PROGRESS OF THE M. E. CHURCH. 413 tively by the conference ; and good Bishop Hedding pro- posed several questions as to the time it would take a bishop to travel to the place to constitute the conference in question, the route, expense, and modes of travelling, as if he had it in his heart to attempt the journey. This was fine in a man near seventy, not very agile in his structure, and not by any means in good health. At the above date, the mission was exclusively intended to benefit the heathen population. A fine establishment was formed near the mouth of the Columbia ; and the first efforts of the missionaries were crowned with promising success. Since that time, the territory has been divided between the British and the Americans ; and the latter are pressing to occupy the country. The portion of Oregon to which they have chiefly at present emigrated, was described as surpassingly fertile and beautiful; and the people were represented as making great progress in the cultivation of the soil. Distant ages will hear and know more about Oregon. It will, no doubt, share in the prosperity and greatness of the American world ; become the area of seve- ral new States, and be the means of extending the influ- ence and power of this great nation to the seaboard of the Pacific ; and, as a consequence, to China, India, and Poly- nesia, by a direct and easy route. The consequences lie in the future ; but that their influence must be great on the destinies, not only of America, but also of the world, may safely be predicted.* XIII. Indian Missions. — To the west of Iowa, Mis- souri, and Arkansas, is found the Indian Territory, six or seven hundred miles in length, and of less breadth ; where, * Since the above was written, the great excitement respecting the disco- very of gold in California, and the emigration of the people in great num- bers in search of the precious metal, have occurred. How singular are the ways of Providence ! This gold mania will attract a large population to a country which would otherwise only have been peopled in the usual way ; and though much disappointment will, no doubt, arise respecting the gold, the people will remain to cultivate the soil, and extend the Christian cause. 414 TOUR IN AMERICA. — PART IV. for the present, the wrecks of numerous powerful tribes and nations are located. The Methodist Episcopal Church, South, has established itself amongst these tribes, and designates the ecclesiastical territory the Indian-Mission Conference. In this conference we have three districts ; namely, Kansas River, Cherokee, and Muscogee : twenty- six stations, circuits, and missions ; thirty-two ministers, with thirty-two local preachers ; and three thousand eight hundred and fifteen church-members : these are divided into ninety-seven whites, two hundred and seventy-three people of colour, (that is, people of the African race,) and three thousand four hundred and forty-five Indians. We find the following extra appointments : — Indian Manual-Labour School and Station, Thomas Johnson, Tyson Dines ; Asbury Manual-Labour School and Station among the Creeks, Thomas B. Ruble ; Fort Coffee Manual- Labour School, New-Hope Female School and Station, Jesse L. M'Alister ; M'Kendree Manual-Labour School and Station among the Chickasaws, Wesley Browning ; Robert- son-Neighbourhood School, Erastus B. Duncan. It is a subject of rejoicing that Christianity has found its way, to any extent, amongst these deeply injured races of the human family. Their tale of wo is one of the most painful on the records of time. Whilst the poor Negro submits with docility and comparative content to his lot of degradation and toil, the Red-man, in the pride of his man- hood, has ever spurned the yoke of oppression ; and rather than submit to become the white man's slave, he has chosen to fight for his freedom through long ages of unequal conflict; till now the remains of innumerable nations, which owned and hunted freely through the whole continent, are pent up in a mere nook in the farthest west. In the conquests and settlements of the Christian nations of Europe — it may be well asked, — What has the world gained by their Christianity ? The pagan nations of anti- quity invariably contrived to connect the social and politi- TERRITORIAL PROGRESS OF THE M. E. CHURCH. 415 cal improvement of the conquered or colonized countries, with the possession of their territory and dominion over the people. Northern Africa was colonized by the Phoenicians ; and their political power, their system of government, their commercial enterprise, and their social progress, spread civilization amongst the natives of those countries, and they were, as a consequence, assimilated into the general mass of the Carthaginian population. The colonies established by the Greeks are notorious as centres of knowledge ; of improved institutions and laws ; of freedom and good government ; so that, instead of being constituted to repel, to alienate, to barbarize the people of the territories they occupied, the door was opened for their reception ; and the colony became the means of organized order, and the foun- dation of franchises securing all the blessings of the social state to the native population. The progress of the Roman power was chiefly that of conquest. But even this great people invariably carried the arts of civilized life to the abodes of the conquered savage tribes. The Roman empire is known to have laid the foundation of civilization through the whole of central Europe. What were the an- cient Britons at the time the country was invaded by Csesar ? Not one tittle in advance of the Red-men of the American forests, when that country was first visited by the European settlers. But how different the issue ! The Pagan power, the Roman conquerors of Britain, became its civilizers. The foundation of our improvements was laid by the policy and lessons of the legions and the cohorts of Rome. They did not seek to crush the native population, to possess and occupy their lands with a race of Italians, to the entire ex- clusion of the natives of the soil. True, they sought the complete ascendency of their political institutions ; and this, exciting the opposition of the Britons, brought them into collision with the Roman power : but the policy of the lat- ter was to turn the wild hordes into peaceful, prosperous, and happy Roman citizens. 416 TOUR IN AMERICA. — PART IV. How perfectly different has been the conduct of pro- fessedly Christian nations in America and elsewhere! The policy of every power which has established itself in that country has been the same. The English — the Dutch — the French — the Spaniards ; — the Puritan — the Huguenot — the Calvinist — the Papist; — all nations, all religions, have equally and uniformly acted upon the principle of isolation; of establishing social and religious freedom exclusively for themselves; of causing law, government, commerce, education, religion, to radiate amongst their own communities ; — whilst, by ten thousand modes of in- trigue, fraud, oppression, cruelty, and wrong, the natives of the soil have been repelled and driven from the abodes of civilized man. Religion has been blamed, in no very measured terms, for its failures in preventing the injustice and wrong done to man in his most helpless condition. And it must be con- fessed, that it is not blameless in the matter ; it ought more strenuously to have asserted the rights of the oppressed. Good men in their individual capacity exerted themselves, in some instances, very nobly to communicate a knowledge of the Christian faith, and not without success. The exer- tions of Eliot, of Brainerd, of Penn, and others, stand out as fine instances of devotedness and zeal. Their successes cor- responded to their toils ; and had other influences and agen- cies corresponded with their philanthropic labours, perma- nent good must have been the result. But the matter of fact is, that the politico-social power which was simultane- ously at work with these feeble agencies, constantly thwarted and destroyed the effects of their exertions. These religious men were ardently seeking the instruction, the conversion, the Christianization, of the savage tribes ; but the political power was equally intent upon the aggrandizement of the European population, at the expense of the natives. The latter became the predominant force ; so that everything built up by the honest and laborious efforts of the mis- TERRITORIAL PROGRESS OP THE M. E. CHURCH. 417 sionary, was as regularly pulled down by the action of the political power. Two antagonistic forces were constantly at work side by side. The selfish one, however, as might be expected, was always infinitely stronger than the Christian. The only possible mode of averting the wrongs inflicted upon the Indian races would have been so to blend the Christian with the political power, as to make the latter in its spirit Christian. Had the governments, in attempting to establish themselves in the country, been controlled and guided by truly religious principles in the hands of a suffi- ciently influential executive, the mischief might have been prevented ; and at this day, instead of finding the Indians an outcast race, in the extremities of the Western world, we should now see them free, prosperous, and Christian citizens of the United States. Nothing is equally just, — nothing is truly liberal, — nothing regards the primary rights of mankind, — nothing establishes social relations, — nothing assimilates and blends into brotherhood all races, — nothing points to one almighty Father, — nothing brings men together on similar terms, and in the posture of prayer and worship : — nothing does all this but Christianity. The Christian name has been miserably outraged by its representatives ; but never on so large, so gigantic a scale as in America. Licentious courtiers, hard-hearted and selfish politicians, money -mongering commercial companies, chartered pickpockets, riotous adventurers and fortune- hunters ; — all these soon overpowered the Puritan, the Qua- ker, the Christian. Not, indeed, that the Pilgrim Fathers, except in individual instances, — as in the case of Roger Williams, — seem to have entertained much scruple respect- ing the rights of the aborigines ; and probably their creed prevented them taking much pains to make them Chris- tians. They were a gigantic race of men, full of lofty and noble sentiments, and had a firm belief in their own high destiny ; but they had little sympathy with human nature as such. A race of men who excluded even their fellow- 418 TOUR IN AMERICA. — PART IV. Christians from social fellowship, and drove them from their homes on differing in opinion with themselves, were not very likely to seek any close connexion with the reprobate heathen. William Penn and his Quaker followers were of a differ- ent spirit. This eminent person* had a just perception of the rights of man, in the Christian sense of the term. He nobly exerted himself to secure these rights to the Indians ; and, had he been supported by a power corresponding to his own just notions, at any rate, a model colony would have been established in Pennsylvania. But the principles of Penn may be said to have died with himself; and that on which his tender heart was so intensely fixed, the free- dom, the civilization, and the Christian state of the Indian tribes connected with his colony, was buried in his own sa- cred resting-place. The religion which alone could have saved this noble race must, in order to be effective, have been united in some way with the political power. The isolated and individual exertions of good men were found inadequate to the task. The day for great and free religious organizations and in- stitutions had not then arrived. No missionaries, except Popish, connected with large and influential bodies at home, were then in the field. The only church having the forms and the power of a great institution in this country, in the first days of American colonization, when the mis- chief began, was the Episcopal Church. Is it too much to expect a Christian nation to conduct * Since this was penned, Macaulay's "History" has been published, in •which Penn is shown [doubtful] to have yielded to court influence in some instances, which place his character in those transactions in a questionable point of view. This only shows that courts, in the times of Charles and James, were not very suitable places for Christians ; and that the religious principles of Penn were much safer in the wilderness, in toil, in executing pro- jects of usefulness, than in the keeping of Whitehall, and under the influence of Jesuits. We speak of Penn all along in his character of Christian and law- giver in America ; and certainly, in this sphere, his conduct is seen to be most exemplary. TERRITORIAL PROGRESS OF THE M. E. CHURCH. 419 its policy on Christian principle, — upon the truths of the gospel ? Had this been the case, the political body which laid the foundation of English rule in America, would have acted a very different part towards these injured people. Would Christian truth, nay, would heathen honesty, have allowed the seizure of their lands ; often connected with the most infamous chicanery, fraud, and dishonour ? Would occasions of irritation and barbarous wars have been sought, for the sole purpose of driving the sheep to the slaughter, and occupying the space vacated by their immolation or their banishment ? Would the superior attainments of knowledge and the means of aggression possessed by white men have been employed as a snare to entrap the poor children of the forest into some bargain and covenant to their own utter ruin ? Would these noble tribes have been incited to hate each other, to imbrue their hands in each other's blood, to butcher and exterminate women and chil- dren, and feast their voracious appetite for cruelty, — that the white man might profit by the decimation of these se- veral tribes by their slaughter of each other ? Would their sufficiently miserable existence have been still more distress- ingly embittered by the fiend-like design of poisoning the very springs of life by the introduction of "fire-water," and new diseases to thin their ranks ? Would systems of barter and intercourse have been established on a large and universal scale, the whole design of which was to defraud the Indian, and to rob him of the scanty and hard-earned fruits of the chase ? No ; Christianity repudiates all this. It utters its voice in the wilderness ; it warns of the present and eternal consequences of cruelty and injustice to the feeble, the poor, the dependent. And had the nation, sending out its swarms to occupy the territory of these tribes, instead of exerting a power to destroy, been governed by its doctrines, perfect justice must have been done. The absence of the aboriginal inhabitants from the United States will be a silent, — continued, — eternal memorial of 420 TOUR IN AMERICA. — PART IV. the cruel wrongs, first of the nations which began their ex- pulsion, and next of the Americans who finished it. From their location in the west, the Indian territory, they will forever send across the flourishing territory, the populous cities, the mighty commerce and growing opulence of the white man's usurpations, the wail of sorrow, the cry of in- justice and of wrong. It is now time to examine what the Methodist Church has done for this class ; and with what degree of success. The work amongst them began long before the Indians entered upon their present location, and has often been much injured by their removal. We cannot attempt a full account ; all we can do is to give some slight notice of facts. These poor outcasts, it must be remarked, have been drawn from every part of the United States. The whole continent was once occupied by them. The attempts of the Methodist Church amongst them began with the Wyandot Indians, in Upper Sandusky, in the State of Ohio, in 1816. The agent in this work — in spite of orders, priesthoods, canons, calls, and imposition of hands — was a poor freeman of colour, " born and raised in Powhatan county." How strange, that the name of the father of the Indian lady married to the English- man, should also be the name of the country of this good man !* If one could believe in the transmigra- tion of souls, it would be no difficult matter to imagine, that the soul of Pocahontas had entered this poor coloured man. " Having been brought to the knowledge of the truth as it is in Jesus, it was powerfully impressed on the mind" of John Steward — for that was his name — " that it was his duty to travel somewhere north-west, in search of some of the lost sheep of the house of Israel." He could have no rest in his spirit, until he yielded obedience to what he considered the call of God. John Steward took his departure from his home and kindred, and continued his [* The county was named after him.] TERRITORIAL PROGRESS OP THE M. E. CHURCH. 421 course till he arrived at Pipe-Town, on the Sandusky River, where a tribe of the Delaware Indians dwelt. He delivered a discourse to them through an interpreter, and took his departure to Upper Sandusky. Steward related his experience to Mr. Walker, the sub-agent of the States to the Indians ; and he being finally satisfied that he was actuated by pure motives, both Mr. and Mrs. Walker en- couraged and assisted him ; and, speaking the Wyandot dialect, the agent became his interpreter. He delivered his first sermon to one old Indian woman ; his next to an old man, in addition to the old woman ; they " were both soon converted to the Christian faith." "In the month of November, 1816, by the faithful labours of Steward, assisted occasionally by some local preachers, before any regular missionary was appointed, a large society of converted natives had been formed." Amonor these were several influential chiefs — such as Be- tween-the-logs, Mononcue, Hicks, and Scuteash, with two of the interpreters — Pointer and Armstrong. " Between- the-logs was one of the chief counsellors of the nation, a man of vigorous intellect, who soon became an eloquent advocate of the Christian cause." " In the year 1819 this mission was taken under the superintendence of the Rev. James B. Finley. At a quarterly meeting in November of this year, about sixty of these native converts were pre- sent ;" the account given by themselves of their conversion is very interesting. Between-the-logs said truly, " This is the first meeting of the kind which has been held for us ; and now, my dear brethren, I am happy that we, who have been so long enemies to one another, are come together as brothers ; at which our great Father is well pleased." Yes, this was " the first meeting of the kind ever held" for In- dians. How affecting ! Christians, so called, had lived in contact with these people for two hundred years ; but their lips had never, till now, been opened to declare their con- version to the faith of Christ. And, stranger still, no one 422 TOUR IN AMERICA. — PART IV. amongst all the zealous and devoted missionaries of the Methodist Church, so far as we can perceive, had attempted to seek these lost souls : this honour was reserved for a poor man of colour ; himself, like those he visited, an out- cast from the great world of civilized man. Truly, God's ways are not as ours. If these Indian tribes are ultimately saved and made socially happy, let it be eternally remem- bered, that, so far as the Methodists are concerned in the matter, the work began by a poor man of colour, of Afri- can blood. In 1821, this mission is reported as still prospering, the Rev. James B. Finley being appointed its superintendent, who established a school, " to teach the boys the art of agriculture, and the girls to sew, spin, and knit, and all the duties of the household." Having enclosed a large farm, Mr. Finley "laboured with his own hands, for the purpose of setting an example to the Indians, that they might habituate themselves to an agricultural life. These movements had a salutary effect upon their physical and moral condition." In 1823, Bishop M'Kendree says of these Indians, — " But now they are building hewed log-houses, with brick chim- neys, cultivating their lands, and successfully adopting the various agricultural arts. They now manifest a relish for, and begin to en- joy the benefits of civilization ; and it is probable that some of them will this year raise an ample support for their families, from the pro- duce of these farms. There are more than two hundred of them who have renounced heathenism, and embraced the Christian religion, giving unequivocal evidence of their sincerity, of the reality of a di- vine change." What became of John Steward, the man of colour, the apostle of this nation ? " When so exhausted in his physical powers as to be unable to la- bour for his support, his temporal wants were provided for by his friends ; about fifty acres of land, on which was built a cabin for his accommodation, being secured to him by fee-simple. Here he lived the remainder of his days : and on his demise, the property was in- TERRITORIAL PROGRESS OF THE M. E. CHURCH. 423 herited by his brother. In this place, loved and honoured by those who had been benefited by his evangelical labours, he lingered along the shores of mortality until December 17th, 1823, when he fell asleep in Jesus, in the thirty-seventh year of his age, and the seventh of his labours in the missionary field. On his death-bed he gave the most consoling evidence of his faith in Christ, and hope of immorta- lity." — Bangs's "History of Methodism" vol. hi, pp. 246, 247. In 1821, an attempt was made to introduce the gospel to the Creek Indians, located in Georgia and Alabama. After various disappointments, this enterprise was aban- doned in despair. In 1822, an effectual and successful mission was estab- lished amongst the Mohawks, in Upper Canada, at that time connected with the Methodist Church in the United States. The narrative is very interesting. Many were truly con- . verted to God, and formed into church -fellowship. The Rev. William Case was one of the chief instruments ; and these Indians constitute a portion of the mission-church, now under the care of the British Conference. " The Cherokee mission was also commenced this year. The Cherokee Indians inhabited a tract of country included in the States of Georgia and North Carolina on the east, Alabama on the west, and that part of Tennessee lying south of Hiwassee and Ten- nessee rivers, comprising not less than ten millions of acres. These natives had been partially civilized ; some of them had become wealthy, possessing domestic cattle in abundance, and were thriving agriculturists. White people had settled among them, intermarriages had taken place, so that there were many half-breeds of respectable standing and character, who could speak both the English and Che- rokee languages; and many of the children were well educated. And had they been left undisturbed in their possessions, they doubt- less would have arisen into a wealthy, intelligent, religious, and re- spectable community." — Bangs's " History of Methodism" vol. hi, pp. 206, 207. 1823. " A mission was commenced this year among the Pottawatamy Indians, a small tribe settled in the neighbour- hood of Fort Clark, on the Fox River, in the State of Illi- 424 TOUR IN AMERICA. — PART IV. nois." After the " hard labours" of seven years, Mr. Walker, the missionary, was obliged to abandon this enterprise as hopeless. " Their strong attachments to savage life, and incurable suspicions of white men, together with their final determination to remove west, frustrated the benevolent at- tempts to introduce the gospel and the arts of civilized life among them." — Bangs's " History of Methodism,'''' vol. iii, p. 223. This year Mr. Finley, in company with some of the con- verted chiefs and an interpreter, set off on a visit to the Chippeways. They at length arrived at the Wyandot re- servation, on the Huron River, where they were cordially received and entertained by a white man, called Honnes, who had been taken prisoner when a lad. He was now supposed to be one hundred years of age ; could remember nothing of his parentage, or of his days previous to his cap- tivity, only that he was called Honnes. He was now a cripple, and nearly blind ; but very intelligent and commu- nicative. In 1825, a work of grace commenced among the Missis- sauga Indians, of Upper Canada. Peter Jones, " feeling, after his conversion, for the salvation of his wretched tribe, hastened away to them, and told them what great things God had done for his soul. This had a powerful effect upon their minds, and led them to attend the meetings on the Grand River." This mission has prospered to this time, and is now under the care of the British Conference. A similar work commenced among a branch of the Dela- wares and Chippeways, who were settled at Money town, on the river Thames. In 182*7, a new mission was begun among another branch of the Mississaugas, residing on Snake and Yellow-Head Islands, in Lake Simcoe, Upper Canada. This arose from some of the people hearing a sermon from one of the preachers, — then desiring a missionary, — then the estab- lishment of a Sunday-school ; — and in two years there were TERRITORIAL PROGRESS OF THE M. E. CHURCH. 425 four hundred and twenty-nine under religious instruction ; three hundred and fifty of whom were " orderly members of the Church." — Bangs's "History of Methodism," vol. iii, p. 350. The Oneida mission commenced in 1829. This tribe of Indians were settled on an Indian reservation, in the western part of the State of New- York ; they were partially civil- ized, and were cultivators of the soil ; but were deeply de- based by immoral habits. In this state they were visited by a young man from the Mohawks in Upper Canada. He had been converted among that tribe of Indians, and "was impelled, by his thirst for the salvation of others, to make known unto them the way of peace and salvation." Be- ing able to speak to them in their own language, and from his own experience, they received the tidings in peni- tent hearts ; and a work of reformation commenced among them, which eventuated in the conversion of upwards of one hundred. This good work has steadily gone on. The Onondagas, a neighbouring tribe, by the example and teach- ing of these new converts, "received the gospel, and twenty- four of them were converted to God, and brought into church-fellowship." A mission to the Shawnee and Kanzas Indians, inhabit- ing the western part of the State of Missouri, was under- taken in 1830. In the year 1831, the American Church gave up their Indian Missions in Canada to the British Conference ; and our historian makes the following reflections upon the subject : — " From the movements already alluded to in Upper Canada, the Indian missions in that province, including no less than ten stations, and one thousand eight hundred and fifty adult Indians under reli- gious instruction, most of whom were memhers of the Church, were taken from our superintendence, and put under the care of the Wes- leyan Conference in England. These missions, which had become endeared to us by such associations as could not be easily dissolved, and for the benefit of which we had expended so much labour and 426 TOUR IN AMERICA.— PART IV. money, still clung to our affections ; and could not therefore be sur- rendered, even in the amicable manner in which the arrangement for then* future supply was made, without feelings of regret. Knowing, however, that they would be provided for by our brethren in Eng- land with the same assiduous care with which they had been from the beginning, we withdrew our pastoral oversight with the less sorrow, still praying Almighty God to bless and prosper them." — Bangs's "History of Methodism" vol. iv, pp. 60, 61. We now enter a neiv and a very different scene. About this time the United States government consummated the injuries of centuries ; and by various means drove the In- dian nations, from their several locations in the heart of the country, to the western territory beyond the Mississippi, where we have found them under the designation of the o " Indian-Mission Conference." As might be expected, this dissolution of old associations and attachments produced great convulsions amongst them. The Indian possesses the same instincts and passions as other men. Though former oppressions, which had les- sened the extent of the territory of the several tribes, might leave them little to esteem and love ; yet we all know how a last shred, figment, shadow, of departed possession and enjoyment, is prized by those who feel that they are losing their hold of the beloved object forever. The slander against these people, of incapacity for civili- zation, stands refuted by facts, as their general charac- ter repels the equally unfounded slanders against their manhood. They, on the contrary, evidently possess all the elements of a noble race. Their resolute resistance to the encroachments of the whites ; their repugnance to their manners and customs ; their fierce and heroic defence of their soil ; their love of the chase, and of forest life ; their struggles to prevent the dissolution of their clanships, and tiny nationalities ; their repudiation of all effeminate emo- tions, and systematic culture of fortitude, courage, and manly exercises ; and, as the case stood for ages and ages, their hostility to the Christian Church ; — are facts to be TERRITORIAL PROGRESS OE THE M. E. CHURCH. 427 resolved into a peculiar strength and greatness of charac- ter, rather than of incapacity. How unlike the negro and the Hindoo is the red man of the American forests ! He much more resembles the noble, the dauntless, the inde- pendent Arab, as he spreads his tent in wildernesses never subdued ; and, mounting his steed, bids defiance to all pur- suers. Why should the American Indians be refused the meed of admiration for qualities which in other cases call it forth ? They have eternally refused to submit to the domi- nation of their invaders. Is this a proof of weakness? Raftier, does it not indicate prodigious moral strength? They have defended their territories by disputing every inch of ground with the white man, and, when beaten, have re- fused quarter, challenging the infliction of the most cruel tortures, and meeting death with the fortitude of the great- est heroes ? Is this evidence of a mean, a dastardly, and a decrepit nature ? Is it not much more in proof of real no- bility ? Had these tribes lived in the days of chivalry, they would have been found amongst the most renowned knights. These Indians, moreover, were lovers of freedom. It might be wild, — the freedom which delighted to snuff the winds of the desert, instead of that which rests in a finely poised balance of political power; but there it existed, deeply seated in the soul ; — in all its resentments, its frenzy of passion, its repulsive force, its fixed, undying resolution. Is this love of liberty a weakness ? Will this be said in the midst of the struggles of modern times ? They were gene- rous and frank when treated with confidence and justice, as the cases of Roger Williams, — William Penn, — Smith, — the effects of the marriage of Pocahontas, — the affection and gratitude manifested to many of the Roman Catholic missionaries, — will all evince. Is this deemed a sign of a feeble character ? Is it not invariably taken as evidence of a magnanimous soul ? When confided in on honourable terms, even by the European nations around them, they were found capable of observing treaties, of taking their share in 428 TOUR IN AMERICA. — PART IV. the operations of war, of fighting in connexion with the more disciplined troops of their allies, and uniformly conducted themselves with truth and bravery. To help themselves against a rival foe, all the colonial powers often sought their assistance and co-operation. Does this, again, seem as if they were deficient in intellectual and manly qualities ? Does it not indicate, on the contrary, that, even in the opin- ion of these detractors, they possessed useful powers in the matter of war ? Yes : these Indians are, in truth, amongst the noblest race of untutored men on whom the sun gver shone. We are astonished at the lateness of the attempt made by the Methodist body, to bring these children of the forest into the fold of Christ. There is no evidence from his Journal, that Bishop Asbury, the apostle of Methodism, entertained the idea of extending the kingdom of God amongst this people. His benevolent and active mind em- braced the whole population of the United States, with this exception. It seems to have been taken for granted, on all hands, that they were incapable of Christianity, till the delusion was dissipated by the labours of John Steward, the poor man of colour. The labours of faithful men, in- deed, might not have succeeded in retaining them in their primeval homes, securing their rights to the soil on which they lived, or giving them a place in the citizenship of the United States ; and, as the matter stood at the time, it is easy to see, that the remedy, supposing it to be successful, came too late to secure these blessings. Ages of oppres- sion and wrong had thinned the ranks of all the Indian na- tions ; they were only the shreds and skeletons of former strength and power ; they had been hunted, like wild beasts, into nooks and corners, and seemed only to exist by suffer- ance ; they were writhing under the scourges and miseries of centuries ; and the traditional sufferings and wrongs of past generations, handed doAvn to them by the maledic- tions and sworn revenge of their ancestors, leaving them TERRITORIAL PROGRESS OF THE M. E. CHURCH. 429 the legacy of their cruel oppressions, tended to feed and infuriate their passions. Yes, it was too late. The blow had been struck, the deed was done, the murderous wound inflicted. All of life which remained, at the time, was the mere death-struggles of a giant ; cursing, in bitter scorn, the power which had inflicted the blow. This giant has now trailed his remnant of existence to the extremity of the west. The song of love is no longer heard amid the rippling streams and forests of their primeval fatherland ; the lute, the drum, the dance of the red man, now never gladdens the wigwam village, or echoes through the thickets, rendered joyous by the frolics of boyhood and the excite- ments of the chase ; the incense of relio-ious rites to avert the invasions of the genii of evil, or to propitiate the " Great Spirit," ceases to rise in the midst of the groves and bowers of their " high places ;" the war-whoop will never more be borne by the breeze, or heard in frightful notes to disturb the repose and rouse the apprehensions of the wives and children of the white man. The morning breaks, the sun shines brightly, nature appears in all her gorgeousness, fragrant flowers give their sweetness to the winds ; birds and animals play and sing gayly ; the day declines, the dews fall, and all things are hushed in soft slumbers, — never, no, never to be broken again by the joys or sorrows of the poor Indian. Let a stranger be permitted to chant his funeral dirge. Never was conquest so complete as that gained over these races. The Norman lords of this island cut down the heads of the nation ; but they left the meaner kinds of life to vegetate. The northern barbarians subdued Italy and Europe ; but they allowed the people to remain on the soil, to outlive the oppression, and assert the rights of hu- manity. The ruthless Turks conquered the Greek empire ; but even they have not succeeded in cutting off the race, or expelling them the country. England has subdued In- dia ; but the notion of deporting the inhabitants has never 430 TOUR IN AMERICA. — PART IV. formed part of her policy. America is alone in this. Her work is perfect. She occupies the largest territorial pos- sessions of any civilized power in the world ; and it is all cleared of the nations once inhabiting the soil. Her occu- pancy is now undisputed. One people, — one power, — one system, — one government, — now pervades the mighty spaces once filled with innumerable races. The Roman empire never possessed the unity, the homogeneity, the strength of the American Republic. We hope this gigantic mistress of so splendid an empire will not, in future, think it essential to her interest or glory to molest the Indians in the "far west." Surely they may now be left alone to live, — if it may please God, — and if they do not become extinct by natural causes. It would, moreover, be a mercy, if Christianity might now be permit- ted to have fair play amongst them, and let it be seen if they are an exception to the general rule, and cannot pos- sibly be saved. Every well-wisher to the race will look with deep interest towards this Indian territory ; and if, after all the miseries of the past, it should turn out that a happy and Christian community is the result of this ar- rangement, he will rejoice in the goodness of God, whatever he may think of the policy which led to the settlement. We now give the statistical results of this section of the work, in a tabular view : — Conferences. Dist. Circuits. Minist. Supenvum. Local Pr. Members. 40 54 2 97 8,440 Illinois .... 10 106 130 54 425 24,458 Missouri .... 5 35 51 87 10,924 St. Louis .... 6 51 51 5 163 13,755 Arkansas ... 5 41 43 3 148 9,730 Memphis. ... 6 71 101 4 344 30,940 Mississippi . . 7 54 73 5 195 16,598 Louisiana ... 6 53 47 2 71 8,279 29 29 2 54 3,213 Indian Mission 3 26 32 1 32 3,815 56 506 511 98 1.616 130,052 The whole statistical result of our survey of the territorial TERRITORIAL PROGRESS OF THE M. E. CHURCH. 431 progress of the American Methodist Episcopal Church will be as follows : — Conf. Dist. Circuits. Minist. Local Pr. Members. Atlantic Line ... 13 72 1,300 1,687 1,611 405,541 Hudson and Lake Line 10 72 1,065 1,343 1,984 210,790 Ohio Line 7 60 630 876 2,253 262,858 Mississippi Line .. 10 56 506 511 1,616 130,052 40 260 3,501 4,417 7,464 1,009,241 We have not noticed the supernumeraries in the above table, because not employed in full work. They, however, amount to 423. We leave this sketch of the territorial progress of Me- thodism in the States to the reader's own reflections ; with the single remark, that, in the author's own opinion, it is unexampled, — that it is the greatest development of reli- gious truth which has taken place in the history of Chris- tianity, either in ancient or modern times. NOTE TO PAGE 333. * [It is hardly necessary for us to say to American readers that the " Christian Advocate and Journal " is not " devoted to partisan warfare," and never has been. If Dr. Dixon had read this paper during the time that elapsed between his visit to America and the publication of his book, he would have found that his "pitting" of Dr. Peck against Dr. Lee was a pure piece of fancy, never destined to be realized. The Christian Advocate has abstained not merely from partisan warfare, but even, to a great extent, from defending the Church against South- ern attacks ; — a course which its Editor has taken, we judge, under the just belief that the religious welfare of the Church must be perilled by perpetual controversy, and under the belief, equally well founded, we think, that defences have not been needed against the species of warfare that has been waged against the Church in some quarters. The paper has preserved a very dignified and Christian course — one, we think, which has met with the general approbation of its thirty-five thousand sub- scribers.]